IT WAS the best of
times, it was the worst of times, it was the age of wisdom, it was the age of
foolishness, it was the epoch of belief, it was the epoch of incredulity, it
was the season of Light, it was the season of Darkness, it was the spring of
hope, it was the winter of despair, we had everything before us, we had nothing
before us, we were all going direct to Heaven, we were all going direct the
other way -- in short, the period was so far like the present period, that some
of its noisiest authorities insisted on its being received, for good or for
evil, in the superlative degree of comparison only.
There were a king with
a large jaw and a queen with a plain face, on the throne of England; there were
a king with a large jaw and a queen with a fair face, on the throne of France.
In both countries it was clearer than crystal to the lords of the State
preserves of loaves and fishes, that things in general were settled for ever.
It was the year of Our
Lord one thousand seven hundred and seventy- five. Spiritual revelations were
conceded to England at that favoured period, as at this. Mrs. Southcott had
recently attained her five-and- twentieth blessed birthday, of whom a prophetic
private in the Life Guards had heralded the sublime appearance by announcing
that arrangements were made for the swallowing up of London and Westminster.
Even the Cock-lane ghost had been laid only a round dozen of years, after rapping
out its messages, as the spirits of this very year last past (supernaturally
deficient in originality) rapped out theirs. Mere messages in the earthly order
of events had lately come to the English Crown and People, from a congress of
British subjects in America: which, strange to relate, have proved more
important to the human race than any communications yet received through any of
the chickens of the Cock-lane brood.
France, less favoured
on the whole as to matters spiritual than her sister of the shield and trident,
rolled with exceeding smoothness down hill, making paper money and spending it.
Under the guidance of her Christian pastors, she entertained herself, besides,
with such humane achievements as sentencing a youth to have his hands cut off,
his tongue torn out with pincers, and his body burned alive, because he had not
kneeled down in the rain to do honour to a dirty procession of monks which
passed within his view, at a distance of some fifty or sixty yards. It is
likely enough that, rooted in the woods of France and Norway, there were
growing trees, when that sufferer was put to death, already marked by the
Woodman, Fate, to come down and be sawn into boards, to make a certain movable
framework with a sack and a knife in it, terrible in history. It is likely
enough that in the rough outhouses of some tillers of the heavy lands adjacent
to Paris, there were sheltered from the weather that very day, rude carts,
bespattered with rustic mire, snuffed about by pigs, and roosted in by poultry,
which the Farmer, Death, had already set apart to be his tumbrels of the
Revolution. But that Woodman and that Farmer, though they work unceasingly,
work silently, and no one heard them as they went about with muffled tread: the
rather, forasmuch as to entertain any suspicion that they were awake, was to be
atheistical and traitorous.
In England, there was
scarcely an amount of order and protection to justify much national boasting.
Daring burglaries by armed men, and highway robberies, took place in the
capital itself every night; families were publicly cautioned not to go out of
town without removing their furniture to upholsterers' warehouses for security;
the highwayman in the dark was a City tradesman in the light, and, being
recognised and challenged by his fellow-tradesman whom he stopped in his
character of "the Captain," gallantly shot him through the head and
rode away; the mall was waylaid by seven robbers, and the guard shot three
dead, and then got shot dead himself by the other four, "in consequence of
the failure of his ammunition:" after which the mall was robbed in peace;
that magnificent potentate, the Lord Mayor of London, was made to stand and
deliver on Turnham Green, by one highwayman, who despoiled the illustrious
creature in sight of all his retinue; prisoners in London gaols fought battles
with their turnkeys, and the majesty of the law fired blunderbusses in among
them, loaded with rounds of shot and ball; thieves snipped off diamond crosses
from the necks of noble lords at Court drawing-rooms; musketeers went into St.
Giles's, to search for contraband goods, and the mob fired on the musketeers,
and the musketeers fired on the mob, and nobody thought any of these
occurrences much out of the common way. In the midst of them, the hangman, ever
busy and ever worse than useless, was in constant requisition; now, stringing
up long rows of miscellaneous criminals; now, hanging a housebreaker on
Saturday who had been taken on Tuesday; now, burning people in the hand at
Newgate by the dozen, and now burning pamphlets at the door of Westminster
Hall; to-day, taking the life of an atrocious murderer, and to-morrow of a
wretched pilferer who had robbed a farmer's boy of sixpence.
All these things, and a
thousand like them, came to pass in and close upon the dear old year one
thousand seven hundred and seventy-five. Environed by them, while the Woodman
and the Farmer worked unheeded, those two of the large jaws, and those other
two of the plain and the fair faces, trod with stir enough, and carried their
divine rights with a high hand. Thus did the year one thousand seven hundred
and seventy-five conduct their Greatnesses, and myriads of small creatures --
the creatures of this chronicle among the rest -- along the roads that lay
before them.
IT WAS the Dover road
that lay, on a Friday night late in November, before the first of the persons
with whom this history has business. The Dover road lay, as to him, beyond the
Dover mail, as it lumbered up Shooter's Hill. He walked up hill in the mire by
the side of the mail, as the rest of the passengers did; not because they had
the least relish for walking exercise, under the circumstances, but because the
hill, and the harness, and the mud, and the mail, were all so heavy, that the
horses had three times already come to a stop, besides once drawing the coach
across the road, with the mutinous intent of taking it back to Blackheath.
Reins and whip and coachman and guard, however, in combination, had read that
article of war which forbade a purpose otherwise strongly in favour of the
argument, that some brute animals are endued with Reason; and the team had
capitulated and returned to their duty.
With drooping heads and
tremulous tails, they mashed their way through the thick mud, floundering and
stumbling between whiles, as if they were falling to pieces at the larger
joints. As often as the driver rested them and brought them to a stand, with a
wary "Wo-ho! so-ho- then!" the near leader violently shook his head
and everything upon it -- like an unusually emphatic horse, denying that the
coach could be got up the hill. Whenever the leader made this rattle, the
passenger started, as a nervous passenger might, and was disturbed in mind.
There was a steaming
mist in all the hollows, and it had roamed in its forlornness up the hill, like
an evil spirit, seeking rest and finding none. A clammy and intensely cold
mist, it made its slow way through the air in ripples that visibly followed and
overspread one another, as the waves of an unwholesome sea might do. It was
dense enough to shut out everything from the light of the coach-lamps but these
its own workings, and a few yards of road; and the reek of the labouring horses
steamed into it, as if they had made it all.
Two other passengers,
besides the one, were plodding up the hill by the side of the mail. All three
were wrapped to the cheekbones and over the ears, and wore jack-boots. Not one
of the three could have said, from anything he saw, what either of the other
two was like; and each was hidden under almost as many wrappers from the eyes
of the mind, as from the eyes of the body, of his two companions. In those
days, travellers were very shy of being confidential on a short notice, for
anybody on the road might be a robber or in league with robbers. As to the
latter, when every posting-house and ale-house could produce somebody in
"the Captain's" pay, ranging from the landlord to the lowest stable
non- descript, it was the likeliest thing upon the cards. So the guard of the
Dover mail thought to himself, that Friday night in November, one thousand
seven hundred and seventy-five, lumbering up Shooter's Hill, as he stood on his
own particular perch behind the mail, beating his feet, and keeping an eye and
a hand on the arm-chest before him, where a loaded blunderbuss lay at the top
of six or eight loaded horse-pistols, deposited on a substratum of cutlass.
The Dover mail was in
its usual genial position that the guard suspected the passengers, the
passengers suspected one another and the guard, they all suspected everybody
else, and the coachman was sure of nothing but the horses; as to which cattle
he could with a clear conscience have taken his oath on the two Testaments that
they were not fit for the journey.
"Wo-ho!" said
the coachman. "So, then! One more pull and you're at the top and be damned
to you, for I have had trouble enough to get you to it! -- Joe!"
"Halloa!" the
guard replied.
"What o'clock do
you make it, Joe?"
"Ten minutes,
good, past eleven."
"My blood!"
ejaculated the vexed coachman, "and not atop of Shooter's yet! Tst! Yah!
Get on with you! "
The emphatic horse, cut
short by the whip in a most decided negative, made a decided scramble for it,
and the three other horses followed suit. Once more, the Dover mail struggled
on, with the jack-boots of its passengers squashing along by its side. They had
stopped when the coach stopped, and they kept close company with it. If any one
of the three had had the hardihood to propose to another to walk on a little
ahead into the mist and darkness, he would have put himself in a fair way of
getting shot instantly as a highwayman.
The last burst carried
the mail to the summit of the hill. The horses stopped to breathe again, and
the guard got down to skid the wheel for the descent, and open the coach-door
to let the passengers in.
"Tst! Joe!"
cried the coachman in a warning voice, looking down from his box.
"What do you say,
Tom?"
They both listened.
"I say a horse at
a canter coming up, Joe."
"I say a horse at
a gallop, Tom," returned the guard, leaving his hold of the door, and
mounting nimbly to his place. "Gentlemen! In the kings name, all of
you!"
With this hurried
adjuration, he cocked his blunderbuss, and stood on the offensive.
The passenger booked by
this history, was on the coach-step, getting in; the two other passengers were
close behind him, and about to follow. He remained on the step, half in the
coach and half out of; they remained in the road below him. They all looked from
the coachman to the guard, and from the guard to the coachman, and listened.
The coachman looked back and the guard looked back, and even the emphatic
leader pricked up his ears and looked back, without contradicting.
The stillness
consequent on the cessation of the rumbling and labouring of the coach, added
to the stillness of the night, made it very quiet indeed. The panting of the
horses communicated a tremulous motion to the coach, as if it were in a state
of agitation. The hearts of the passengers beat loud enough perhaps to be
heard; but at any rate, the quiet pause was audibly expressive of people out of
breath, and holding the breath, and having the pulses quickened by expectation.
The sound of a horse at
a gallop came fast and furiously up the hill.
"So-ho!" the
guard sang out, as loud as he could roar. "Yo there! Stand! I shall
fire!"
The pace was suddenly
checked, and, with much splashing and floundering, a man's voice called from
the mist, "Is that the Dover mail?"
"Never you mind
what it is!" the guard retorted. "What are you?"
"Is that the Dover
mail?"
"Why do you want
to know?"
"I want a
passenger, if it is."
"What
passenger?"
"Mr. Jarvis
Lorry."
Our booked passenger
showed in a moment that it was his name. The guard, the coachman, and the two
other passengers eyed him distrustfully.
"Keep where you
are," the guard called to the voice in the mist, "because, if I
should make a mistake, it could never be set right in your lifetime. Gentleman
of the name of Lorry answer straight."
"What is the
matter?" asked the passenger, then, with mildly quavering speech.
"Who wants me? Is it Jerry?"
("I don't like
Jerry's voice, if it is Jerry," growled the guard to himself. "He's
hoarser than suits me, is Jerry.")
"Yes, Mr.
Lorry."
"What is the
matter?"
"A despatch sent
after you from over yonder. T. and Co."
"I know this
messenger, guard," said Mr. Lorry, getting down into the road-assisted
from behind more swiftly than politely by the other two passengers, who
immediately scrambled into the coach, shut the door, and pulled up the window.
"He may come close; there's nothing wrong."
"I hope there
ain't, but I can't make so 'Nation sure of that," said the guard, in gruff
soliloquy. "Hallo you!"
"Well! And hallo
you!" said Jerry, more hoarsely than before.
"Come on at a
footpace! d'ye mind me? And if you've got holsters to that saddle o' yourn,
don't let me see your hand go nigh 'em. For I'm a devil at a quick mistake, and
when I make one it takes the form of Lead. So now let's look at you."
The figures of a horse
and rider came slowly through the eddying mist, and came to the side of the
mail, where the passenger stood. The rider stooped, and, casting up his eyes at
the guard, handed the passenger a small folded paper. The rider's horse was
blown, and both horse and rider were covered with mud, from the hoofs of the
horse to the hat of the man.
"Guard!" said
the passenger, in a tone of quiet business confidence.
The watchful guard,
with his right hand at the stock of his raised blunderbuss, his left at the
barrel, and his eye on the horseman, answered curtly, "Sir."
"There is nothing
to apprehend. I belong to Tellson's Bank. You must know Tellson's Bank in
London. I am going to Paris on business. A crown to drink. I may read
this?"
"If so be as
you're quick, sir."
He opened it in the
light of the coach-lamp on that side, and read -- first to himself and then
aloud: "'Wait at Dover for Mam'selle.' It's not long, you see, guard.
Jerry, say that my answer was, RECALLED TO LIFE."
Jerry started in his
saddle. "That's a Blazing strange answer, too," said he, at his
hoarsest.
"Take that message
back, and they will know that I received this, as well as if I wrote. Make the
best of your way. Good night."
With those words the
passenger opened the coach-door and got in; not at all assisted by his
fellow-passengers, who had expeditiously secreted their watches and purses in
their boots, and were now making a general pretence of being asleep. With no
more definite purpose than to escape the hazard of originating any other kind
of action.
The coach lumbered on
again, with heavier wreaths of mist closing round it as it began the descent.
The guard soon replaced his blunderbuss in his arm-chest, and, having looked to
the rest of its contents, and having looked to the supplementary pistols that
he wore in his belt, looked to a smaller chest beneath his seat, in which there
were a few smith's tools, a couple of torches, and a tinder-box. For he was
furnished with that completeness that if the coach-lamps had been blown and
stormed out, which did occasionally happen, he had only to shut himself up
inside, keep the flint and steel sparks well off the straw, and get a light
with tolerable safety and ease (if he were lucky) in five minutes.
"Tom!" softly
over the coach roof.
"Hallo, Joe."
"Did you hear the
message?"
"I did, Joe."
"What did you make
of it, Tom?"
"Nothing at all,
Joe."
"That's a
coincidence, too," the guard mused, "for I made the same of it
myself."
Jerry, left alone in
the mist and darkness, dismounted meanwhile, not only to ease his spent horse,
but to wipe the mud from his face, and shake the wet out of his hat-brim, which
might be capable of holding about half a gallon. After standing with the bridle
over his heavily- splashed arm, until the wheels of the mail were no longer
within hearing and the night was quite still again, he turned to walk down the
hill.
"After that there
gallop from Temple Bar, old lady, I won't trust your fore-legs till I get you
on the level," said this hoarse messenger, glancing at his mare.
"'Recalled to life.' That's a Blazing strange message. Much of that
wouldn't do for you, Jerry! I say, Jerry! You'd be in a Blazing bad way, if
recalling to life was to come into fashion, Jerry!"
A WONDERFUL FACT to
reflect upon, that every human creature is constituted to be that profound
secret and mystery to every other. A solemn consideration, when I enter a great
city by night, that every one of those darkly clustered houses encloses its own
secret; that every room in every one of them encloses its own secret; that
every beating heart in the hundreds of thousands of breasts there, is, in some
of its imaginings, a secret to the heart nearest it! Something of the
awfulness, even of Death itself, is referable to this. No more can I turn the
leaves of this dear book that I loved, and vainly hope in time to read it all.
No more can I look into the depths of this unfathomable water, wherein, as
momentary lights glanced into it, I have had glimpses of buried treasure and
other things submerged. It was appointed that the book should shut with a
spring, for ever and for ever, when I had read but a page. It was appointed
that the water should be locked in an eternal frost, when the light was playing
on its surface, and I stood in ignorance on the shore. My friend is dead, my
neighbour is dead, my love, the darling of my soul, is dead; it is the
inexorable consolidation and perpetuation of the secret that was always in that
individuality, and which I shall carry in mine to my life's end. In any of the
burial-places of this city through which I pass, is there a sleeper more
inscrutable than its busy inhabitants are, in their innermost personality, to
me, or than I am to them?
As to this, his natural
and not to be alienated inheritance, the messenger on horseback had exactly the
same possessions as the King, the first Minister of State, or the richest
merchant in London. So with the three passengers shut up in the narrow compass
of one lumbering old mail coach; they were mysteries to one another, as
complete as if each had been in his own coach and six, or his own coach and
sixty, with the breadth of a county between him and the next.
The messenger rode back
at an easy trot, stopping pretty often at ale- houses by the way to drink, but
evincing a tendency to keep his own counsel, and to keep his hat cocked over
his eyes. He had eyes that assorted very well with that decoration, being of a
surface black, with no depth in the colour or form, and much too near together
-- as if they were afraid of being found out in something, singly, if they kept
too far apart. They had a sinister expression, under an old cocked-hat like a
three-cornered spittoon, and over a great muffler for the chin and throat,
which descended nearly to the wearer's knees. When he stopped for drink, he
moved this muffler with his left hand, only while he poured his liquor in with
his right; as soon as that was done, he muffled again.
"No, Jerry,
no!" said the messenger, harping on one theme as he rode. "It
wouldn't do for you, Jerry. Jerry, you honest tradesman, it wouldn't suit your
line of business! Recalled -- ! Bust me if I don't think he'd been a
drinking!"
His message perplexed
his mind to that degree that he was fain, several times, to take off his hat to
scratch his head. Except on the crown, which was raggedly bald, he had stiff,
black hair, standing jaggedly all over it, and growing down hill almost to his
broad, blunt nose. It was so like Smith's work, so much more like the top of a
strongly spiked wall than a head of hair, that the best of players at leap-frog
might have declined him, as the most dangerous man in the world to go over.
While he trotted back
with the message he was to deliver to the night watchman in his box at the door
of Tellson's Bank, by Temple Bar, who was to deliver it to greater authorities
within, the shadows of the night took such shapes to him as arose out of the
message, and took such shapes to the mare as arose out of her private topics of
uneasiness. They seemed to be numerous, for she shied at every shadow on the
road.
What time, the
mail-coach lumbered, jolted, rattled, and bumped upon its tedious way, with its
three fellow-inscrutables inside. To whom, likewise, the shadows of the night
revealed themselves, in the forms their dozing eyes and wandering thoughts
suggested.
Tellson's Bank had a
run upon it in the mail. As the bank passenger -- with an arm drawn through the
leathern strap, which did what lay in it to keep him from pounding against the
next passenger, and driving him into his corner, whenever the coach got a
special jolt -- nodded in his place, with half-shut eyes, the little
coach-windows, and the coach-lamp dimly gleaming through them, and the bulky
bundle of opposite passenger, became the bank, and did a great stroke of
business. The rattle of the harness was the chink of money, and more drafts
were honoured in five minutes than even Tellson's, with all its foreign and
home connection, ever paid in thrice the time. Then the strong-rooms
underground, at Tellson's, with such of their valuable stores and secrets as
were known to the passenger (and it was not a little that he knew about them),
opened before him, and he went in among them with the great keys and the
feebly-burning candle, and found them safe, and strong, and sound, and still,
just as he had last seen them.
But, though the bank
was almost always with him, and though the coach (in a confused way, like the
presence of pain under an opiate) was always with him, there was another
current of impression that never ceased to run, all through the night. He was
on his way to dig some one out of a grave.
Now, which of the
multitude of faces that showed themselves before him was the true face of the
buried person, the shadows of the night did not indicate; but they were all the
faces of a man of five-and-forty by years, and they differed principally in the
passions they expressed, and in the ghastliness of their worn and wasted state.
Pride, contempt, defiance, stubbornness, submission, lamentation, succeeded one
another; so did varieties of sunken cheek, cadaverous colour, emaciated hands
and figures. But the face was in the main one face, and every head was
prematurely white. A hundred times the dozing passenger inquired of this spectre:
"Buried how
long?"
The answer was always
the same: "Almost eighteen years."
"You had abandoned
all hope of being dug out?"
"Long ago."
"You know that you
are recalled to life?"
"They tell me
so."
"I hope you care
to live?"
"I can't
say."
"Shall I show her
to you? Will you come and see her?"
The answers to this
question were various and contradictory. Sometimes the broken reply was,
"Wait! It would kill me if I saw her too soon." Sometimes, it was
given in a tender rain of tears, and then it was, "Take me to her."
Sometimes it was staring and bewildered, and then it was, "I don't know
her. I don't understand."
After such imaginary
discourse, the passenger in his fancy would dig, and dig, dig -- now with a
spade, now with a great key, now with his hands -- to dig this wretched
creature out. Got out at last, with earth hanging about his face and hair, he
would suddenly fan away to dust. The passenger would then start to himself, and
lower the window, to get the reality of mist and rain on his cheek.
Yet even when his eyes
were opened on the mist and rain, on the moving patch of light from the lamps,
and the hedge at the roadside retreating by jerks, the night shadows outside
the coach would fall into the train of the night shadows within. The real
Banking-house by Temple Bar, the real business of the past day, the real strong
rooms, the real express sent after him, and the real message returned, would
all be there. Out of the midst of them, the ghostly face would rise, and he
would accost it again.
"Buried how
long?"
"Almost eighteen
years."
"I hope you care
to live?"
"I can't
say."
Dig -- dig -- dig --
until an impatient movement from one of the two passengers would admonish him
to pull up the window, draw his arm securely through the leathern strap, and
speculate upon the two slumbering forms, until his mind lost its hold of them,
and they again slid away into the bank and the grave.
"Buried how
long?"
"Almost eighteen
years."
"You had abandoned
all hope of being dug out?"
"Long ago."
The words were still in
his hearing as just spoken -- distinctly in his hearing as ever spoken words
had been in his life -- when the weary passenger started to the consciousness
of daylight, and found that the shadows of the night were gone.
He lowered the window,
and looked out at the rising sun. There was a ridge of ploughed land, with a
plough upon it where it had been left last night when the horses were unyoked;
beyond, a quiet coppice-wood, in which many leaves of burning red and golden
yellow still remained upon the trees. Though the earth was cold and wet, the
sky was clear, and the sun rose bright, placid, and beautiful.
"Eighteen
years!" said the passenger, looking at the sun. "Gracious Creator of
day! To be buried alive for eighteen years!"
WHEN THE MAIL got
successfully to Dover, in the course of the forenoon, the head drawer at the
Royal George Hotel opened the coach-door as his custom was. He did it with some
flourish of ceremony, for a mail journey from London in winter was an
achievement to congratulate an adventurous traveller upon.
By that time, there was
only one adventurous traveller left to be congratulated: for the two others had
been set down at their respective roadside destinations. The mildewy inside of
the coach, with its damp and dirty straw, its disageeable smell, and its
obscurity, was rather like a larger dog-kennel. Mr. Lorry, the passenger,
shaking himself out of it in chains of straw, a tangle of shaggy wrapper,
flapping hat, and muddy legs, was rather like a larger sort of dog.
"There will be a
packet to Calais, to-morrow, drawer?"
"Yes, sir, if the
weather holds and the wind sets tolerable fair. The tide will serve pretty
nicely at about two in the afternoon, sir. Bed, sir?"
"I shall not go to
bed till night; but I want a bedroom, and a barber."
"And then
breakfast, sir? Yes, sir. That way, sir, if you please. Show Concord!
Gentleman's valise and hot water to Concord. Pull off gentleman's boots in
Concord. (You will find a fine sea-coal fire, sir.) Fetch barber to Concord.
Stir about there, now, for Concord!"
The Concord bed-chamber
being always assigned to a passenger by the mail, and passengers by the mail
being always heavily wrapped up from bead to foot, the room had the odd
interest for the establishment of the Royal George, that although but one kind
of man was seen to go into it, all kinds and varieties of men came out of it.
Consequently, another drawer, and two porters, and several maids and the
landlady, were all loitering by accident at various points of the road between
the Concord and the coffee-room, when a gentleman of sixty, formally dressed in
a brown suit of clothes, pretty well worn, but very well kept, with large square
cuffs and large flaps to the pockets, passed along on his way to his breakfast.
The coffee-room had no
other occupant, that forenoon, than the gentleman in brown. His breakfast-table
was drawn before the fire, and as he sat, with its light shining on him,
waiting for the meal, he sat so still, that he might have been sitting for his
portrait.
Very orderly and
methodical he looked, with a hand on each knee, and a loud watch ticking a
sonorous sermon under his flapped waistcoat, as though it pitted its gravity
and longevity against the levity and evanescence of the brisk fire. He had a
good leg, and was a little vain of it, for his brown stockings fitted sleek and
close, and were of a fine texture; his shoes and buckles, too, though plain,
were trim. He wore an odd little sleek crisp flaxen wig, setting very close to
his head: which wig, it is to be presumed, was made of hair, but which looked
far more as though it were spun from filaments of silk or glass. His linen,
though not of a fineness in accordance with his stockings, was as white as the
tops of the waves that broke upon the neighbouring beach, or the specks of sail
that glinted in the sunlight far at sea. A face habitually suppressed and
quieted, was still lighted up under the quaint wig by a pair of moist bright
eyes that it must have cost their owner, in years gone by, some pains to drill
to the composed and reserved expression of Tellson's Bank. He had a healthy
colour in his cheeks, and his face, though lined, bore few traces of anxiety. But,
perhaps the confidential bachelor clerks in Tellson's Bank were principally
occupied with the cares of other people; and perhaps second-hand cares, like
second-hand clothes, come easily off and on.
Completing his
resemblance to a man who was sitting for his portrait, Mr. Lorry dropped off to
sleep. The arrival of his breakfast roused him, and he said to the drawer, as
he moved his chair to it:
"I wish
accommodation prepared for a young lady who may come here at any time to-day.
She may ask for Mr. Jarvis Lorry, or she may only ask for a gentleman from
Tellson's Bank. Please to let me know."
"Yes, sir.
Tellson's Bank in London, sir?"
"Yes."
"Yes, sir. We have
oftentimes the honour to entertain your gentlemen in their travelling backwards
and forwards betwixt London and Paris, sir. A vast deal of travelling, sir, in
Tellson and Company's House."
"Yes. We are quite
a French House, as well as an English one."
"Yes, sir. Not
much in the habit of such travelling yourself, I think, sir?"
"Not of late
years. It is fifteen years since we -- since I -- came last from France."
"Indeed, sir? That
was before my time here, sir. Before our people's time here, sir. The George
was in other hands at that time, sir."
"I believe
so."
"But I would hold
a pretty wager, sir, that a House like Tellson and Company was flourishing, a
matter of fifty, not to speak of fifteen years ago?"
"You might treble
that, and say a hundred and fifty, yet not be far from the truth."
"Indeed,
sir!"
Rounding his mouth and
both his eyes, as he stepped backward from the table, the waiter shifted his
napkin from his right arm to his left, dropped into a comfortable attitude, and
stood surveying the guest while he ate and drank, as from an observatory or watchtower.
According to the immemorial usage of waiters in all ages.
When Mr. Lorry had
finished his breakfast, he went out for a stroll on the beach. The little
narrow, crooked town of Dover hid itself away from the beach, and ran its head
into the chalk cliffs, like a marine ostrich. The beach was a desert of heaps
of sea and stones tumbling wildly about, and the sea did what it liked, and
what it liked was destruction. It thundered at the town, and thundered at the
cliffs, and brought the coast down, madly. The air among the houses was of so
strong a piscatory flavour that one might have supposed sick fish went up to be
dipped in it, as sick people went down to be dipped in the sea. A little
fishing was done in the port, and a quantity of strolling about by night, and
looking seaward: particularly at those times when the tide made, and was near
flood. Small tradesmen, who did no business whatever, sometimes unaccountably
realised large fortunes, and it was remarkable that nobody in the neighbourhood
could endure a lamplighter.
As the day declined
into the afternoon, and the air, which had been at intervals clear enough to
allow the French coast to be seen, became again charged with mist and vapour,
Mr. Lorry's thoughts seemed to cloud too. When it was dark, and he sat before
the coffee-room fire, awaiting his dinner as he had awaited his breakfast, his
mind was busily digging, digging, digging, in the live red coals.
A bottle of good claret
after dinner does a digger in the red coals no harm, otherwise than as it has a
tendency to throw him out of work. Mr. Lorry had been idle a long time, and had
just poured out his last glassful of wine with as complete an appearance of
satisfaction as is ever to be found in an elderly gentleman of a fresh complexion
who has got to the end of a bottle, when a rattling of wheels came up the
narrow street, and rumbled into the inn-yard.
He set down his glass
untouched. "This is Mam'selle!" said he.
In a very few minutes
the waiter came in to announce that Miss Manette had arrived from London, and
would be happy to see the gentleman from Tellson's.
"So soon?"
Miss Manette had taken
some refreshment on the road, and required none then, and was extremely anxious
to see the gentleman from Tellson's immediately, if it suited his pleasure and
convenience.
The gentleman from
Tellson's had nothing left for it but to empty his glass with an air of stolid
desperation, settle his odd little flaxen wig at the ears, and follow the
waiter to Miss Manette's apartment. It was a large, dark room, furnished in a
funereal manner with black horsehair, and loaded with heavy dark tables. These
had been oiled and oiled, until the two tall candles on the table in the middle
of the room were gloomily reflected on every leaf; as if they were buried, in
deep graves of black mahogany, and no light to speak of could be expected from
them until they were dug out.
The obscurity was so
difficult to penetrate that Mr. Lorry, picking his way over the well-worn
Turkey carpet, supposed Miss Manette to be, for the moment, in some adjacent
room, until, having got past the two tall candles, he saw standing to receive
him by the table between them and the fire, a young lady of not more than
seventeen, in a riding-cloak, and still holding her straw travelling-hat by its
ribbon in her hand. As his eyes rested on a short, slight, pretty figure, a
quantity of golden hair, a pair of blue eyes that met his own with an inquiring
look, and a forehead with a singular capacity (remembering how young and smooth
it was), of rifting and knitting itself into an expression that was not quite
one of perplexity, or wonder, or alarm, or merely of a bright fixed attention,
though it included all the four expressions -- as his eyes rested on these
things, a sudden vivid likeness passed before him, of a child whom he had held
in his arms on the passage across that very Channel, one cold time, when the
hail drifted heavily and the sea ran high. The likeness passed away, like a
breath along the surface of the gaunt pier-glass behind her, on the frame of
which, a hospital procession of negro cupids, several headless and all
cripples, were offering black baskets of Dead Sea fruit to black divinities of
the feminine gender -- and he made his formal bow to Miss Manette.
"Pray take a seat,
sir." In a very clear and pleasant young voice; a little foreign in its
accent, but a very little indeed.
"I kiss your hand,
miss," said Mr. Lorry, with the manners of an earlier date, as he made his
formal bow again, and took his seat.
"I received a
letter from the Bank, sir, yesterday, informing me that some intelligence -- or
discovery -- "
"The word is not
material, miss; either word will do."
"-- respecting the
small property of my poor father, whom I never saw-so long dead -- "
Mr. Lorry moved in his
chair, and cast a troubled look towards the hospital procession of negro
cupids. As if they had any help for anybody in their absurd baskets!
"-- rendered it
necessary that I should go to Paris, there to communicate with a gentleman of
the Bank, so good as to be despatched to Paris for the purpose."
"Myself."
"As I was prepared
to hear, sir."
She curtseyed to him
(young ladies made curtseys in those days), with a pretty desire to convey to
him that she felt how much older and wiser he was than she. He made her another
bow.
"I replied to the
Bank, sir, that as it was considered necessary, by those who know, and who are
so kind as to advise me, that I should go to France, and that as I am an orphan
and have no friend who could go with me, I should esteem it highly if I might
be permitted to place myself, during the journey, under that worthy gentleman's
protection. The gentleman had left London, but I think a messenger was sent
after him to beg the favour of his waiting for me here."
"I was
happy," said Mr. Lorry, "to be entrusted with the charge. I shall be
more happy to execute it."
"Sir, I thank you
indeed. I thank you very gratefully. It was told me by the Bank that the
gentleman would explain to me the details of the business, and that I must
prepare myself to find them of a surprising nature. I have done my best to
prepare myself, and I naturally have a strong and eager interest to know what
they are."
"Naturally,"
said Mr. Lorry. "Yes -- I --"
After a pause, he
added, again settling the crisp flaxen wig at the ears,
"It is very
difficult to begin."
He did not begin, but,
in his indecision, met her glance. The young forehead lifted itself into that
singular expression -- but it was pretty and characteristic, besides being
singular -- and she raised her hand, as if with an involuntary action she
caught at, or stayed some passing shadow.
"Are you quite a
stranger to me, sir?"
"Am I not?"
Mr. Lorry opened his hands, and extended them outwards with an argumentative
smile.
Between the eyebrows
and just over the little feminine nose, the line of which was as delicate and
fine as it was possible to be, the expression deepened itself as she took her
seat thoughtfully in the chair by which she had hitherto remained standing. He
watched her as she mused, and the moment she raised her eyes again, went on:
"In your adopted
country, I presume, I cannot do better than address you as a young English
lady, Miss Manette?"
"If you please,
sir."
"Miss Manette, I
am a man of business. I have a business charge to acquit myself of. In your
reception of it, don't heed me any more than if I was a speaking machine --
truly, I am not much else. I will, with your leave, relate to you, miss, the
story of one of our customers."
"Story!"
He seemed wilfully to
mistake the word she had repeated, when he added, in a hurry, "Yes,
customers; in the banking business we usually call our connection our customers.
He was a French gentleman; a scientific gentleman; a man of great acquirements
-- a Doctor."
"Not of
Beauvais?"
"Why, yes, of
Beauvais. Like Monsieur Manette, your father, the gentleman was of Beauvais.
Like Monsieur Manette, your father, the gentleman was of repute in Paris. I had
the honour of knowing him there. Our relations were business relations, but
confidential. I was at that time in our French House, and had been -- oh!
twenty years."
"At that time -- I
may ask, at what time, sir?"
"I speak, miss, of
twenty years ago. He married -- an English lady -- and I was one of the
trustees. His affairs, like the affairs of many other French gentlemen and
French families, were entirely in Tellson's hands. In a similar way I am, or I
have been, trustee of one kind or other for scores of our customers. These are
mere business relations, miss; there is no friendship in them, no particular
interest, nothing like sentiment. I have passed from one to another, in the
course of my business life, just as I pass from one of our customers to another
in the course of my business day; in short, I have no feelings; I am a mere
machine. To go on --"
"But this is my
father's story, sir; and I begin to think" -- the curiously roughened
forehead was very intent upon him -- "that when I was left an orphan
through my mother's surviving my father only two years, it was you who brought
me to England. I am almost sure it was you."
Mr. Lorry took the
hesitating little hand that confidingly advanced to take his, and he put it
with some ceremony to his lips. He then conducted the young lady straightway to
her chair again, and, holding the chairback with his left hand, and using his
right by turns to rub his chin, pull his wig at the ears, or point what he
said, stood looking down into her face while she sat looking up into his.
"Miss Manette, it
was I. And you will see how truly I spoke of myself just now, in saying I had
no feelings, and that all the relations I hold with my fellow-creatures are
mere business relations, when you reflect that I have never seen you since. No;
you have been the ward of Tellson's House since, and I have been busy with the
other business of Tellson's House since. Feelings! I have no time for them, no
chance of them. I pass my whole life, miss, in turning an immense pecuniary
Mangle."
After this odd
description of his daily routine of employment, Mr. Lorry flattened his flaxen
wig upon his head with both hands (which was most unnecessary, for nothing
could be flatter than its shining surface was before), and resumed his former
attitude.
"So far, miss (as
you have remarked), this is the story of your regretted father. Now comes the
difference. If your father had not died when he did -- Don't be frightened! How
you start!"
She did, indeed, start.
And she caught his wrist with both her hands.
"Pray," said
Mr. Lorry, in a soothing tone, bringing his left hand from the back of the
chair to lay it on the supplicatory fingers that clasped him in so violent a
tremble: "pray control your agitation -- a matter of business. As I was
saying --"
Her look so discomposed
him that he stopped, wandered, and began anew:
"As I was saying;
if Monsieur Manette had not died; if he had suddenly and silently disappeared;
if he had been spirited away; if it had not been difficult to guess to what
dreadful place, though no art could trace him; if he had an enemy in some
compatriot who could exercise a privilege that I in my own time have known the
boldest people afraid to speak of in a whisper, across the water there; for
instance, the privilege of filling up blank forms for the consignment of any
one to the oblivion of a prison for any length of time; if his wife had
implored the king, the queen, the court, the clergy, for any tidings of him,
and all quite in vain; -- then the history of your father would have been the
history of this unfortunate gentleman, the Doctor of Beauvais."
"I entreat you to
tell me more, sir."
"I will. I am
going to. You can bear it?"
"I can bear
anything but the uncertainty you leave me in at this moment."
"You speak
collectedly, and you -- are collected. That's good!" (Though his manner
was less satisfied than his words.) "A matter of business. Regard it as a
matter of business -- business that must be done. Now if this doctor's wife,
though a lady of great courage and spirit, had suffered so intensely from this
cause before her little child was born --"
"The little child
was a daughter, sir."
"A daughter. A --
a -- matter of business -- don't be distressed. Miss, if the poor lady had
suffered so intensely before her little child was born, that she came to the
determination of sparing the poor child the inheritance of any part of the
agony she had known the pains of, by rearing her in the belief that her father
was dead -- No, don't kneel! In Heaven's name why should you kneel to me!"
"For the truth. O
dear, good, compassionate sir, for the truth!"
"A -- a matter of
business. You confuse me, and how can I transact business if I am confused? Let
us be clear-headed. If you could kindly mention now, for instance, what nine
times ninepence are, or how many shillings in twenty guineas, it would be so
encouraging. I should be so much more at my ease about your state of
mind."
Without directly
answering to this appeal, she sat so still when he had very gently raised her,
and the hands that had not ceased to clasp his wrists were so much more steady
than they had been, that she communicated some reassurance to Mr. Jarvis Lorry.
"That's right,
that's right. Courage! Business! You have business before you; useful business.
Miss Manette, your mother took this course with you. And when she died -- I
believe broken-hearted -- having never slackened her unavailing search for your
father, she left you, at two years old, to grow to be blooming, beautiful, and
happy, without the dark cloud upon you of living in uncertainty whether your
father soon wore his heart out in prison, or wasted there through many
lingering years."
As he said the words he
looked down, with an admiring pity, on the flowing golden hair; as if he
pictured to himself that it might have been already tinged with grey.
"You know that
your parents had no great possession, and that what they had was secured to
your mother and to you. There has been no new discovery, of money, or of any
other property; but --"
He felt his wrist held
closer, and he stopped. The expression in the forehead, which had so
particularly attracted his notice, and which was now immovable, had deepened
into one of pain and horror.
"But he has been
-- been found. He is alive. Greatly changed, it is too probable; almost a
wreck, it is possible; though we will hope the best. Still, alive. Your father
has been taken to the house of an old servant in Paris, and we are going there:
I, to identify him if I can: you, to restore him to life, love, duty, rest,
comfort."
A shiver ran through
her frame, and from it through his. She said, in a low, distinct, awe-stricken
voice, as if she were saying it in a dream,
"I am going to see
his Ghost! It will be his Ghost -- not him!"
Mr. Lorry quietly
chafed the hands that held his arm. "There, there, there! See now, see
now! The best and the worst are known to you, now. You are well on your way to
the poor wronged gentleman, and, with a fair sea voyage, and a fair land
journey, you will be soon at his dear side."
She repeated in the
same tone, sunk to a whisper, "I have been free, I have been happy, yet
his Ghost has never haunted me!"
"Only one thing
more," said Mr. Lorry, laying stress upon it as a wholesome means of
enforcing her attention: "he has been found under another name; his own,
long forgotten or long concealed. It would be worse than useless now to inquire
which; worse than useless to seek to know whether he has been for years
overlooked, or always designedly held prisoner. It would be worse than useless
now to make any inquiries, because it would be dangerous. Better not to mention
the subject, anywhere or in any way, and to remove him -- for a while at all
events -- out of France. Even I, safe as an Englishman, and even Tellson's,
important as they are to French credit, avoid all naming of the matter. I carry
about me, not a scrap of writing openly referring to it. This is a secret
service altogether. My credentials, entries, and memoranda, are all
comprehended in the one line, 'Recalled to Life;' which may mean anything. But
what is the matter! She doesn't notice a word! Miss Manette!"
Perfectly still and
silent, and not even fallen back in her chair, she sat under his hand, utterly
insensible; with her eyes open and fixed upon him, and with that last
expression looking as if it were carved or branded into her forehead. So close
was her hold upon his arm, that he feared to detach himself lest he should hurt
her; therefore he called out loudly for assistance without moving.
A wild-looking woman,
whom even in his agitation, Mr. Lorry observed to be all of a red colour, and
to have red hair, and to be dressed in some extraordinary tight-fitting fashion,
and to have on her head a most wonderful bonnet like a Grenadier wooden
measure, and good measure too, or a great Stilton cheese, came running into the
room in advance of the inn servants, and soon settled the question of his
detachment from the poor young lady, by laying a brawny hand upon his chest,
and sending him flying back against the nearest wall.
("I really think
this must be a man!" was Mr. Lorry's breathless reflection, simultaneously
with his coming against the wall.)
"Why, look at you
all!" bawled this figure, addressing the inn servants. "Why don't you
go and fetch things, instead of standing there staring at me? I am not so much
to look at, am I? Why don't you go and fetch things? I'll let you know, if you
don't bring smelling-salts, cold water, and vinegar, quick, I will."
There was an immediate
dispersal for these restoratives, and she softly laid the patient on a sofa,
and tended her with great skill and gentleness: calling her "my
precious!" and "my bird!" and spreading her golden hair aside
over her shoulders with great pride and care.
"And you in
brown!" she said, indignantly turning to Mr. Lorry; couldn't you tell her
what you had to tell her, without frightening her to death? Look at her, with
her pretty pale face and her cold hands. Do you call that being a Banker?"
Mr. Lorry was so
exceedingly disconcerted by a question so hard to answer, that he could only
look on, at a distance, with much feebler sympathy and humility, while the
strong woman, having banished the inn servants under the mysterious penalty of
"letting them know" something not mentioned if they stayed there,
staring, recovered her charge by a regular series of gradations, and coaxed her
to lay her drooping head upon her shoulder.
"I hope she will
do well now," said Mr. Lorry.
"No thanks to you
in brown, if she does. My darling pretty!"
"I hope,"
said Mr. Lorry, after another pause of feeble sympathy and humility, "that
you accompany Miss Manette to France?"
"A likely thing,
too!" replied the strong woman. "If it was ever intended that I
should go across salt water, do you suppose Providence would have cast my lot
in an island?"
This being another
question hard to answer, Mr. Jarvis Lorry withdrew to consider it.
A LARGE CASK of wine
had been dropped and broken, in the street. The accident had happened in
getting it out of a cart; the cask had tumbled out with a run, the hoops had
burst, and it lay on the stones just outside the door of the wine-shop,
shattered like a walnut-shell.
All the people within
reach had suspended their business, or their idleness, to run to the spot and
drink the wine. The rough, irregular stones of the street, pointing every way,
and designed, one might have thought, expressly to lame all living creatures
that approached them, had dammed it into little pools; these were surrounded,
each by its own jostling group or crowd, according to its size. Some men
kneeled down, made scoops of their two hands joined, and sipped, or tried to
help women, who bent over their shoulders, to sip, before the wine had all run
out between their fingers. Others, men and women, dipped in the puddles with
little mugs of mutilated earthenware, or even with handkerchiefs from women's
heads, which were squeezed dry into infants' mouths; others made small
mud-embankments, to stem the wine as it ran; others, directed by lookers-on up
at high windows, darted here and there, to cut off little streams of wine that
started away in new directions; others devoted themselves to the sodden and lee-dyed
pieces of the cask, licking, and even champing the moister wine-rotted
fragments with eager relish. There was no drainage to carry off the wine, and
not only did it all get taken up, but so much mud got taken up along with it,
that there might have been a scavenger in the street, if anybody acquainted
with it could have believed in such a miraculous presence.
A shrill sound of
laughter and of amused voices -- voices of men, women, and children --
resounded in the street while this wine game lasted. There was little roughness
in the sport, and much playfulness. There was a special companionship in it, an
observable inclination on the part of every one to join some other one, which
led, especially among the luckier or lighter-hearted, to frolicsome embraces,
drinking of healths, shaking of hands, and even joining of hands and dancing, a
dozen together. When the wine was gone, and the places where it had been most
abundant were raked into a gridiron-pattern by fingers, these demonstrations
ceased, as suddenly as they had broken out. The man who had left his saw
sticking in the firewood he was cutting, set it in motion again; the women who
had left on a door-step the little pot of hot ashes, at which she had been
trying to soften the pain in her own starved fingers and toes, or in those of
her child, returned to it; men with bare arms, matted locks, and cadaverous
faces, who had emerged into the winter light from cellars, moved away, to
descend again; and a gloom gathered on the scene that appeared more natural to
it than sunshine.
The wine was red wine,
and had stained the ground of the narrow street in the suburb of Saint Antoine,
in Paris, where it was spilled. It had stained many hands, too, and many faces,
and many naked feet, and many wooden shoes. The hands of the man who sawed the
wood, left red marks on the billets; and the forehead of the woman who nursed
her baby, was stained with the stain of the old rag she wound about her head
again. Those who had been greedy with the staves of the cask, had acquired a
tigerish smear about the mouth; and one tall joker so besmirched, his head more
out of a long squalid bag of a nightcap than in it, scrawled upon a wall with
his finger dipped in muddy wine-lees -- BLOOD.
The time was to come,
when that wine too would be spilled on the street-stones, and when the stain of
it would be red upon many there.
And now that the cloud
settled on Saint Antoine, which a momentary gleam had driven from his sacred
countenance, the darkness of it was heavy -- cold, dirt, sickness, ignorance,
and want, were the lords in waiting on the saintly presence -- nobles of great
power all of them; but, most especially the last. Samples of a people that had
undergone a terrible grinding and regrinding in the mill, and certainly not in
the fabulous mill which ground old people young, shivered at every corner,
passed in and out at every doorway, looked from every window, fluttered in
every vestige of a garment that the wind shook. The mill which had worked them
down, was the mill that grinds young people old; the children had ancient faces
and grave voices; and upon them, and upon the grown faces, and ploughed into
every furrow of age and coming up afresh, was the sigh, Hunger. It was
prevalent everywhere. Hunger was pushed out of the tall houses, in the wretched
clothing that hung upon poles and lines; Hunger was patched into them with
straw and rag and wood and paper; Hunger was repeated in every fragment of the
small modicum of firewood that the man sawed off; Hunger stared down from the
smokeless chimneys, and started up from the filthy street that had no offal,
among its refuse, of anything to eat. Hunger was the inscription on the baker's
shelves, written in every small loaf of his scanty stock of bad bread; at the
sausage-shop, in every dead-dog preparation that was offered for sale. Hunger
rattled its dry bones among the roasting chestnuts in the turned cylinder;
Hunger was shred into atomics in every farthing porringer of husky chips of
potato, fried with some reluctant drops of oil.
Its abiding place was
in all things fitted to it. A narrow winding street, full of offence and
stench, with other narrow winding streets diverging, all peopled by rags and
nightcaps, and all smelling of rags and nightcaps, and all visible things with
a brooding look upon them that looked ill. In the hunted air of the people
there was yet some wild-beast thought of the possibility of turning at bay.
Depressed and slinking though they were, eyes of fire were not wanting among
them; nor compressed lips, white with what they suppressed; nor foreheads
knitted into the likeness of the gallows-rope they mused about enduring, or
inflicting. The trade signs (and they were almost as many as the shops) were,
all, grim illustrations of Want. The butcher and the porkman painted up, only
the leanest scrags of meat; the baker, the coarsest of meagre loaves. The
people rudely pictured as drinking in the wine-shops, croaked over their scanty
measures of thin wine and beer, and were gloweringly confidential together.
Nothing was represented in a flourishing condition, save tools and weapons;
but, the cutler's knives and axes were sharp and bright, the smith's hammers
were heavy, and the gunmaker's stock was murderous. The crippling stones of the
pavement, with their many little reservoirs of mud and water, had no footways,
but broke off abruptly at the doors. The kennel, to make amends, ran down the
middle of the street -- when it ran at all: which was only after heavy rains,
and then it ran, by many eccentric fits, into the houses. Across the streets,
at wide intervals, one clumsy lamp was slung by a rope and pulley; at night,
when the lamplighter had let these down, and lighted, and hoisted them again, a
feeble grove of dim wicks swung in a sickly manner overhead, as if they were at
sea. Indeed they were at sea, and the ship and crew were in peril of tempest.
For, the time was to
come, when the gaunt scarecrows of that region should have watched the
lamplighter, in their idleness and hunger, so long, as to conceive the idea of
improving on his method, and hauling up men by those ropes and pulleys, to
flare upon the darkness of their condition. But, the time was not come yet; and
every wind that blew over France shook the rags of the scarecrows in vain, for
the birds, fine of song and feather, took no warning.
The wine-shop was a
corner shop, better than most others in its appearance and degree, and the
master of the wine-shop had stood outside it, in a yellow waistcoat and green
breeches, looking on at the struggle for the lost wine. "It's not my affair,"
said he, with a final shrug of the shoulders. "The people from the market
did it. Let them bring another."
There, his eyes
happening to catch the tall joker writing up his joke, he called to him across
the way:
"Say, then, my
Gaspard, what do you do there?"
The fellow pointed to
his joke with immense significance, as is often the way with his tribe. It
missed its mark, and completely failed, as is often the way with his tribe too.
"What now? Are you
a subject for the mad hospital?" said the wine- shop keeper, crossing the
road, and obliterating the jest with a handful of mud, picked up for the
purpose, and smeared over it. "Why do you write in the public streets? Is
there -- tell me thou -- is there no other place to write such words in?"
In his expostulation he
dropped his cleaner hand (perhaps accidentally, perhaps not) upon the joker's
heart. The joker rapped it with his own, took a nimble spring upward, and came
down in a fantastic dancing attitude, with one of his stained shoes jerked off
his foot into his hand, and held out. A joker of an extremely, not to say
wolfishly practical character, he looked, under those circumstances.
"Put it on, put it
on," said the other. "Call wine, wine; and finish there." With
that advice, he wiped his soiled hand upon the joker's dress, such as it was --
quite deliberately, as having dirtied the hand on his account; and then
recrossed the road and entered the wine-shop.
This wine-shop keeper
was a bull-necked, martial-looking man of thirty, and he should have been of a
hot temperament, for, although it was a bitter day, he wore no coat, but
carried one slung over his shoulder. His shirt-sleeves were rolled up, too, and
his brown arms were bare to the elbows. Neither did he wear anything more on
his head than his own crisply-curling short dark hair. He was a dark man
altogether, with good eyes and a good bold breadth between them. Good-humoured
looking on the whole, but implacable-looking, too; evidently a man of a strong
resolution and a set purpose; a man not desirable to be met, rushing down a
narrow pass with a gulf on either side, for nothing would turn the man.
Madame Defarge, his
wife, sat in the shop behind the counter as he came in. Madame Defarge was a
stout woman of about his own age, with a watchful eye that seldom seemed to
look at anything, a large hand heavily ringed, a steady face, strong features,
and great composure of manner. There was a character about Madame Defarge, from
which one might have predicated that she did not often make mistakes against
herself in any of the reckonings over which she presided. Madame Defarge being
sensitive to cold, was wrapped in fur, and had a quantity of bright shawl
twined about her head, though not to the concealment of her large ear-rings.
Her knitting was before her, but she had laid it down to pick her teeth with a
toothpick. Thus engaged, with her right elbow supported by her left hand,
Madame Defarge said nothing when her lord came in, but coughed just one grain
of cough. This, in combination with the lifting of her darkly defined eyebrows
over her toothpick by the breadth of a line, suggested to her husband that he
would do well to look round the shop among the customers, for any new customer
who had dropped in while he stepped over the way.
The wine-shop keeper
accordingly rolled his eyes about, until they rested upon an elderly gentleman
and a young lady, who were seated in a corner. Other company were there: two
playing cards, two playing dominoes, three standing by the counter lengthening
out a short supply of wine. As he passed behind the counter, he took notice
that the elderly gentleman said in a look to the young lady, "This is our
man."
"What the devil do
you do in that galley there?" said Monsieur Defarge to himself; "I
don't know you."
But, he feigned not to
notice the two strangers, and fell into discourse with the triumvirate of
customers who were drinking at the counter.
"How goes it,
Jacques?" said one of these three to Monsieur Defarge. "Is all the
spilt wine swallowed?"
"Every drop,
Jacques," answered Monsieur Defarge.
When this interchange
of Christian name was effected, Madame Defarge, picking her teeth with her
toothpick, coughed another grain of cough, and raised her eyebrows by the
breadth of another line.
"It is not often,"
said the second of the three, addressing Monsieur Defarge, "that many of
these miserable beasts know the taste of wine, or of anything but black bread
and death. Is it not so, Jacques?"
"It is so,
Jacques," Monsieur Defarge returned.
At this second
interchange of the Christian name, Madame Defarge, still using her toothpick
with profound composure, coughed another grain of cough, and raised her
eyebrows by the breadth of another line.
The last of the three
now said his say, as he put down his empty drinking vessel and smacked his
lips.
"Ah! So much the
worse! A bitter taste it is that such poor cattle always have in their mouths,
and hard lives they live, Jacques. Am I right, Jacques?"
"You are right,
Jacques," was the response of Monsieur Defarge.
This third interchange
of the Christian name was completed at the moment when Madame Defarge put her
toothpick by, kept her eyebrows up, and slightly rustled in her seat.
"Hold then!
True!" muttered her husband. "Gentlemen -- my wife!"
The three customers
pulled off their hats to Madame Defarge, with three flourishes. She
acknowledged their homage by bending her head, and giving them a quick look.
Then she glanced in a casual manner round the wine-shop, took up her knitting
with great apparent calmness and repose of spirit, and became absorbed in it.
"Gentlemen,"
said her husband, who had kept his bright eye observantly upon her, "good
day. The chamber, furnished bachelor-fashion, that you wished to see, and were
inquiring for when I stepped out, is on the fifth floor. The doorway of the
staircase gives on the little courtyard close to the left here," pointing
with his hand, "near to the window of my establishment. But, now that I
remember, one of you has already been there, and can show the way. Gentlemen,
adieu!"
They paid for their
wine, and left the place. The eyes of Monsieur Defarge were studying his wife
at her knitting when the elderly gentleman advanced from his corner, and begged
the favour of a word.
"Willingly,
sir," said Monsieur Defarge, and quietly stepped with him to the door.
Their conference was
very short, but very decided. Almost at the first word, Monsieur Defarge
started and became deeply attentive. It had not lasted a minute, when he nodded
and went out. The gentleman then beckoned to the young lady, and they, too,
went out. Madame Defarge knitted with nimble fingers and steady eyebrows, and
saw nothing.
Mr. Jarvis Lorry and
Miss Manette, emerging from the wine-shop thus, joined Monsieur Defarge in the
doorway to which he had directed his own company just before. It opened from a
stinking little black courtyard, and was the general public entrance to a great
pile of houses, inhabited by a great number of people. In the gloomy tile-paved
entry to the gloomy tile-paved staircase, Monsieur Defarge bent down on one
knee to the child of his old master, and put her hand to his lips. It was a
gentle action, but not at all gently done; a very remarkable transformation had
come over him in a few seconds. He had no good-humour in his face, nor any
openness of aspect left, but had become a secret, angry, dangerous man.
"It is very high;
it is a little difficult. Better to begin slowly." Thus, Monsieur Defarge,
in a stem voice, to Mr. Lorry, as they began ascending the stairs.
"Is he
alone?" the latter whispered.
"Alone! God help
him, who should be with him!" said the other, in the same low voice.
"Is he always
alone, then?"
'Yes.
"Of his own
desire?"
"Of his own
necessity. As he was, when I first saw him after they found me and demanded to
know if I would take him, and, at my peril be discreet -- as he was then, so he
is now."
"He is greatly
changed?"
"Changed!"
The keeper of the
wine-shop stopped to strike the wall with his hand, and mutter a tremendous
curse. No direct answer could have been half so forcible. Mr. Lorry's spirits
grew heavier and heavier, as he and his two companions ascended higher and
higher.
Such a staircase, with
its accessories, in the older and more crowded parts of Paris, would be bad
enough now; but, at that time, it was vile indeed to unaccustomed and
unhardened senses. Every little habitation within the great foul nest of one
high building -- that is to say, the room or rooms within every door that
opened on the general staircase -- left its own heap of refuse on its own
landing, besides flinging other refuse from its own windows. The uncontrollable
and hopeless mass of decomposition so engendered, would have polluted the air,
even if poverty and deprivation had not loaded it with their intangible
impurities; the two bad sources combined made it almost insupportable. Through
such an atmosphere, by a steep dark shaft of dirt and poison, the way lay.
Yielding to his own disturbance of mind, and to his young companion's
agitation, which became greater every instant, Mr. Jarvis Lorry twice stopped to
rest. Each of these stoppages was made at a doleful grating, by which any
languishing good airs that were left uncorrupted, seemed to escape, and all
spoilt and sickly vapours seemed to crawl in. Through the rusted bars, tastes,
rather than glimpses, were caught of the jumbled neighbourhood; and nothing
within range, nearer or lower than the summits of the two great towers of
Notre-Dame, had any promise on it of healthy life or wholesome aspirations.
At last, the top of the
staircase was gained, and they stopped for the third time. There was yet an
upper staircase, of a steeper inclination and of contracted dimensions, to be
ascended, before the garret story was reached. The keeper of the wine-shop,
always going a little in advance, and always going on the side which Mr. Lorry
took, as though he dreaded to be asked any question by the young lady, turned
himself about here, and, carefully feeling in the pockets of the coat he
carried over his shoulder, took out a key.
"The door is
locked then, my friend?" said Mr. Lorry, surprised.
"Ay. Yes,"
was the grim reply of Monsieur Defarge.
"You think it
necessary to keep the unfortunate gentleman so retired?"
"I think it
necessary to turn the key." Monsieur Defarge whispered it closer in his
ear, and frowned heavily.
"Why?"
"Why! Because he
has lived so long, locked up, that he would be frightened -- rave -- tear
himself to pieces -- die -- come to I know not what harm -- if his door was
left open."
"Is it
possible!" exclaimed Mr. Lorry.
"Is it possible!"
repeated Defarge, bitterly. "Yes. And a beautiful world we live in, when
it is possible, and when many other such things are possible, and not only
possible, but done -- done, see you! -- under that sky there, every day. Long
live the Devil. Let us go on."
This dialogue had been
held in so very low a whisper, that not a word of it had reached the young
lady's ears. But, by this time she trembled under such strong emotion, and her
face expressed such deep anxiety, and, above all, such dread and terror, that
Mr. Lorry felt it incumbent on him to speak a word or two of reassurance.
"Courage, dear
miss! Courage! Business! The worst will be over in a moment; it is but passing
the room-door, and the worst is over. Then, all the good you bring to him, all the
relief, all the happiness you bring to him, begin. Let our good friend here,
assist you on that side. That's well, friend Defarge. Come, now. Business,
business!"
They went up slowly and
softly. The staircase was short, and they were soon at the top. There, as it
had an abrupt turn in it, they came all at once in sight of three men, whose
heads were bent down close together at the side of a door, and who were
intently looking into the room to which the door belonged, through some chinks
or holes in the wall. On hearing footsteps close at hand, these three turned,
and rose, and showed themselves to be the three of one name who had been
drinking in the wine-shop.
"I forgot them in
the surprise of your visit," explained Monsieur Defarge. "Leave us,
good boys; we have business here."
The three glided by,
and went silently down.
There appearing to be
no other door on that floor, and the keeper of the wine-shop going straight to
this one when they were left alone, Mr. Lorry asked him in a whisper, with a
little anger:
"Do you make a
show of Monsieur Manette?"
"I show him, in the
way you have seen, to a chosen few."
"Is that
well?"
"I think it is
well."
"Who are the few?
How do you choose them?"
"I choose them as
real men, of my name -- Jacques is my name -- to whom the sight is likely to do
good. Enough; you are English; that is another thing. Stay there, if you
please, a little moment."
With an admonitory
gesture to keep them back, he stooped, and looked in through the crevice in the
wall. Soon raising his head again, he struck twice or thrice upon the door --
evidently with no other object than to make a noise there. With the same
intention, he drew the key across it, three or four times, before he put it
clumsily into the lock, and turned it as heavily as he could.
The door slowly opened
inward under his hand, and he looked into the room and said something. A faint
voice answered something. Little more than a single syllable could have been
spoken on either side.
He looked back over his
shoulder, and beckoned them to enter. Mr. Lorry got his arm securely round the daughter's
waist, and held her; for he felt that she was sinking.
"A -- a -- a --
business, business!" he urged, with a moisture that was not of business
shining on his cheek. "Come in, come in!"
"I am afraid of
it," she answered, shuddering.
"Of it?
What?"
"I mean of him. Of
my father."
Rendered in a manner
desperate, by her state and by the beckoning of their conductor, he drew over
his neck the arm that shook upon his shoulder, lifted her a little, and hurried
her into the room. He sat her down just within the door, and held her, clinging
to him.
Defarge drew out the
key, closed the door, locked it on the inside, took out the key again, and held
it in his hand. All this he did, methodically, and with as loud and harsh an
accompaniment of noise as he could make. Finally, he walked across the room
with a measured tread to where the window was. He stopped there, and faced
round.
The garret, built to be
a depository for firewood and the like, was dim and dark: for, the window of
dormer shape, was in truth a door in the roof, with a little crane over it for
the hoisting up of stores from the street: unglazed, and closing up the middle
in two pieces, like any other door of French construction. To exclude the cold,
one half of this door was fast closed, and the other was opened but a very
little way. Such a scanty portion of light was admitted through these means,
that it was difficult, on first coming in, to see anything; and long habit
alone could have slowly formed in any one, the ability to do any work requiring
nicety in such obscurity. Yet, work of that kind was being done in the garret;
for, with his back towards the door, and his face towards the window where the
keeper of the wine-shop stood looking at him, a white-haired man sat on a low
bench, stooping forward and very busy, making shoes.
"GOOD DAY!"
said Monsieur Defarge, looking down at the white head that bent low over the
shoemaking.
It was raised for a
moment, and a very faint voice responded to the salutation, as if it were at a
distance:
"Good day!"
"You are still
hard at work, I see?"
After a long silence,
the head was lifted for another moment, and the voice replied, "Yes -- I
am working." This time, a pair of haggard eyes had looked at the
questioner, before the face had dropped again.
The faintness of the
voice was pitiable and dreadful. It was not the faintness of physical weakness,
though confinement and hard fare no doubt had their part in it. Its deplorable
peculiarity was, that it was the faintness of solitude and disuse. It was like
the last feeble echo of a sound made long and long ago. So entirely had it lost
the life and resonance of the human voice, that it affected the senses like a
once beautiful colour faded away into a poor weak stain. So sunken and
suppressed it was, that it was like a voice underground. So expressive it was,
of a hopeless and lost creature, that a famished traveller, wearied out by
lonely wandering in a wilderness, would have remembered home and friends in
such a tone before lying down to die.
Some minutes of silent
work had passed: and the haggard eyes had looked up again: not with any
interest or curiosity, but with a dull mechanical perception, beforehand, that
the spot where the only visitor they were aware of had stood, was not yet
empty.
"I want,"
said Defarge, who had not removed his gaze from the shoemaker, "to let in
a little more light here. You can bear a little more?"
The shoemaker stopped
his work; looked with a vacant air of listening, at the floor on one side of
him; then similarly, at the floor on the other side of him; then, upward at the
speaker.
"What did you
say?"
"You can bear a
little more light?"
"I must bear it,
if you let it in." (Laying the palest shadow of a stress upon the second
word.)
The opened half-door
was opened a little further, and secured at that angle for the time. A broad
ray of light fell into the garret, and showed the workman with an unfinished
shoe upon his lap, pausing in his labour. His few common tools and various
scraps of leather were at his feet and on his bench. He had a white beard,
raggedly cut, but not very long, a hollow face, and exceedingly bright eyes.
The hollowness and thinness of his face would have caused them to look large,
under his yet dark eyebrows and his confused white hair, though they had been
really otherwise; but, they were naturally large, and looked unnaturally so.
His yellow rags of shirt lay open at the throat, and showed his body to be
withered and worn. He, and his old canvas frock, and his loose stockings, and
all his poor tatters of clothes, had, in a long seclusion from direct light and
air, faded down to such a dull uniformity of parchment- yellow, that it would
have been hard to say which was which.
He had put up a hand
between his eyes and the light, and the very bones of it seemed transparent. So
he sat, with a steadfastly vacant gaze, pausing in his work. He never looked at
the figure before him, without first looking down on this side of himself, then
on that, as if he had lost the habit of associating place with sound; he never
spoke, without first wandering in this manner, and forgetting to speak.
"Are you going to
finish that pair of shoes to-day?" asked Defarge, motioning to Mr. Lorry
to come forward.
"What did you
say?"
"Do you mean to
finish that pair of shoes to-day?"
"I can't say that
I mean to. I suppose so. I don't know."
But, the question
reminded him of his work, and he bent over it again.
Mr. Lorry came silently
forward, leaving the daughter by the door. When he had stood, for a minute or
two, by the side of Defarge, the shoemaker looked up. He showed no surprise at
seeing another figure, but the unsteady fingers of one of his hands strayed to
his lips as he looked at it (his lips and his nails were of the same pale
lead-colour), and then the hand dropped to his work, and he once more bent over
the shoe. The look and the action had occupied but an instant.
"You have a visitor,
you see," said Monsieur Defarge.
"What did you
say?"
"Here is a
visitor."
The shoemaker looked up
as before, but without removing a hand from his work.
"Come!" said
Defarge. "Here is monsieur, who knows a well-made shoe when he sees one.
Show him that shoe you are working at. Take it, monsieur."
Mr. Lorry took it in
his hand.
"Tell monsieur
what kind of shoe it is, and the maker's name."
There was a longer
pause than usual, before the shoemaker replied:
"I forget what it
was you asked me. What did you say?"
"I said, couldn't
you describe the kind of shoe, for monsieur's information?"
"It is a lady's
shoe. It is a young lady's walking-shoe. It is in the present mode. I never saw
the mode. I have had a pattern in my hand." He glanced at the shoe with
some little passing touch of pride.
"And the maker's
name?" said Defarge.
Now that he had no work
to hold, he laid the knuckles of the right hand in the hollow of the left, and
then the knuckles of the left hand in the hollow of the right, and then passed
a hand across his bearded chin, and so on in regular changes, without a
moment's intermission. The task of recalling him from the vagrancy into which
he always sank when he had spoken, was like recalling some very weak person
from a swoon, or endeavouring, in the hope of some disclosure, to stay the
spirit of a fast-dying man.
"Did you ask me
for my name?"
"Assuredly I
did."
"One Hundred and
Five, North Tower."
"Is that
all?"
"One Hundred and
Five, North Tower."
With a weary sound that
was not a sigh, nor a groan, he bent to work again, until the silence was again
broken.
"You are not a
shoemaker by trade?" said Mr. Lorry, looking steadfastly at him.
His haggard eyes turned
to Defarge as if he would have transferred the question to him: but as no help
came from that quarter, they turned back on the questioner when they had sought
the ground.
"I am not a
shoemaker by trade? No, I was not a shoemaker by trade. I -- I learnt it here.
I taught myself. I asked leave to --"
He lapsed away, even
for minutes, ringing those measured changes on his hands the whole time. His
eyes came slowly back, at last, to the face from which they had wandered; when
they rested on it, he started, and resumed, in the manner of a sleeper that
moment awake, reverting to a subject of last night.
"I asked leave to
teach myself, and I got it with much difficulty after a long while, and I have
made shoes ever since."
As he held out his hand
for the shoe that had been taken from him, Mr. Lorry said, still looking
steadfastly in his face:
"Monsieur Manette,
do you remember nothing of me?"
The shoe dropped to the
ground, and he sat looking fixedly at the questioner.
"Monsieur
Manette"; Mr. Lorry laid his hand upon Defarge's arm; "do you
remember nothing of this man? Look at him. Look at me. Is there no old banker,
no old business, no old servant, no old time, rising in your mind, Monsieur
Manette?"
As the captive of many
years sat looking fixedly, by turns, at Mr. Lorry and at Defarge, some long
obliterated marks of an actively intent intelligence in the middle of the
forehead, gradually forced themselves through the black mist that had fallen on
him. They were overclouded again, they were fainter, they were gone; but they
had been there. And so exactly was the expression repeated on the fair young
face of her who had crept along the wall to a point where she could see him,
and where she now stood looking at him, with hands which at first had been only
raised in frightened compassion, if not even to keep him off and shut out the
sight of him, but which were now extending towards him, trembling with
eagerness to lay the spectral face upon her warm young breast, and love it back
to life and hope -- so exactly was the expression repeated (though in stronger
characters) on her fair young face, that it looked as though it had passed like
a moving light, from him to her.
Darkness had fatten on
him in its place. He looked at the two, less and less attentively, and his eyes
in gloomy abstraction sought the ground and looked about him in the old way.
Finally, with a deep long sigh, he took the shoe up, and resumed his work.
"Have you
recognised him, monsieur?" asked Defarge in a whisper.
"Yes; for a
moment. At first I thought it quite hopeless, but I have unquestionably seen,
for a single moment, the face that I once knew so well. Hush! Let us draw
further back. Hush!"
She had moved from the
wall of the garret, very near to the bench on which he sat. There was something
awful in his unconsciousness of the figure that could have put out its hand and
touched him as he stooped over his labour.
Not a word was spoken,
not a sound was made. She stood, like a spirit, beside him, and he bent over
his work.
It happened, at length,
that he had occasion to change the instrument in his hand, for his shoemaker's
knife. It lay on that side of him which was not the side on which she stood. He
had taken it up, and was stooping to work again, when his eyes caught the skirt
of her dress. He raised them, and saw her face. The two spectators started
forward, but she stayed them with a motion of her hand. She had no fear of his
striking at her with the knife, though they had.
He stared at her with a
fearful look, and after a while his lips began to form some words, though no
sound proceeded from them. By degrees, in the pauses of his quick and laboured
breathing, he was heard to say:
"What is
this?"
With the tears
streaming down her face, she put her two hands to her lips, and kissed them to
him; then clasped them on her breast, as if she laid his ruined head there.
"You are not the
gaoler's daughter?"
She sighed
"No."
"Who are
you?"
Not yet trusting the
tones of her voice, she sat down on the bench beside him. He recoiled, but she
laid her hand upon his arm. A strange thrill struck him when she did so, and
visibly passed over his frame; he laid the knife down' softly, as he sat
staring at her.
Her golden hair, which
she wore in long curls, had been hurriedly pushed aside, and fell down over her
neck. Advancing his hand by little and little, he took it up and looked at it.
In the midst of the action he went astray, and, with another deep sigh, fell to
work at his shoemaking.
But not for long.
Releasing his arm, she laid her hand upon his shoulder. After looking
doubtfully at it, two or three times, as if to be sure that it was really
there, he laid down his work, put his hand to his neck, and took off a
blackened string with a scrap of folded rag attached to it. He opened this,
carefully, on his knee, and it contained a very little quantity of hair: not
more than one or two long golden hairs, which he had, in some old day, wound
off upon his finger.
He took her hair into
his hand again, and looked closely at it. "It is the same. How can it be!
When was it! How was it!"
As the concentrated
expression returned to his forehead, he seemed to become conscious that it was
in hers too. He turned her full to the light, and looked at her.
"She had laid her
head upon my shoulder, that night when I was summoned out -- she had a fear of
my going, though I had none -- and when I was brought to the North Tower they
found these upon my sleeve. 'You will leave me them? They can never help me to
escape in the body, though they may in the spirit.' Those were the words I
said. I remember them very well."
He formed this speech
with his lips many times before he could utter it. But when he did find spoken
words for it, they came to him coherently, though slowly.
"How was this? --
Was it you?"
Once more, the two
spectators started, as he turned upon her with a frightful suddenness. But she
sat perfectly still in his grasp, and only said, in a low voice, "I
entreat you, good gentlemen, do not come near us, do not speak, do not
move!"
"Hark!" he
exclaimed. "Whose voice was that?"
His hands released her
as he uttered this cry, and went up to his white hair, which they tore in a
frenzy. It died out, as everything but his shoemaking did die out of him, and
he refolded his little packet and tried to secure it in his breast; but he
still looked at her, and gloomily shook his head.
"No, no, no; you
are too young, too blooming. It can't be. See what the prisoner is. These are
not the hands she knew, this is not the face she knew, this is not a voice she
ever heard. No, no. She was -- and He was -- before the slow years of the North
Tower -- ages ago. What is your name, my gentle angel?"
Hailing his softened
tone and manner, his daughter fell upon her knees before him, with her
appealing hands upon his breast.
"O, sir, at
another time you shall know my name, and who my mother was, and who my father,
and how I never knew their hard, hard history. But I cannot tell you at this
time, and I cannot tell you here. All that I may tell you, here and now, is,
that I pray to you to touch me and to bless me. Kiss me, kiss me! O my dear, my
dear!"
His cold white head
mingled with her radiant hair, which warmed and lighted it as though it were
the light of Freedom shining on him.
"If you hear in my
voice -- I don't know that it is so, but I hope it is -- if you hear in my
voice any resemblance to a voice that once was sweet music in your ears, weep
for it, weep for it! If you touch, in touching my hair, anything that recalls a
beloved head that lay on your breast when you were young and free, weep for it,
weep for it! If, when I hint to you of a Home that is before us, where I will
be true to you with all my duty and with all my faithful service, I bring back
the remembrance of a Home long desolate, while your poor heart pined away, weep
for it, weep for it!"
She held him closer
round the neck, and rocked him on her breast like a child.
"If, when I tell
you, dearest dear, that your agony is over, and that I have come here to take
you from it, and that we go to England to be at peace and at rest, I cause you
to think of your useful life laid waste, and of our native France so wicked to
you, weep for it, weep for it! And if, when I shall tell you of my name, and of
my father who is living, and of my mother who is dead, you learn that I have to
kneel to my honoured father, and implore his pardon for having never for his
sake striven all day and lain awake and wept all night, because the love of my
poor mother hid his torture from me, weep for it, weep for it! Weep for her,
then, and for me! Good gentlemen, thank God! I feel his sacred tears upon my
face, and his sobs strike against my heart. O, see! Thank God for us, thank
God!"
He had sunk in her
arms, and his face dropped on her breast: a sight so touching, yet so terrible
in the tremendous wrong and suffering which had gone before it, that the two
beholders covered their faces.
When the quiet of the
garret had been long undisturbed, and his heaving breast and shaken form had
long yielded to the calm that must follow all storms -- emblem to humanity, of
the rest and silence into which the storm called Life must hush at last -- they
came forward to raise the father and daughter from the ground. He had gradually
dropped to the floor, and lay there in a lethargy, worn out. She had nestled
down with him, that his head might lie upon her arm; and her hair drooping over
him curtained him from the light.
"If, without
disturbing him," she said, raising her hand to Mr. Lorry as he stooped
over them, after repeated blowings of his nose, "all could be arranged for
our leaving Paris at once, so that, from the, very door, he could be taken away
--"
"But, consider. Is
he fit for the journey?" asked Mr. Lorry.
"More fit for that,
I think, than to remain in this city, so dreadful to him."
"It is true,"
said Defarge, who was kneeling to look on and hear. "More than that;
Monsieur Manette is, for all reasons, best out of France. Say, shall I hire a
carriage and post-horses?"
"That's
business," said Mr. Lorry, resuming on the shortest notice his methodical
manners; "and if business is to be done, I had better do it."
"Then be so
kind," urged Miss Manette, "as to leave us here. You see how composed
he has become, and you cannot be afraid to leave him with me now. Why should
you be? If you will lock the door to secure us from interruption, I do not
doubt that you will find him, when you come back, as quiet as you leave him. In
any case, I will take care of him until you return, and then we will remove him
straight."
Both Mr. Lorry and
Defarge were rather disinclined to this course, and in favour of one of them
remaining. But, as there were not only carriage and horses to be seen to, but
travelling papers; and as time pressed, for the day was drawing to an end, it
came at last to their hastily dividing the business that was necessary to be
done, and hurrying away to do it.
Then, as the darkness
closed in, the daughter laid her head down on the hard ground close at the
father's side, and watched him. The darkness deepened and deepened, and they
both lay quiet, until a light gleamed through the chinks in the wall.
Mr. Lorry and Monsieur
Defarge had made all ready for the journey, and had brought with them, besides
travelling cloaks and wrappers, bread and meat, wine, and hot coffee. Monsieur
Defarge put this provender, and the lamp he carried, on the shoemaker's bench
(there was nothing else in the garret but a pallet bed), and he and Mr. Lorry
roused the captive, and assisted him to his feet.
No human intelligence
could have read the mysteries of his mind, in the scared blank wonder of his
face. Whether he knew what had happened, whether he recollected what they had
said to him, whether he knew that he was free, were questions which no sagacity
could have solved. They tried speaking to him; but, he was so confused, and so
very slow to answer, that they took fright at his bewilderment, and agreed for
the time to tamper with him no more. He had a wild, lost manner of occasionally
clasping his head in his hands, that had not been seen in him before; yet, he
had some pleasure in the mere sound of his daughter's voice, and invariably
turned to it when she spoke.
In the submissive way
of one long accustomed to obey under coercion, he ate and drank what they gave
him to eat and drink, and put on the cloak and other wrappings, that they gave
him to wear. He readily responded to his daughter's drawing her arm through
his, and took -- and kept -- her hand in both his own.
They began to descend;
Monsieur Defarge going first with the lamp, Mr. Lorry closing the little
procession. They had not traversed many steps of the long main staircase when
he stopped, and stared at the roof and round at the wails.
"You remember the
place, my father? You remember coming up here?"
"What did you
say?"
But, before she could
repeat the question, he murmured an answer as if she had repeated it.
"Remember? No, I
don't remember. It was so very long ago."
That he had no
recollection whatever of his having been brought from his prison to that house,
was apparent to them. They beard him mutter, "One Hundred and Five, North
Tower;" and when he looked about him, it evidently was for the strong
fortress-walls which had long encompassed him. On their reaching the courtyard
he instinctively altered his tread, as being in expectation of a drawbridge;
and when there was no drawbridge, and he saw the carriage waiting in the open
street, he dropped his daughter's hand and clasped his head again.
No crowd was about the
door; no people were discernible at any of the many windows; not even a chance
passerby was in the street. An unnatural silence and desertion reigned there.
Only one soul was to be seen, and that was Madame Defarge -- who leaned against
the door-post, knitting, and saw nothing.
The prisoner had got
into a coach, and his daughter had followed him, when Mr. Lorry's feet were
arrested on the step by his asking, miserably, for his shoemaking tools and the
unfinished shoes. Madame Defarge immediately called to her husband that she
would get them, and went, knitting, out of the lamplight, through the
courtyard. She quickly brought them down and handed them in; -- and immediately
afterwards leaned against the door-post, knitting, and saw nothing.
Defarge got upon the
box, and gave the word "To the Barrier!" The postilion cracked his
whip, and they clattered away under the feeble over- swinging lamps.
Under the over-swinging
lamps -- swinging ever brighter in the better streets, and ever dimmer in the
worse -- and by lighted shops, gay crowds, illuminated coffee-houses, and
theatre-doors, to one of the city gates. Soldiers with lanterns, at the
guard-house there. "Your papers, travellers!" "See here then,
Monsieur the Officer," said Defarge, getting down, and taking him gravely
apart, "these are the papers of monsieur inside, with the white head. They
were consigned to me, with him, at the --" He dropped his voice, there was
a flutter among the military lanterns, and one of them being handed into the
coach by an arm in uniform, the eyes connected with the arm looked, not an
every day or an every night look, at monsieur with the white head. "It is
well. Forward!" from the uniform. "Adieu!" from Defarge. And so,
under a short grove of feebler and feebler over-swinging lamps, out under the
great grove of stars.
Beneath that arch of
unmoved and eternal lights; some, so remote from this little earth that the
learned tell us it is doubtful whether their rays have even yet discovered it,
as a point in space where anything is suffered or done: the shadows of the
night were broad and black. All through the cold and restless interval, until
dawn, they once more whispered in the ears of Mr. Jarvis Lorry -- sitting
opposite the buried man who had been dug out, and wondering what subtle powers
were for ever lost to him, and what were capable of restoration -- the old
inquiry:
"I hope you care
to be recalled to life?"
And the old answer:
"I can't
say." THE END OF THE FIRST BOOK.
TELLSON'S BANK by
Temple Bar was an old-fashioned place, even in the year one thousand seven
hundred and eighty. It was very small, very dark, very ugly, very incommodious.
It was an old-fashioned place, moreover, in the moral attribute that the
partners in the House were proud of its smallness, proud of its darkness, proud
of its ugliness, proud of its incommodiousness. They were even boastful of its
eminence in those particulars, and were fired by an express conviction that, if
it were less objectionable, it would be less respectable. This was no passive
belief, but an active weapon which they flashed at more convenient places of
business. Tellson's (they said) wanted no elbow-room, Tellson's wanted no
light, Tellson's wanted no embellishment. Noakes and Co.'s might, or Snooks
Brothers' might; but Tellson's, thank Heaven! --
Any one of these
partners would have disinherited his son on the question of rebuilding
Tellson's. In this respect the House was much on a par with the Country; which
did very often disinherit its sons for suggesting improvements in laws and
customs that had long been highly objectionable, but were only the more
respectable.
Thus it had come to
pass, that Tellson's was the triumphant perfection of inconvenience. After
bursting open a door of idiotic obstinacy with a weak rattle in its throat, you
fell into Tellson's down two steps, and came to your senses in a miserable
little shop, with two little counters, where the oldest of men made your cheque
shake as if the wind rustled it, while they examined the signature by the
dingiest of windows, which were always under a shower-bath of mud from
Fleet-street, and which were made the dingier by their own iron bars proper,
and the heavy shadow of Temple Bar. If your business necessitated your seeing
"the House," you were put into a species of Condemned Hold at the
back, where you meditated on a misspent life, until the House came with its
bands in its pockets, and you could hardly blink at it in the dismal twilight.
Your money came out of, or went into, wormy old wooden drawers, particles of
which flew up your nose and down your throat when they were opened and shut.
Your bank-notes had a musty odour, as if they were fast decomposing into rags
again. Your plate was stowed away among the neighbouring cesspools, and evil
communications corrupted its good polish in a day or two. Your deeds got into
extemporised strong-rooms made of kitchens and sculleries, and fretted all the
fat out of their parchments into the banking-house air. Your lighter boxes of
family papers went up-stairs into a Barmecide room, that always had a great
dining- table in it and never had a dinner, and where, even in the year one
thousand seven hundred and eighty, the first letters written to you by your old
love, or by your little children, were but newly released from the horror of
being ogled through the windows, by the heads exposed on Temple Bar with an
insensate brutality and ferocity worthy of Abyssinia or Ashantee.
But indeed, at that
time, putting to death was a recipe much in vogue with all trades and
professions, and not least of all with Tellson's. Death is Nature's remedy for
all things, and why not Legislation's? Accordingly, the forger was put to
Death; the utterer of a bad note was put to Death; the unlawful opener of a
letter was put to Death; the purloiner of forty shillings and sixpence was put
to Death; the holder of a horse at Tellson's door, who made off with it, was
put to Death; the coiner of a bad shilling was put to Death; the sounders of
three-fourths of the notes in the whole gamut of Crime, were put to Death. Not
that it did the least good in the way of prevention -- it might almost have
been worth remarking that the fact was exactly the reverse -- but, it cleared
off (as to this world) the trouble of each particular case, and left nothing
else connected with it to be looked after. Thus, Tellson's, in its day, like
greater places of business, its contemporaries, had taken so many lives, that,
if the heads laid low before it had been ranged on Temple Bar instead of being
privately disposed of, they would probably have excluded what little light the
ground floor bad, in a rather significant manner.
Cramped in all kinds of
dun cupboards and hutches at Tellson's, the oldest of men carried on the
business gravely. When they took a young man into Tellson's London house, they
hid him somewhere till he was old. They kept him in a dark place, like a
cheese, until he had the full Tellson flavour and blue-mould upon him. Then
only was he permitted to be seen, spectacularly poring over large books, and
casting his breeches and gaiters into the general weight of the establishment.
Outside Tellson's --
never by any means in it, unless called in -- was an odd-job-man, an occasional
porter and messenger, who served as the live sign of the house. He was never
absent during business hours, unless upon an errand, and then he was
represented by his son: a grisly urchin of twelve, who was his express image.
People understood that Tellson's, in a stately way, tolerated the odd-job-man.
The house had always tolerated some person in that capacity, and time and tide
had drifted this person to the post. His surname was Cruncher, and on the
youthful occasion of his renouncing by proxy the works of darkness, in the
easterly parish church of Hounsditch, he had received the added appellation of
Jerry.
The scene was Mr.
Cruncher's private lodging in Hanging-sword-alley, Whitefriars: the time,
half-past seven of the clock on a windy March morning, Anno Domini seventeen
hundred and eighty. (Mr. Cruncher himself always spoke of the year of our Lord
as Anna Dominoes: apparently under the impression that the Christian era dated
from the invention of a popular game, by a lady who had bestowed her name upon
it.)
Mr. Cruncher's
apartments were not in a savoury neighbourhood, and were but two in number,
even if a closet with a single pane of glass in it might be counted as one. But
they were very decently kept. Early as it was, on the windy March morning, the
room in which he lay abed was already scrubbed throughout; and between the cups
and saucers arranged for breakfast, and the lumbering deal table, a very clean
white cloth was spread.
Mr. Cruncher reposed
under a patchwork counterpane, like a Harlequin at home. At fast, he slept
heavily, but, by degrees, began to roll and surge in bed, until he rose above
the surface, with his spiky hair looking as if it must tear the sheets to
ribbons. At which juncture, he exclaimed, in a voice of dire exasperation:
"Bust me, if she
ain't at it agin!"
A woman of orderly and
industrious appearance rose from her knees in a corner, with sufficient haste
and trepidation to show that she was the person referred to.
"What!" said
Mr. Cruncher, looking out of bed for a boot. "You're at it agin, are
you?"
After hailing the mom
with this second salutation, he threw a boot at the woman as a third. It was a
very muddy boot, and may introduce the odd circumstance connected with Mr.
Cruncher's domestic economy, that, whereas he often came home after banking
hours with clean boots, he often got up next morning to find the same boots
covered with clay.
"What," said
Mr. Cruncher, varying his apostrophe after missing his mark -- "what are
you up to, Aggerawayter?"
"I was only saying
my prayers."
"Saying your
prayers! You're a nice woman! What do you mean by flopping yourself down and
praying agin me?"
"I was not praying
against you; I was praying for you."
"You weren't. And
if you were, I won't be took the liberty with. Here! your mother's a nice
woman, young Jerry, going a praying agin your father's prosperity. You've got a
dutiful mother, you have, my son. You've got a religious mother, you have, my
boy: going and flopping herself down, and praying that the bread-and-butter may
be snatched out of the mouth of her only child."
Master Cruncher (who
was in his shirt) took this very ill, and, turning to his mother, strongly
deprecated any praying away of his personal board.
"And what do you
suppose, you conceited female," said Mr. Cruncher, with unconscious
inconsistency, "that the worth of your prayers may be? Name the price that
you put your prayers at!"
"They only come
from the heart, Jerry. They are worth no more than that."
"Worth no more
than that," repeated Mr. Cruncher. "They ain't worth much, then.
Whether or no, I won't be prayed agin, I tell you. I can't afford it. I'm not a
going to be made unlucky by your sneaking. If you must go flopping yourself
down, flop in favour of your husband and child, and not in opposition to 'em.
If I had had any but a unnat'ral wife, and this poor boy had had any but a
unnat'ral mother, I might have made some money last week instead of being
counter-prayed and countermined and religiously circumwented into the worst of
luck. B-u-u-ust me!" said Mr. Cruncher, who all this time had been putting
on his clothes, "if I ain't, what with piety and one blowed thing and
another, been choused this last week into as bad luck as ever a poor devil of a
honest tradesman met with! Young Jerry, dress yourself, my boy, and while I
clean my boots keep a eye upon your mother now and then, and if you see any signs
of more flopping, give me a call. For, I tell you," here he addressed his
wife once more, "I won't be gone agin, in this manner. I am as rickety as
a hackney-coach, I'm as sleepy as laudanum, my lines is strained to that degree
that I shouldn't know, if it wasn't for the pain in 'em, which was me and which
somebody else, yet I'm none the better for it in pocket; and it's my suspicion
that you've been at it from morning to night to prevent me from being the
better for it in pocket, and I won't put up with it, Aggerawayter, and what do
you say now!"
Growling, in addition,
such phrases as "Ah! yes! You're religious, too. You wouldn't put yourself
in opposition to the interests of your husband and child, would you? Not
you!" and throwing off other sarcastic sparks from the whirling grindstone
of his indignation, Mr. Cruncher betook himself to his boot-cleaning and his
general preparation for business. In the meantime, his son, whose head was
garnished with tenderer spikes, and whose young eyes stood close by one
another, as his father's did, kept the required watch upon his mother. He
greatly disturbed that poor woman at intervals, by darting out of his sleeping
closet, where he made his toilet, with a suppressed cry of "You are going
to flop, mother. -- Halloa, father!" and, after raising this fictitious
alarm, darting in again with an undutiful grin.
Mr. Cruncher's temper
was not at all improved when he came to his breakfast. He resented Mrs.
Cruncher's saying grace with particular animosity.
"Now, Aggerawayter!
What are you up to? At it again?"
His wife explained that
she had merely "asked a blessing."
"Don't do
it!" said Mr. Crunches looking about, as if he rather expected to see the
loaf disappear under the efficacy of his wife's petitions. "I ain't a
going to be blest out of house and home. I won't have my wittles blest off my
table. Keep still!"
Exceedingly red-eyed
and grim, as if he had been up all night at a party which had taken anything
but a convivial turn, Jerry Cruncher worried his breakfast rather than ate it,
growling over it like any four-footed inmate of a menagerie. Towards nine
o'clock he smoothed his ruffled aspect, and, presenting as respectable and
business-like an exterior as he could overlay his natural self with, issued
forth to the occupation of the day.
It could scarcely be
called a trade, in spite of his favourite description of himself as "a
honest tradesman." His stock consisted of a wooden stool, made out of a
broken-backed chair cut down, which stool, young Jerry, walking at his father's
side, carried every morning to beneath the banking-house window that was
nearest Temple Bar: where, with the addition of the first handful of straw that
could be gleaned from any passing vehicle to keep the cold and wet from the
odd-job-man's feet, it formed the encampment for the day. On this post of his,
Mr. Cruncher was as well known to Fleet-street and the Temple, as the Bar
itself, -- and was almost as ill-looking.
Encamped at a quarter
before nine, in good time to touch his three- cornered hat to the oldest of men
as they passed in to Tellson's, Jerry took up his station on this windy March
morning, with young Jerry standing by him, when not engaged in making forays
through the Bar, to inflict bodily and mental injuries of an acute description
on passing boys who were small enough for his amiable purpose. Father and son,
extremely like each other, looking silently on at the morning traffic in Fleet-
street, with their two heads as near to one another as the two eyes of each
were, bore a considerable resemblance to a pair of monkeys. The resemblance was
not lessened by the accidental circumstance, that the mature Jerry bit and spat
out straw, while the twinkling eyes of the youthful Jerry were as restlessly
watchful of him as of everything else in Fleet-street.
The head of one of the
regular indoor messengers attached to Tellson's establishment was put through
the door, and the word was given:
"Porter
wanted!"
"Hooray, father!
Here's an early job to begin with!"
Having thus given his
parent God speed, young Jerry seated himself on the stool, entered on his
reversionary interest in the straw his father had been chewing, and cogitated.
"Al-ways rusty!
His fingers is always rusty!" muttered young Jerry. "Where does my
father get all that iron rust from? He don't get no iron rust here!"
"YOU KNOW the Old
Bailey, well, no doubt?" said one of the oldest of clerks to Jerry the
messenger.
"Ye-es, sir,"
returned Jerry, in something of a dogged manner. "I do know the
Bailey."
"Just so. And you
know Mr. Lorry."
"I know Mr. Lorry,
sir, much better than I know the Bailey. Much better," said Jerry, not
unlike a reluctant witness at the establishment in question, "than I, as a
honest tradesman, wish to know the Bailey."
"Very well. Find
the door where the witnesses go in, and show the door-keeper this note for Mr.
Lorry. He will then let you in."
"Into the court,
sir?"
"Into the
court."
Mr. Cruncher's eyes
seemed to get a little closer to one another, and to interchange the inquiry,
"What do you think of this?"
"Am I to wait in
the court, sir?" he asked, as the result of that conference.
"I am going to
tell you. The door-keeper will pass the note to Mr. Lorry, and do you make any
gesture that will attract Mr. Lorry's attention, and show him where you stand.
Then what you have to do, is, to remain there until he wants you."
"Is that all,
sir?"
"That's all. He
wishes to have a messenger at hand. This is to tell him you are there."
As the ancient clerk
deliberately folded and superscribed the note, Mr. Cruncher, after surveying
him in silence until he came to the blotting- paper stage, remarked:
"I suppose they'll
be trying Forgeries this morning?"
"Treason!"
"That's
quartering," said Jerry. "Barbarous!"
"It is the
law," remarked the ancient clerk, turning his surprised spectacles upon
him. "It is the law."
"It's hard in the
law to spile a man, I think. Ifs hard enough to kill him, but it's wery hard to
spile him, sir."
"Not at all,"
retained the ancient clerk. "Speak well of the law. Take care of your
chest and voice, my good friend, and leave the law to take care of itself. I
give you that advice."
"It's the damp,
sir, what settles on my chest and voice," said Jerry. "I leave you to
judge what a damp way of earning a living mine is."
"Well, well,"
said the old clerk; "we all have our various ways of gaining a livelihood.
Some of us have damp ways, and some of us have dry ways. Here is the letter. Go
along."
Jerry took the letter,
and, remarking to himself with less internal deference than he made an outward
show of, "You are a lean old one, too," made his bow, informed his
son, in passing, of his destination, and went his way.
They hanged at Tyburn,
in those days, so the street outside Newgate had not obtained one infamous
notoriety that has since attached to it. But, the gaol was a vile place, in
which most kinds of debauchery and villainy were practised, and where dire
diseases were bred, that came into court with the prisoners, and sometimes rushed
straight from the dock at my Lord Chief Justice himself, and pulled him off the
bench. It had more than once happened, that the Judge in the black cap
pronounced his own doom as certainly as the prisoner's, and even died before
him. For the rest, the Old Bailey was famous as a kind of deadly inn-yard, from
which pale travellers set out continually, in carts and coaches, on a violent
passage into the other world: traversing some two miles and a half of public
street and road, and shaming few good citizens, if any. So powerful is use, and
so desirable to be good use in the beginning. It was famous, too, for the
pillory, a wise old institution, that inflicted a punishment of which no one
could foresee the extent; also, for the whipping-post, another dear old
institution, very humanising and softening to behold in action; also, for
extensive transactions in blood-money, another fragment of ancestral wisdom,
systematically leading to the most frightful mercenary crimes that could be
committed under Heaven. Altogether, the Old Bailey, at that date, was a choice
illustration of the precept, that "Whatever is is right;" an aphorism
that would be as final as it is lazy, did it not include the troublesome
consequence, that nothing that ever was, was wrong.
Making his way through
the tainted crowd, dispersed up and down this hideous scene of action, with the
skill of a man accustomed to make his way quietly, the messenger found out the
door he sought, and handed in his letter through a trap in it. For, people then
paid to see the play at the Old Bailey, just as they paid to see the play in
Bedlam -- only the former entertainment was much the dearer. Therefore, all the
Old Bailey doors were well guarded -- except, indeed, the social doors by which
the criminals got there, and those were always left wide open.
After some delay and
demur, the door grudgingly turned on its hinges a very little way, and allowed
Mr. Jerry Cruncher to squeeze himself into court.
"What's on?"
he asked, in a whisper, of the man he found himself next to.
"Nothing
yet."
"What's coming
on?"
"The Treason
case."
"The quartering
one, eh?"
"Ah!"
returned the man, with a relish; "he'll be drawn on a hurdle to be half
hanged, and then he'll be taken down and sliced before his own face, and then
his inside will be taken out and burnt while he looks on, and then his head
will be chopped off, and he'll be cut into quarters. That's the sentence."
"If he's found
Guilty, you mean to say?" Jerry added, by way of proviso.
"Oh! they'll find
him guilty," said the other. "Don't you be afraid of that."
Mr. Cruncher's
attention was here diverted to the door-keeper, whom he saw making his way to
Mr. Lorry, with the note in his hand. Mr. Lorry sat at a table, among the
gentlemen in wigs: not far from a wigged gentleman, the prisoner's counsel, who
had a great bundle of papers before him: and nearly opposite another wigged
gentleman with his hands in his pockets, whose whole attention, when Mr.
Cruncher looked at him then or afterwards, seemed to be concentrated on the
ceiling of the court. After some gruff coughing and rubbing of his chin and
signing with his hand, Jerry attracted the notice of Mr. Lorry, who had stood
up to look for him, and who quietly nodded and sat down again.
"What's he got to
do with the case?" asked the man he had spoken with.
"Blest if I
know," said Jerry.
"What have you got
to do with it, then, if a person may inquire?"
"Blest if I know
that either," said Jerry.
The entrance of the
Judge, and a consequent great stir and settling down in the court, stopped the
dialogue. Presently, the dock became the central point of interest. Two
gaolers, who had been standing there, wont out, and the prisoner was brought
in, and put to the bar.
Everybody present,
except the one wigged gentleman who looked at the ceiling, stared at him. All
the human breath in the place, rolled at him, like a sea, or a wind, or a fire.
Eager faces strained round pillars and corners, to get a sight of him;
spectators in back rows stood up, not to miss a hair of him; people on the
floor of the court, laid their hands on the shoulders of the people before
them, to help themselves, at anybody's cost, to a view of him -- stood
a-tiptoe, got upon ledges, stood upon next to nothing, to see every inch of
him. Conspicuous among these latter, like an animated bit of the spiked wall of
Newgate, Jerry stood: aiming at the prisoner the beery breath of a whet he had
taken as he came along, and discharging it to mingle with the waves of other beer,
and gin, and tea, and coffee, and what not, that flowed at him, and already
broke upon the great windows behind him in an impure mist and rain.
The object of all this
staring and blaring, was a young man of about five-and-twenty, well-grown and
well-looking, with a sunburnt cheek and a dark eye. This condition was that of
a young gentleman. He was plainly dressed in black, or very dark grey, and his
hair, which was long and dark, was gathered in a ribbon at the back of his
neck; more to be out of his way than for ornament. As an emotion of the mind
will express itself through any covering of the body, so the paleness which his
situation engendered came through the brown upon his cheek, showing the soul to
be stronger than the sun. He was otherwise quite self-possessed, bowed to the
Judge, and stood quiet.
The sort of interest
with which this man was stared and breathed at, was not a sort that elevated
humanity. Had he stood in peril of a less horrible sentence -- had there been a
chance of any one of its savage details being spared -- by just so much would
he have lost in his fascination. The form that was to be doomed to be so
shamefully mangled, was the sight; the immortal creature that was to be so
butchered and torn asunder, yielded the sensation. Whatever gloss the various
spectators put upon the interest, according to their several arts and powers of
self-deceit, the interest was, at the root of it, Ogreish.
Silence in the court!
Charles Darnay had yesterday pleaded Not Guilty to an indictment denouncing him
(with infinite jingle and jangle) for that he was a false traitor to our
serene, illustrious, excellent, and so forth, prince, our Lord the King, by
reason of his having, on divers occasions, and by divers means and ways,
assisted Lewis, the French King, in his wars against our said serene,
illustrious, excellent, and so forth; that was to say, by coming and going,
between the dominions of our said serene, illustrious, excellent, and so forth,
and those of the said French Lewis, and wickedly, falsely, traitorously, and
otherwise evil -- adverbiously, revealing to the said French Lewis what forces
our said serene, illustrious, excellent, and so forth, had in preparation to
send to Canada and North America. This much, Jerry, with his head becoming more
and more spiky as the law terms bristled it, made out with huge satisfaction,
and so arrived circuitously at the understanding that the aforesaid, and over
and over again aforesaid, Charles Darnay, stood there before him upon his
trial; that the jury were swearing in; and that Mr. Attorney-General was making
ready to speak.
The accused, who was
(and who knew he was) being mentally hanged, beheaded, and quartered, by
everybody there, neither flinched from the situation, nor assumed any
theatrical air in it. He was quiet and attentive; watched the opening
proceedings with a grave interest; and stood with his hands resting on the slab
of wood before him, so composedly, that they had not displaced a leaf of the
herbs with which it was strewn. The court was all bestrewn with herbs and
sprinkled with vinegar, as a precaution against gaol air and gaol fever.
Over the prisoner's
head there was a mirror, to throw the light down upon him. Crowds of the wicked
and the wretched had been reflected in it, and had passed from its surface and
this earth's together. Haunted in a most ghastly manner that abominable place
would have been, if the glass could ever have rendered back its reflections, as
the ocean is one day to give up its dead. Some passing thought of the infamy
and disgrace for which it had been reserved, may have struck the prisoner's
mind. Be that as it may, a change in his position making him conscious of a bar
of light across his face, he looked up; and when he saw the glass his face
flushed, and his right hand pushed the herbs away.
It happened, that the
action turned his face to that side of the court which was on his left. About
on a level with his eyes, there sat, in that corner of the Judge's bench, two
persons upon whom his look immediately rested; so immediately, and so much to
the changing of his aspect, that all the eyes that were tamed upon him, turned
to them.
The spectators saw in
the two figures, a young lady of little more than twenty, and a gentleman who
was evidently her father; a man of a very remarkable appearance in respect of
the absolute whiteness of his hair, and a certain indescribable intensity of
face: not of an active kind, but pondering and self-communing. When this
expression was upon him, he looked as if he were old; but when it was stirred
and broken up -- as it was now, in a moment, on his speaking to his daughter --
he became a handsome man, not past the prime of life.
His daughter had one of
her hands drawn through his arm, as she sat by him, and the other pressed upon
it. She had drawn close to him, in her dread of the scene, and in her pity for
the prisoner. Her forehead had been strikingly expressive of an engrossing
terror and compassion that saw nothing but the peril of the accused. This had
been so very noticeable, so very powerfully and naturally shown, that starers
who had had no pity for him were touched by her; and the whisper went about,
"Who are they?"
Jerry, the messenger,
who had made his own observations, in his own manner, and who had been sucking
the rust off his fingers in his absorption, stretched his neck to hear who they
were. The crowd about him had pressed and passed the inquiry on to the nearest
attendant, and from him it had been more slowly pressed and passed back; at
last it got to Jerry:
"Witnesses."
"For which
side?"
"Against."
"Against what
side?"
"The
prisoner's."
The Judge, whose eyes
had gone in the general direction, recalled them, leaned back in his seat, and
looked steadily at the man whose life was in his hand, as Mr. Attorney-General
rose to spin the rope, grind the axe, and hammer the nails into the scaffold.
MR. ATTORNEY-GENERAL
had to inform the jury, that the prisoner before them, though young in years,
was old in the treasonable practices which claimed the forfeit of his life.
That this correspondence with the public enemy was not a correspondence of
to-day, or of yesterday, or even of last year, or of the year before. That, it
was certain the prisoner had, for longer than that, been in the habit of
passing and repassing between France and England, on secret business of which
he could give no honest account. That, if it were in the nature of traitorous
ways to thrive (which happily it never was), the real wickedness and guilt of
his business might have remained undiscovered. That Providence, however, had
put it into the heart of a person who was beyond fear and beyond reproach, to
ferret out the nature of the prisoner's schemes, and, struck with horror, to
disclose them to his Majesty's Chief Secretary of State and most honourable
Privy Council. That, this patriot would be produced before them. That, his
position and attitude were, on the whole, sublime. That, he had been the
prisoner's friend, but, at once in an auspicious and an evil hour detecting his
infamy, had resolved to immolate the traitor he could no longer cherish in his
bosom, on the sacred altar of his country. That, if statues were decreed in
Britain, as in ancient Greece and Rome, to public benefactors, this shining
citizen would assuredly have had one. That, as they were not so decreed, he
probably would not have one. That, Virtue, as had been observed by the poets
(in many passages which he well knew the jury would have, word for word, at the
tips of their tongues; whereat the jury's countenances displayed a guilty
consciousness that they knew nothing about the passages), was in a manner
contagious; more especially the bright virtue known as patriotism, or love of
country. That, the lofty example of this immaculate and unimpeachable witness
for the Crown, to refer to whom however unworthily was an honour, had
communicated itself to the prisoner's servant, and had engendered in him a holy
determination to examine his master's table-drawers and pockets, and secrete
his papers. That, he (Mr. Attorney-General) was prepared to hear some
disparagement attempted of this admirable servant; but that, in a general way,
he preferred him to his (Mr. Attorney-General's) brothers and sisters, and
honoured him more than his (Mr. Attorney-General's) father and mother. That, he
called with confidence on the jury to come and do likewise. That, the evidence
of these two witnesses, coupled with the documents of their discovering that
would be produced, would show the prisoner to have been furnished with lists of
his Majesty's forces, and of their disposition and preparation, both by sea and
land, and would leave no doubt that he had habitually conveyed such information
to a hostile power. That, these lists could not be proved to be in the
prisoner's handwriting; but that it was all the same; that, indeed, it was
rather the better for the prosecution, as showing the prisoner to be artful in
his precautions. That, the proof would go back five years, and would show the
prisoner already engaged in these pernicious missions, within a few weeks
before the date of the very first action fought between the British troops and
the Americans. That, for these reasons, the jury, being a loyal jury (as he
knew they were), and being a responsible jury (as they knew they were), must
positively find the prisoner Guilty, and make an end of him, whether they liked
it or not. That, they never could lay their heads upon their pillows; that,
they never could tolerate the idea of their wives laying their heads upon their
pillows; that, they never could endure the notion of their children laying
their heads upon their pillows; in short, that there never more could be, for
them or theirs, any laying of heads upon pillows at all, unless the prisoner's
head was taken off. That head Mr. Attorney-General concluded by demanding of
them, in the name of everything he could think of with a round turn in it, and
on the faith of his solemn asseveration that he already considered the prisoner
as good as dead and gone.
When the
Attorney-General ceased, a buzz arose in the court as if a cloud of great
blue-flies were swarming about the prisoner, in anticipation of what he was
soon to become. When toned down again, the unimpeachable patriot appeared in
the witness-box.
Mr. Solicitor-General
then, following his leader's lead, examined the patriot: John Barsad,
gentleman, by name. The story of his pure soul was exactly what Mr.
Attorney-General had described it to be -- perhaps, if it had a fault, a little
too exactly. Having released his noble bosom of its burden, he would have
modestly withdrawn himself, but that the wigged gentleman with the papers
before him, sitting not far from Mr. Lorry, begged to ask him a few questions.
The wigged gentleman sitting opposite, still looking at the ceiling of the court.
Had he ever been a spy
himself? No, he scorned the base insinuation. What did he live upon? His
property. Where was his property? He didn't precisely remember where it was.
What was it? No business of anybody's. Had he inherited it? Yes, he had. From
whom? Distant relation. Very distant? Rather. Ever been in prison? Certainly
not. Never in a debtors' prison? Didn't see what that had to do with it. Never
in a debtors' prison? -- Come, once again. Never? Yes. How many times? Two or
three times. Not five or six? Perhaps. Of what profession? Gentleman. Ever been
kicked? Might have been. Frequently? No. Ever kicked downstairs? Decidedly not;
once received a kick on the top of a staircase, and fell down-stairs of his own
accord. Kicked on that occasion for cheating at dice? Something to that effect
was said by the intoxicated liar who committed the assault, but it was not
true. Swear it was not true? Positively. Ever live by cheating at play? Never.
Ever live by play? Not more than other gentlemen do. Ever borrow money of the
prisoner? Yes. Ever pay him? No. Was not this intimacy with the prisoner, in
reality a very slight one, forced upon the prisoner in coaches, inns, and
packets? No. Sure he saw the prisoner with these lists? Certain. Knew no more
about the lists? No. Had not procured them himself, for instance? No. Expect to
get anything by this evidence? No. Not in regular government pay and
employment, to lay traps? Oh dear no. Or to do anything? Oh dear no. Swear
that? Over and over again. No motives but motives of sheer patriotism? None
whatever.
The virtuous servant,
Roger Cly, swore his way through the case at a great rate. He had taken service
with the prisoner, in good faith and simplicity, four years ago. He had asked
the prisoner, aboard the Calais packet, if he wanted a handy fellow, and the
prisoner had engaged him. He had not asked the prisoner to take the handy
fellow as an act of charity -- never thought of such a thing. He began to have
suspicions of the prisoner, and to keep an eye upon him, soon afterwards. In
arranging his clothes, while travelling, he had seen similar lists to these in
the prisoner's pockets, over and over again. He had taken these lists from the
drawer of the prisoner's desk. He had not put them there first. He had seen the
prisoner show these identical lists to French gentlemen at Calais, and similar
lists to French gentlemen, both at Calais and Boulogne. He loved his country,
and couldn't bear it, and had given information. He had never been suspected of
stealing a silver tea-pot; he had been maligned respecting a mustard-pot, but
it turned out to be only a plated one. He had known the last witness seven or
eight years; that was merely a coincidence. He didn't call it a particularly
curious coincidence; most coincidences were curious. Neither did he call it a
curious coincidence that true patriotism was his only motive too. He was a true
Briton, and hoped there were many like him.
The blue-flies buzzed
again, and Mr. Attorney-General called Mr. Jarvis Lorry.
"Mr. Jarvis Lorry,
are you a clerk in Tellson's bank?"
"I am."
"On a certain
Friday night in November one thousand seven hundred and seventy-five, did
business occasion you to travel between London and Dover by the mail?"
"It did."
"Were there any
other passengers in the mail?"
"Two."
"Did they alight
on the road in the course of the night?"
('They did."
"Mr. Lorry, look
upon the prisoner. Was he one of those two passengers?"
"I cannot
undertake to say that he was."
"Does he resemble
either of these two passengers?"
"Both were so
wrapped up, and the night was so dark, and we were all so reserved, that I
cannot undertake to say even that."
"Mr. Lorry, look
again upon the prisoner. Supposing him wrapped up as those two passengers were,
is there anything in his bulk and stature to render it unlikely that he was one
of them?"
"No."
"You will not
swear, Mr. Lorry, that he was not one of them?"
"No."
"So at least you
say he may have been one of them?"
"Yes. Except that
I remember them both to have been -- like myself -- timorous of highwaymen, and
the prisoner has not a timorous air."
"Did you ever see
a counterfeit of timidity, Mr. Lorry?"
"I certainly have
seen that."
"Mr. Lorry, look
once more upon the prisoner. Have you seen him, to your certain knowledge,
before?"
"I have."
"When?"
"I was returning
from France a few days afterwards, and, at Calais, the prisoner came on board
the packet-ship in which I returned, and made the voyage with me."
"At what hour did
he come on board?"
"At a little after
midnight."
"In the dead of
the night. Was he the only passenger who came on board at that untimely
hour?"
"He happened to be
the only one."
"Never mind about
'happening,' Mr. Lorry. He was the only passenger who came on board in the dead
of the night?"
"He was."
"Were you
travelling alone, Mr. Lorry, or with any companion?"
"With two
companions. A gentleman and lady. They are here."
"They are here.
Had you any conversation with the prisoner?"
"Hardly any. The
weather was stormy, and the passage long and rough, and I lay on a sofa, almost
from shore to shore."
"Miss
Manette!"
The young lady, to whom
all eyes had been turned before, and were now turned again, stood up where she
had sat. Her father rose with her, and kept her hand drawn through his arm.
"Miss Manette,
look upon the prisoner."
To be confronted with
such pity, and such earnest youth and beauty, was far more trying to the
accused than to be confronted with all the crowd. Standing, as it were, apart
with her on the edge of his grave, not all the staring curiosity that looked
on, could, for the moment, nerve him to remain quite still. His hurried right
hand parcelled out the herbs before him into imaginary beds of flowers in a
garden; and his efforts to control and steady his breathing shook the lips from
which the colour rushed to his heart. The buzz of the great flies was loud
again.
"Miss Manette,
have you seen the prisoner before?"
"Yes, sir."
"Where?"
"On board of the
packet-ship just now referred to, sir, and on the same occasion."
"You are the young
lady just now referred to?"
"O! most
unhappily, I am!"
The plaintive tone of
her compassion merged into the less musical voice of the Judge, as he said
something fiercely: "Answer the questions put to you, and make no remark
upon them."
"Miss Manette, had
you any conversation with the prisoner on that passage across the
Channel?"
"Yes, sir."
"Recall it."
In the midst of a
profound stillness, she faintly began:
"When the
gentleman came on board --"
"Do you mean the
prisoner?" inquired the Judge, knitting his brows.
"Yes, my
Lord."
"Then say the
prisoner."
"When the prisoner
came on board, he noticed that my father," turning her eyes lovingly to
him as he stood beside her, "was much fatigued and in a very weak state of
health. My father was so reduced that I was afraid to take him out of the air,
and I had made a bed for him on the deck near the cabin steps, and I sat on the
deck at his side to take care of him. There were no other passengers that
night, but we four. The prisoner was so good as to beg permission to advise me
how I could shelter my father from the wind and weather, better than I had
done. I had not known how to do it well, not understanding how the wind would
set when we were out of the harbour. He did it for me. He expressed great
gentleness and kindness for my father's state, and I am sure he felt it. That
was the manner of our beginning to speak together."
"Let me interrupt
you for a moment. Had he come on board alone?"
"No."
"How many were
with him?"
"Two French
gentlemen."
"Had they
conferred together?"
"They had
conferred together until the last moment, when it was necessary for the French
gentlemen to be landed in their boat."
"Had any papers
been handed about among them, similar to these lists?"
"Some papers had
been handed about among them, but I don't know what papers."
"Like these in
shape and size?"
"Possibly, but
indeed I don't know, although they stood whispering very near to me: because
they stood at the top of the cabin steps to have the light of the lamp that was
hanging there; it was a dull lamp, and they spoke very low, and I did not hear
what they said, and saw only that they looked at papers."
"Now, to the
prisoner's conversation, Miss Manette."
"The prisoner was
as open in his confidence with me -- which arose out of my helpless situation
-- as he was kind, and good, and useful to my father. I hope," bursting
into tears, "I may not repay him by doing him harm to-day."
Buzzing from the
blue-flies.
"Miss Manette, if
the prisoner does not perfectly understand that you give the evidence which it
is your duty to give -- which you must give -- and which you cannot escape from
giving -- with great unwillingness, he is the only person present in that
condition. Please to go on."
"He told me that
he was travelling on business of a delicate and difficult nature, which might
get people into trouble, and that he was therefore travelling under an assumed
name. He said that this business had, within a few days, taken him to France,
and might, at intervals, take him backwards and forwards between France and
England for a long time to come."
"Did he say
anything about America, Miss Manette? Be particular."
"He tried to
explain to me how that quarrel had arisen, and he said that, so far as he could
judge, it was a wrong and foolish one on England's part. He added, in a jesting
way, that perhaps George Washington might gain almost as great a name in
history as George the Third. But there was no harm in his way of saying this:
it was said laughingly, and to beguile the time."
Any strongly marked
expression of face on the part of a chief actor in a scene of great interest to
whom many eyes are directed, will be unconsciously imitated by the spectators.
Her forehead was painfully anxious and intent as she gave this evidence, and,
in the pauses when she stopped for the Judge to write it down, watched its
effect upon the counsel for and against. Among the lookers-on there was the
same expression in all quarters of the court; insomuch, that a great majority
of the foreheads there, might have been mirrors reflecting the witness, when
the Judge looked up from his notes to glare at that tremendous heresy about
George Washington.
Mr. Attorney-General
now signified to my Lord, that he deemed it necessary, as a matter of
precaution and form, to call the young lady's father, Doctor Manette. Who was
called accordingly.
"Doctor Manette,
look upon the prisoner. Have you ever seen him before?"
"Once. When he
caged at my lodgings in London. Some three years, or three years and a half
ago."
"Can you identify
him as your fellow-passenger on board the packet, or speak to his conversation
with your daughter?"
"Sir, I can do
neither."
"Is there any
particular and special reason for your being unable to do either?"
He answered, in a low
voice, "There is."
"Has it been your
misfortune to undergo a long imprisonment, without trial, or even accusation,
in your native country, Doctor Manette?"
He answered, in a tone
that went to every heart, "A long imprisonment."
"Were you newly
released on the occasion in question?"
"They tell me
so."
"Have you no
remembrance of the occasion?"
"None. My mind is
a blank, from some time -- I cannot even say what time -- when I employed
myself, in my captivity, in making shoes, to the time when I found myself
living in London with my dear daughter here. She had become familiar to me,
when a gracious God restored my faculties; but, I am quite unable even to say
how she had become familiar. I have no remembrance of the process."
Mr. Attorney-General
sat down, and the father and daughter sat down together.
A singular circumstance
then arose in the case. The object in hand being to show that the prisoner went
down, with some fellow-plotter untracked, in the Dover mail on that Friday
night in November five years ago, and got out of the mail in the night, as a
blind, at a place where he did not remain, but from which he travelled back
some dozen miles or more, to a garrison and dockyard, and there collected information;
a witness was called to identify him as having been at the precise time
required, in the coffee-room of an hotel in that garrison-and-dockyard town,
waiting for another person. The prisoner's counsel was cross- examining this
witness with no result, except that he had never seen the prisoner on any other
occasion, when the wigged gentleman who had all this time been looking at the
ceiling of the court, wrote a word or two on a little piece of paper, screwed
it up, and tossed it to him. Opening this piece of paper in the next pause, the
counsel looked with great attention and curiosity at the prisoner.
"You say again you
are quite sure that it was the prisoner?"
The witness was quite
sure.
"Did you ever see
anybody very like the prisoner?"
Not so like (the
witness said) as that he could be mistaken.
"Look well upon
that gentleman, my learned friend there," pointing to him who had tossed
the paper over, "and then look well upon the prisoner. How say you? Are
they very like each other?"
Allowing for my learned
friend's appearance being careless and slovenly if not debauched, they were
sufficiently like each other to surprise, not only the witness, but everybody
present, when they were thus brought into comparison. My Lord being prayed to
bid my learned friend lay aside his wig, and giving no very gracious consent,
the likeness became much more remarkable. My Lord inquired of Mr. Stryver (the
prisoner's counsel), whether they were next to try Mr. Carton (name of my
learned friend) for treason? But, Mr. Stryver replied to my Lord, no; but he
would ask the witness to tell him whether what happened once, might happen
twice; whether he would have been so confident if he had seen this illustration
of his rashness sooner, whether he would be so confident, having seen it; and
more. The upshot of which, was, to smash this witness like a crockery vessel,
and shiver his part of the case to useless lumber.
Mr. Cruncher had by
this time taken quite a lunch of rust off his fingers in his following of the
evidence. He had now to attend while Mr. Stryver fitted the prisoner's case on
the jury, like a compact suit of clothes; showing them how the patriot, Barsad,
was a hired spy and traitor, an unblushing trafficker in blood, and one of the
greatest scoundrels upon earth since accursed Judas -- which he certainly did
look rather like. How the virtuous servant, Cly, was his friend and partner,
and was worthy to be; how the watchful eyes of those forgers and false swearers
had rested on the prisoner as a victim, because some family affairs in France,
he being of French extraction, did require his making those passages across the
Channel -- though what those affairs were, a consideration for others who were
near and dear to him, forbade him, even for his life, to disclose. How the
evidence that had been warped and wrested from the young lady, whose anguish in
giving it they had witnessed, came to nothing, involving the mere little
innocent gallantries and politenesses likely to pass between any young
gentleman and young lady so thrown together; -- with the exception of that
reference to George Washington, which was altogether too extravagant and
impossible to be regarded in any other light than as a monstrous joke. How it
would be a weakness in the government to break down in this attempt to practise
for popularity on the lowest national antipathies and fears, and therefore Mr.
Attorney-General had made the most of it; how, nevertheless, it rested upon
nothing, save that vile and infamous character of evidence too often
disfiguring such cases, and of which the State Trials of this country were
full. But, there my Lord interposed (with as grave a face as if it had not been
true), saying that he could not sit upon that Bench and suffer those allusions.
Mr. Stryver then called
his few witnesses, and Mr. Cruncher had next to attend while Mr.
Attorney-General turned the whole suit of clothes Mr. Stryver had fitted on the
jury, inside out; showing how Barsad and Cly were even a hundred times better
than he had thought them, and the prisoner a hundred times worse. Lastly, came
my Lord himself, turning the suit of clothes, now inside out, now outside in,
but on the whole decidedly trimming and shaping them into grave-clothes for the
prisoner.
And now, the jury
turned to consider, and the great flies swarmed again.
Mr. Carton, who had so
long sat looking at the ceiling of the court, changed neither his place nor his
attitude, even in this excitement. While his teamed friend, Mr. Stryver,
massing his papers before him, whispered with those who sat near, and from time
to time glanced anxiously at the jury; while all the spectators moved more or
less, and grouped themselves anew; while even my Lord himself arose from his
seat, and slowly paced up and down his platform, not unattended by a suspicion
in the minds of the audience that his state was feverish; this one man sat
leaning back, with his torn gown half off him, his untidy wig put on just as it
had happened to fight on his head after its removal, his hands in his pockets,
and his eyes on the ceiling as they had been all day. Something especially
reckless in his demeanour, not only gave him a disreputable look, but so
diminished the strong resemblance he undoubtedly bore to the prisoner (which
his momentary earnestness, when they were compared together, had strengthened),
that many of the lookers-on, taking note of him now, said to one another they
would hardly have thought the two were so alike. Mr. Cruncher made the
observation to his next neighbour, and added, "I'd hold half a guinea that
he don't get no law- work to do. Don't look like the sort of one to get any, do
he?"
Yet, this Mr. Carton
took in more of the details of the scene than he appeared to take in; for now,
when Miss Manette's head dropped upon her father's breast, he was the first to
see it, and to say audibly: "Officer! look to that young lady. Help the
gentleman to take her out. Don't you see she will fall!"
There was much
commiseration for her as she was removed, and much sympathy with her father. It
had evidently been a great distress to him, to have the days of his
imprisonment recalled. He had shown strong internal agitation when he was
questioned, and that pondering or brooding look which made him old, had been
upon him, like a heavy cloud, ever since. As he passed out, the jury, who had
turned back and paused a moment, spoke, through their foreman.
They were not agreed,
and wished to retire. My Lord (perhaps with George Washington on his mind)
showed some surprise that they were not agreed, but signified his pleasure that
they should retire under watch and ward, and retired himself. The trial had
lasted all day, and the lamps in the court were now being lighted. It began to
be rumoured that the jury would be out a long while. The spectators dropped off
to get refreshment, and the prisoner withdrew to the back of the dock, and sat
down.
Mr. Lorry, who had gone
out when the young lady and her father went out, now reappeared, and beckoned
to Jerry: who, in the slackened interest, could easily get near him.
"Jerry, if you
wish to take something to eat, you can. But, keep in the way. You will be sure
to hear when the jury come in. Don't be a moment behind them, for I want you to
take the verdict back to the bank. You are the quickest messenger I know, and will
get to Temple Bar long before I can."
Jerry had just enough
forehead to knuckle, and he knuckled it in acknowledgment of this communication
and a shilling. Mr. Carton came up at the moment, and touched Mr. Lorry on the
arm.
"How is the young
lady?"
"She is greatly
distressed; but her father is comforting her, and she feels the better for
being out of court."
"I'll tell the
prisoner so. It won't do for a respectable bank gentleman like you, to be seen
speaking to him publicly, you know."
Mr. Lorry reddened as
if he were conscious of having debated the point in his mind, and Mr. Carton
made his way to the outside of the bar. The way out of court lay in that
direction, and Jerry followed him, all eyes, ears, and spikes.
"Mr. Darnay!"
The prisoner came
forward directly.
"You will
naturally be anxious to hear of the witness, Miss Manette. She will do very
well. You have seen the worst of her agitation."
"I am deeply sorry
to have been the cause of it. Could you tell her so for me, with my fervent
acknowledgments?"
"Yes, I could. I
will, if you ask it."
Mr. Carton's manner was
so careless as to be almost insolent. He stood, half turned from the prisoner,
lounging with his elbow against the bar.
"I do ask it.
Accept my cordial thanks."
"What," said
Carton, still only half turned towards him, "do you expect, Mr.
Darnay?"
"The worst."
"It's the wisest
thing to expect, and the likeliest. But I think their withdrawing is in your
favour."
Loitering on the way
out of court not being allowed, Jerry heard no more: but left them -- so like
each other in feature, so unlike each other in manner -- standing side by side,
both reflected in the glass above them.
An hour and a half
limped heavily away in the thief-and-rascal crowded passages below, even though
assisted off with mutton pies and ale. The hoarse messenger, uncomfortably
seated on a form after taking that refection, had dropped into a doze, when a
loud murmur and a rapid tide of people setting up the stairs that led to the
court, carried him along with them.
"Jerry!
Jerry!" Mr. Lorry was already calling at the door when he got there.
"Here, sir! It's a
fight to get back again. Here I am, sir!"
Mr. Lorry handed him a
paper through the throng. "Quick! Have you got it?"
"Yes, sir."
Hastily written on the
paper was the word "AQUITTED."
"If you had sent
the message, 'Recalled to Life,' again," muttered Jerry, as he turned,
"I should have known what you meant, this time."
He had no opportunity
of saying, or so much as thinking, anything else, until he was clear of the Old
Bailey; for, the crowd came pouring out with a vehemence that nearly took him
off his legs, and a loud buzz swept into the street as if the baffled
blue-flies were dispersing in search of other carrion.
FROM the dimly-lighted
passages of the court, the last sediment of the human stew that had been
boiling there all day, was straining off, when Doctor Manette, Lucie Manette,
his daughter, Mr. Lorry, the solicitor for the defence, and its counsel, Mr.
Stryver, stood gathered round Mr. Charles Darnay -- just released --
congratulating him on his escape from death.
It would have been
difficult by a far brighter light, to recognise in Doctor Manette, intellectual
of face and upright of bearing, the shoemaker of the garret in Paris. Yet, no
one could have looked at him twice, without looking again: even though the
opportunity of observation had not extended to the mournful cadence of his low
grave voice, and to the abstraction that overclouded him fitfully, without any
apparent reason. While one external cause, and that a reference to his long
lingering agony, would always -- as on the trial -- evoke this condition from
the depths of his soul, it was also in its nature to arise of itself, and to
draw a gloom over him, as incomprehensible to those unacquainted with his story
as if they had seen the shadow of the actual Bastille thrown upon him by a
summer sun, when the substance was three hundred miles away.
Only his daughter had
the power of charming this black brooding from his mind. She was the golden
thread that united him to a Past beyond his misery, and to a Present beyond his
misery: and the sound of her voice, the light of her face, the touch of her
hand, had a strong beneficial influence with him almost always. Not absolutely
always, for she could recall some occasions on which her power had failed; but
they were few and slight, and she believed them over.
Mr. Darnay had kissed
her hand fervently and gratefully, and had turned to Mr. Stryver, whom he
warmly thanked. Mr. Stryver, a man of little more than thirty, but looking
twenty years older than he was, stout, loud, red, bluff, and free from any
drawback of delicacy, had a pushing way of shouldering himself (morally and
physically) into companies and conversations, that argued well for his
shouldering his way up in life.
He still had his wig
and gown on, and he said, squaring himself at his late client to that degree
that he squeezed the innocent Mr. Lorry clean out of the group: "I am glad
to have brought you off with honour, Mr. Darnay. It was an infamous
prosecution, grossly infamous; but not the less likely to succeed on that
account."
"You have laid me
under an obligation to you for life -- in two senses," said his late
client, taking his hand.
"I have done my
best for you, Mr. Darnay; and my best is as good as another man's, I
believe."
It clearly being
incumbent on some one to say, "Much better," Mr. Lorry said it;
perhaps not quite disinterestedly, but with the interested object of squeezing
himself back again.
"You think
so?" said Mr. Stryver. "Well! you have been present all day, and you
ought to know. You are a man of business, too."
"And as
such," quoth Mr. Lorry, whom the counsel learned in the law had now
shouldered back into the group, just as he had previously shouldered him out of
it -- "as such I will appeal to Doctor Manette, to break up this
conference and order us all to our homes. Miss Lucie looks ill, Mr. Darnay has
had a terrible day, we are worn out."
"Speak for
yourself, Mr. Lorry," said Stryver; "I have a night's work to do yet.
Speak for yourself."
"I speak for
myself," answered Mr. Lorry, "and for Mr. Darnay, and for Miss Lucie,
and -- Miss Lucie, do you not think I may speak for us all?" He asked her
the question pointedly, and with a glance at her father.
His face had become
frozen, as it were, in a very curious look at Darnay: an intent look, deepening
into a frown of dislike and distrust, not even unmixed with fear. With this
strange expression on him his thoughts had wandered away.
"My father,"
said Lucie, softly laying her hand on his.
He slowly shook the
shadow off, and turned to her.
"Shall we go home,
my father?"
With a long breath, he
answered "Yes."
The friends of the
acquitted prisoner had dispersed, under the impression -- which he himself had
originated -- that he would not be released that night. The lights were nearly
all extinguished in the passages, the iron gates were being closed with a jar and
a rattle, and the dismal place was deserted until to-morrow morning's interest
of gallows, pillory, whipping-post, and branding-iron, should repeople it.
Walking between her father and Mr. Darnay, Lucie Manette passed into the open
air. A hackney-coach was called, and the father and daughter departed in it.
Mr. Stryver had left
them in the passages, to shoulder his way back to the robing-room. Another
person, who had not joined the group, or interchanged a word with any one of
them, but who had been leaning against the wall where its shadow was darkest,
had silently strolled out after the rest, and had looked on until the coach
drove away. He now stepped up to where Mr. Lorry and Mr. Darnay stood upon the
pavement.
"So, Mr. Lorry!
Men of business may speak to Mr. Darnay now?"
Nobody had made any
acknowledgment of Mr. Carton's part in the day's proceedings; nobody had known
of it. He was unrobed, and was none the better for it in appearance.
"If you knew what
a conflict goes on in the business mind, when the business mind is divided
between good-natured impulse and business appearances, you would be amused, Mr.
Darnay."
Mr. Lorry reddened, and
said, warmly, "You have mentioned that before, sir. We men of business,
who serve a House, are not our own masters. We have to think of the House more
than ourselves."
"I know, I
know," rejoined Mr. Carton, carelessly. "Don't be nettled, Mr. Lorry.
You are as good as another, I have no doubt: better, I dare say."
"And indeed,
sir," pursued Mr. Lorry, not minding him, "I really don't know what
you have to do with the matter. If you'll excuse me, as very much your elder,
for saying so, I really don't know that it is your business."
"Business! Bless
you, I have no business," said Mr. Carton.
"It is a pity you
have not, sir."
"I think so,
too."
"If you had,"
pursued Mr. Lorry, "perhaps you would attend to it."
"Lord love you,
no! -- I shouldn't," said Mr. Carton.
"Well, sir!"
cried Mr. Lorry, thoroughly heated by his indifference, "business is a
very good thing, and a very respectable thing. And, sir, if business imposes
its restraints and its silences and impediments, Mr. Darnay as a young
gentleman of generosity knows how to make allowance for that circumstance. Mr.
Darnay, good night, God bless you, sir! I hope you have been this day preserved
for a prosperous and happy life. -- Chair there!"
Perhaps a little angry
with himself, as well as with the barrister, Mr. Lorry bustled into the chair,
and was carried off to Tellson's. Carton, who smelt of port wine, and did not
appear to be quite sober, laughed then, and turned to Darnay:
"This is a strange
chance that throws you and me together. This must be a strange night to you,
standing alone here with your counterpart on these street stones?"
"I hardly seem
yet," returned Charles Darnay, "to belong to this world again."
"I don't wonder at
it; it's not so long since you were pretty far advanced on your way to another.
You speak faintly."
"I begin to think
I am faint."
"Then why the
devil don't you dine? I dined, myself, while those numskulls were deliberating
which world you should belong to -- this, or some other. Let me show you the
nearest tavern to dine well at."
Drawing his arm through
his own, he took him down Ludgate-hill to Fleet-street, and so, up a covered
way, into a tavern. Here, they were shown into a little room, where Charles
Darnay was soon recruiting his strength with a good plain dinner and good wine:
while Carton sat opposite to him at the same table, with his separate bottle of
port before him, and his fully half-insolent manner upon him.
"Do you feel, yet,
that you belong to this terrestrial scheme again, Mr. Darnay?"
"I am frightfully
confused regarding time and place; but I am so far mended as to feel
that."
"It must be an
immense satisfaction!"
He said it bitterly,
and filled up his glass again: which was a large one.
"As to me, the
greatest desire I have, is to forget that I belong to it. It has no good in it
for me -- except wine like this -- nor I for it. So we are not much alike in
that particular. Indeed, I begin to think we are not much alike in any
particular, you and l."
Confused by the emotion
of the day, and feeling his being there with this Double of coarse deportment,
to be like a dream, Charles Darnay was at a loss how to answer; finally,
answered not at all.
"Now your dinner
is done," Carton presently said, "why don't you call a health, Mr.
Darnay; why don't you give your toast?"
"What health? What
toast?"
"Why, it's on the
tip of your tongue. It ought to be, it must be, I'll swear it's there."
"Miss Manette,
then!"
"Miss Manette,
then!"
Looking his companion
full in the face while he drank the toast, Carton flung his glass over his
shoulder against the wall, where it shivered to pieces; then, rang the bell,
and ordered in another.
"That's a fair
young lady to hand to a coach in the dark, Mr. Darnay!" he said, ruing his
new goblet.
A slight frown and a laconic
"Yes," were the answer.
"That's a fair
young lady to be pitied by and wept for by! How does it feel? Is it worth being
tried for one's life, to be the object of such sympathy and compassion, Mr.
Darnay?"
Again Darnay answered
not a word.
"She was mightily
pleased to have your message, when I gave it her. Not that she showed she was
pleased, but I suppose she was."
The allusion served as
a timely reminder to Darnay that this disagreeable companion had, of his own
free will, assisted him in the strait of the day. He turned the dialogue to
that point, and thanked him for it.
"I neither want
any thanks, nor merit any," was the careless rejoinder. "It was
nothing to do, in the first place; and I don't know why I did it, in the
second. Mr. Darnay, let me ask you a question."
"Willingly, and a
small return for your good offices."
"Do you think I
particularly like you?"
"Really, Mr.
Carton," returned the other, oddly disconcerted, "I have not asked
myself the question."
"But ask yourself
the question now."
"You have acted as
if you do; but I don't think you do."
"I don't think I
do," said Carton. "I begin to have a very good opinion of your
understanding."
"Nevertheless,"
pursued Darnay, rising to ring the bell, "there is nothing in that, I
hope, to prevent my calling the reckoning, and our parting without ill-blood on
either side."
Carton rejoining,
"Nothing in life!" Darnay rang. "Do you call the whole
reckoning?" said Carton. On his answering in the affirmative, "Then
bring me another pint of this same wine, drawer, and come and wake me at
ten."
The bill being paid,
Charles Darnay rose and wished him good night. Without returning the wish,
Carton rose too, with something of a threat of defiance in his manner, and
said, "A last word, Mr. Darnay: you think I am drunk?"
"I think you have
been drinking, Mr. Carton."
"Think? You know I
have been drinking."
"Since I must say
so, I know it."
"Then you shall
likewise know why. I am a disappointed drudge, sir. I care for no man on earth,
and no man on earth cares for me."
"Much to be
regretted. You might have used your talents better."
"May be so, Mr.
Darnay; may be not. Don't let your sober face elate you, however; you don't
know what it may come to. Good night!"
When he was left alone,
this strange being took up a candle, went to a glass that hung against the
wall, and surveyed himself minutely in it.
"Do you
particularly like the man?" he muttered, at his own image; "why
should you particularly like a man who resembles you? There is nothing in you
to like; you know that. Ah, confound you! What a change you have made in
yourself! A good reason for taking to a man, that he shows you what you have
fallen away from, and what you might have been! Change places with him, and
would you have been looked at by those blue eyes as he was, and commiserated by
that agitated face as he was? Come on, and have it out in plain words! You hate
the fellow."
He resorted to his pint
of wine for consolation, drank it all in a few minutes, and fell asleep on his
arms, with his hair straggling over the table, and a long winding-sheet in the
candle dripping down upon him.
THOSE WERE drinking
days, and most men drank hard. So very great is the improvement Time has
brought about in such habits, that a moderate statement of the quantity of wine
and punch which one man would swallow in the course of a night, without any
detriment to his reputation as a perfect gentleman, would seem, in these days,
a ridiculous exaggeration. The learned profession of the law was certainly not
behind any other learned profession in its Bacchanalian propensities; neither
was Mr. Stryver, already fast shouldering his way to a large and lucrative
practice, behind his compeers in this particular, any more than in the drier
parts of the legal race.
A favourite at the Old
Bailey, and eke at the Sessions, Mr. Stryver had begun cautiously to hew away
the lower staves of the ladder on which he mounted. Sessions and Old Bailey had
now to summon their favourite, specially, to their longing arms; and
shouldering itself towards the visage of the Lord Chief Justice in the Court of
King's Bench, the florid countenance of Mr. Stryver might be daily seen,
bursting out of the bed of wigs, like a great sunflower pushing its way at the
sun from among a rank garden-full of flaring companions.
It had once been noted
at the Bar, that while Mr. Stryver was a glib man, and an unscrupulous, and a
ready, and a bold, he had not that faculty of extracting the essence from a heap
of statements, which is among the most striking and necessary of the advocate's
accomplishments. But, a remarkable improvement came upon him as to this. The
more business he got, the greater his power seemed to grow of getting at its
pith and marrow; and however late at night he sat carousing with Sydney Carton,
he always had his points at his fingers' ends in the morning.
Sydney Carton, idlest
and most unpromising of men, was Stryver's great ally. What the two drank
together, between Hilary Term and Michaelmas, might have floated a king's ship.
Stryver never had a case in hand, anywhere, but Carton was there, with his
hands in his pockets, staring at the ceiling of the court; they went the same
Circuit, and even there they prolonged their usual orgies late into the night,
and Carton was rumoured to be seen at broad day, going home stealthily and
unsteadily to his lodgings, like a dissipated cat. At last, it began to get
about, among such as were interested in the matter, that although Sydney Carton
would never be a lion, he was an amazingly good jackal, and that he rendered
suit and service to Stryver in that humble capacity.
"Ten o'clock,
sir," said the man at the tavern, whom he had charged to wake him --
"ten o'clock, sir."
"What's the
matter?"
"Ten o'clock,
sir."
"What do you mean?
Ten o'clock at night?"
"Yes, sir. Your
honour told me to call you."
"Oh! I remember.
Very well, very well."
After a few dull
efforts to get to sleep again, which the man dexterously combated by stirring
the fire continuously for five minutes, he got up, tossed his hat on, and
walked out. He turned into the Temple, and, having revived himself by twice
pacing the pavements of King's Bench-walk and Paper-buildings, turned into the
Stryver chambers.
The Stryver clerk, who
never assisted at these conferences, had gone home, and the Stryver principal
opened the door. He had his slippers on, and a loose bed-gown, and his throat
was bare for his greater ease. He had that rather wild, strained, seared
marking about the eyes, which may be observed in all free livers of his class,
from the portrait of Jeffries downward, and which can be traced, under various
disguises of Art, through the portraits of every Drinking Age.
"You are a little
late, Memory," said Stryver.
"About the usual
time; it may be a quarter of an hour later."
They went into a dingy
room lined with books and littered with papers, where there was a blazing fire.
A kettle steamed upon the hob, and in the midst of the wreck of papers a table
shone, with plenty of wine upon it, and brandy, and rum, and sugar, and lemons.
"You have had your
bottle, I perceive, Sydney."
"Two to-night, I
think. I have been dining with the day's client; or seeing him dine -- it's all
one!"
"That was a rare
point, Sydney, that you brought to bear upon the identification. How did you
come by it? When did it strike you?"
"I thought he was
rather a handsome fellow, and I thought I should have been much the same sort
of fellow, if I had had any luck."
Mr. Stryver laughed
till he shook his precocious paunch.
"You and your
luck, Sydney! Get to work, get to work."
Sullenly enough, the
jackal loosened his dress, went into an adjoining room, and came back with a
large jug of cold water, a basin, and a towel or two. Steeping the towels in
the water, and partially wringing them out, he folded them on his head in a
manner hideous to behold, sat down at the table, and said, "Now I am
ready!"
"Not much boiling
down to be done to-night, Memory," said Mr. Stryver, gaily, as he looked
among his papers.
"How much?"
"Only two sets of
them."
"Give me the worst
first."
"There they are,
Sydney. Fire away!"
The lion then composed
himself on his back on a sofa on one side of the drinking-table, while the
jackal sat at his own paper-bestrewn table proper, on the other side of it,
with the bottles and glasses ready to his hand. Both resorted to the
drinking-table without stint, but each in a different way; the lion for the
most part reclining with his hands in his waistband, looking at the fire, or
occasionally flirting with some lighter document; the jackal, with knitted
brows and intent face, so deep in his task, that his eyes did not even follow
the hand he stretched out for his glass -- which often groped about, for a
minute or more, before it found the glass for his lips. Two or three times, the
matter in hand became so knotty, that the jackal found it imperative on him to
get up, and steep his towels anew. From these pilgrimages to the jug and basin,
he returned with such eccentricities of damp headgear as no words can describe;
which were made the more ludicrous by his anxious gravity.
At length the jackal
had got together a compact repast for the lion, and proceeded to offer it to
him. The lion took it with care and caution, made his selections from it, and
his remarks upon it, and the jackal assisted both. When the repast was fully
discussed, the lion put his hands in his waistband again, and lay down to
mediate. The jackal then invigorated himself with a bumper for his throttle,
and a fresh application to his head, and applied himself to the collection of a
second meal; this was administered to the lion in the same manner, and was not
disposed of until the clocks struck three in the morning.
"And now we have
done, Sydney, fill a bumper of punch," said Mr. Stryver.
The jackal removed the
towels from his head, which had been steaming again, shook himself, yawned,
shivered, and complied.
"You were very
sound, Sydney, in the matter of those crown witnesses to-day. Every question
told."
"I always am
sound; am I not?"
"I don't gainsay
it. What has roughened your temper? Put some punch to it and smooth it
again."
With a deprecatory
grunt, the jackal again complied.
"The old Sydney
Carton of old Shrewsbury School," said Stryver, nodding his head over him
as he reviewed him in the present and the past, "the old seesaw Sydney. Up
one minute and down the next; now in spirits and now in despondency!"
"Ah!"
returned the other, sighing: "yes! The same Sydney, with the same luck.
Even then, I did exercises for other boys, and seldom did my own.))
"And why
not?"
"God knows. It was
my way, I suppose."
He sat, with his hands
in his pockets and his legs stretched out before him, looking at the fire.
"Carton,"
said his friend, squaring himself at him with a bullying air, as if the
fire-grate had been the furnace in which sustained endeavour was forged, and
the one delicate thing to be done for the old Sydney Carton of old Shrewsbury
School was to shoulder him into it, "your way is, and always was, a lame
way. You summon no energy and purpose. Look at me."
"Oh,
botheration!" returned Sydney, with a lighter and more good- humoured
laugh, "don't you be moral!"
"How have I done
what I have done?" said Stryver; "how do I do what I do?"
"Partly through
paying me to help you, I suppose. But it's not worth your while to apostrophise
me, or the air, about it; what you want to do, you do. You were always in the
front rank, and I was always behind."
"I had to get into
the front rank; I was not born there, was I?"
"I was not present
at the ceremony; but my opinion is you were," said Carton. At this, he
laughed again, and they both laughed.
"Before
Shrewsbury, and at Shrewsbury, and ever since Shrewsbury," pursued Carton,
"you have fallen into your rank, and I have fallen into mine. Even when we
were fellow-students in the Student-Quarter of Paris, picking up French, and
French law, and other French crumbs that we didn't get much good of, you were
always somewhere, and I was always -- nowhere."
"And whose fault
was that?"
"Upon my soul, I
am not sure that it was not yours. You were always driving and riving and
shouldering and passing, to that restless degree that I had no chance for my
life but in rust and repose. It's a gloomy thing, however, to talk about one's
own past, with the day breaking. Turn me in some other direction before I
go."
"Well then! Pledge
me to the pretty witness," said Stryver, holding up his glass. "Are
you turned in a pleasant direction?"
Apparently not, for he
became gloomy again.
"Pretty
witness," he muttered, looking down into his glass. "I have had
enough of witnesses to-day and to-night; who's your pretty witness?"
"The picturesque
doctor's daughter, Miss Manette."
"She pretty?"
"Is she not?"
"No."
"Why, man alive,
she was the admiration of the whole Court!"
"Rot the
admiration of the whole Court! Who made the Old Bailey a judge of beauty? She
was a golden-haired doll!"
"Do you know,
Sydney," said Mr. Stryver, looking at him with sharp eyes, and slowly
drawing a hand across his florid face: "do you know, I rather thought, at
the time, that you sympathised with the golden-haired doll, and were quick to
see what happened to the golden-haired doll?"
"Quick to see what
happened! If a girl, doll or no doll, swoons within a yard or two of a man's
nose, he can see it without a perspective-glass. I pledge you, but I deny the
beauty. And now I'll have no more drink; I'll get to bed."
When his host followed
him out on the staircase with a candle, to light him down the stairs, the day
was coldly looking in through its grimy windows. When he got out of the house,
the air was cold and sad, the dull sky overcast, the river dark and dim, the
whole scene like a lifeless desert. And wreaths of dust were spinning round and
round before the morning blast, as if the desert-sand had risen far away, and
the first spray of it in its advance had begun to overwhelm the city.
Waste forces within
him, and a desert all around, this man stood still on his way across a silent
terrace, and saw for a moment, lying in the wilderness before him, a mirage of
honourable ambition, self-denial, and perseverance. In the fair city of this
vision, there were airy galleries from which the loves and graces looked upon
him, gardens in which the fruits of life hung ripening, waters of Hope that
sparkled in his sight. A moment, and it was gone. Climbing to a high chamber in
a well of houses, he threw himself down in his clothes on a neglected bed, and
its pillow was wet with wasted tears.
Sadly, sadly, the sun
rose; it rose upon no sadder sight than the man of good abilities and good
emotions, incapable of their directed exercise, incapable of his own help and
his own happiness, sensible of the blight on him, and resigning himself to let
it eat him away.
THE QUIET LODGINGS of
Doctor Manette were in a quiet street-corner not far from Soho-square. On the
afternoon of a certain fine Sunday when the waves of four months had roiled
over the trial for treason, and carried it, as to the public interest and
memory, far out to sea, Mr. Jarvis Lorry walked along the sunny streets from
Clerkenwell where he lived, on his way to dine with the Doctor. After several
relapses into business- absorption, Mr. Lorry had become the Doctor's friend,
and the quiet street-corner was the sunny part of his life.
On this certain fine
Sunday, Mr. Lorry walked towards Soho, early in the afternoon, for three
reasons of habit. Firstly, because, on fine Sundays, he often walked out,
before dinner, with the Doctor and Lucie; secondly, because, on unfavourable
Sundays, he was accustomed to be with them as the family friend, talking,
reading, looking out of window, and generally getting through the day; thirdly,
because he happened to have his own little shrewd doubts to solve, and knew how
the ways of the Doctor's household pointed to that time as a likely time for
solving them.
A quainter corner than
the corner where the Doctor lived, was not to be found in London. There was no
way through it, and the front windows of the Doctor's lodgings commanded a
pleasant little vista of street that had a congenial air of retirement on it.
There were few buildings then, north of the Oxford-road, and forest-trees
flourished, and wild flowers grew, and the hawthorn blossomed, in the now
vanished fields. As a consequence, country airs circulated in Soho with
vigorous freedom, instead of languishing into the parish like stray paupers
without a settlement; and there was many a good south wall, not far off, on
which the peaches ripened in their season.
The summer light struck
into the corner brilliantly in the earlier part of the day; but, when the
streets grew hot, the corner was in shadow, though not in shadow so remote but
that you could see beyond it into a glare of brightness. It was a cool spot,
staid but cheerful, a wonderful place for echoes, and a very harbour from the
raging streets.
There ought to have
been a tranquil bark in such an anchorage, and there was. The Doctor occupied
two floors of a large stiff house, where several callings purported to be
pursued by day, but whereof little was audible any day, and which was shunned
by all of them at night. In a building at the back, attainable by a courtyard
where a plane-tree rustled its green leaves, church-organs claimed to be made,
and silver to be chased, and likewise gold to be beaten by some mysterious
giant who had a golden arm starting out of the wall of the front hall -- as if
he had beaten himself precious, and menaced a similar conversion of all
visitors. Very little of these trades, or of a lonely lodger rumoured to live
up-stairs, or of a dim coach-trimming maker asserted to have a counting-house
below, was ever heard or seen. Occasionally, a stray workman putting his coat
on, traversed the hall, or a stranger peered about there, or a distant clink
was heard across the courtyard, or a thump from the golden giant. These,
however, were only the exceptions required to prove the rule that the sparrows
in the plane-tree behind the house, and the echoes in the corner before it, had
their own way from Sunday morning unto Saturday night.
Doctor Manette received
such patients here as his old reputation, and its revival in the floating
whispers of his story, brought him. His scientific knowledge, and his vigilance
and skill in conducting ingenious experiments, brought him otherwise into
moderate request, and he earned as much as he wanted.
These things were
within Mr. Jarvis Lorry's knowledge, thoughts, and notice, when he rang the
door-bell of the tranquil house in the corner, on the fine Sunday afternoon.
"Doctor Manette at
home?"
Expected home.
"Miss Lucie at
home?"
Expected home.
"Miss Pross at
home?"
Possibly at home, but
of a certainty impossible for handmaid to anticipate intentions of Miss Pross,
as to admission or denial of the fact.
"As I am at home
myself," said Mr. Lorry, "I'll go upstairs."
Although the Doctor's
daughter had known nothing of the country of her birth, she appeared to have
innately derived from it that ability to make much of little means, which is
one of its most useful and most agreeable characteristics. Simple as the furniture
was, it was set off by so many little adornments, of no value but for their
taste and fancy, that its effect was delightful. The disposition of everything
in the rooms, from the largest object to the least; the arrangement of colours,
the elegant variety and contrast obtained by thrift in trifles, by delicate
hands, clear eyes, and good sense; were at once so pleasant in themselves, and
so expressive of their originator, that, as Mr. Lorry stood looking about him,
the very chairs and tables seemed to ask him, with something of that peculiar
expression which he knew so well by this time, whether he approved?
There were three rooms
on a floor, and, the doors by which they communicated being put open that the
air might pass freely through them all, Mr. Lorry, smilingly observant of that
fanciful resemblance which he detected all around him, walked from one to
another. The first was the best room, and in it were Lucie's birds, and
flowers, and books, and desk, and work-table, and box of water-colours; the second
was the Doctor's consulting-room, used also as the dining-room; the third,
changingly speckled by the rustle of the plane-tree in the yard, was the
Doctor's bedroom, and there, in a corner, stood the disused shoemaker's bench
and tray of tools, much as it had stood on the fifth floor of the dismal house
by the wine-shop, in the suburb of Saint Antoine in Paris.
"I wonder,"
said Mr. Lorry, pausing in his looking about, "that he keeps that reminder
of his sufferings about him!"
"And why wonder at
that?" was the abrupt inquiry that made him start.
It proceeded from Miss
Pross, the wild red woman, strong of hand, ,whose acquaintance he had first
made at the Royal George Hotel at Dover, and had since improved.
"I should have
thought --" Mr. Lorry began.
"Pooh! You'd have
thought!" said Miss Pross; and Mr. Lorry left off.
"How do you
do?" inquired that lady then -- sharply, and yet as if to express that she
bore him no malice.
"I am pretty well,
I thank you," answered Mr. Lorry, with meekness; "how are you?"
"Nothing to boast
of," said Miss Pross.
"Indeed?"
"Ah! indeed!"
said Miss Pross. "I am very much put out about my Ladybird."
"Indeed?"
"For gracious sake
say something else besides 'indeed,' or you'll fidget me to death," said
Miss Pross: whose character (dissociated from stature) was shortness.
"Really,
then?" said Mr. Lorry, as an amendment.
"Really, is bad
enough," returned Miss Pross, "but better. Yes, I am very much put
out."
"May I ask the
cause?"
"I don't want
dozens of people who are not at all worthy of Ladybird, to come here looking
after her," said Miss Pross.
"Do dozens come
for that purpose?"
"Hundreds,"
said Miss Pross.
It was characteristic
of this lady (as of some other people before her time and since) that whenever
her original proposition was questioned, she exaggerated it.
"Dear me!"
said Mr. Lorry, as the safest remark he could think of.
"I have lived with
the darling -- or the darling has lived with me, and paid me for it; which she
certainly should never have done, you may take your affidavit, if I could have
afforded to keep either myself or her for nothing -- since she was ten years
old. And it's really very hard," said Miss Pross.
Not seeing with
precision what was very hard, Mr. Lorry shook his head; using that important
part of himself as a sort of fairy cloak that would fit anything.
"All sorts of
people who are not in the least degree worthy of the pet, are always turning
up," said Miss Pross. "When you began it --"
"I began it, Miss
Pross?"
"Didn't you? Who
brought her father to life?"
"Oh! If that was
beginning it --" said Mr. Lorry.
"It wasn't ending
it, I suppose? I say, when you began it, it was hard enough; not that I have
any fault to find with Doctor Manette, except that he is not worthy of such a
daughter, which is no imputation on him, for it was not to be expected that
anybody should be, under any circumstances. But it ready is doubly and trebly
hard to have crowds and multitudes of people turning up after him (I could have
forgiven him), to take Ladybird's affections away from me."
Mr. Lorry knew Miss
Pross to be very jealous, but he also knew her by this time to be, beneath the
service of her eccentricity, one of those unselfish creatures -- found only
among women -- who will, for pure love and admiration, bind themselves willing slaves,
to youth when they have lost it, to beauty that they never had, to
accomplishments that they were never fortunate enough to gain, to bright hopes
that never shone upon their own sombre lives. He knew enough of the world to
know that there is nothing in it better than the faithful service of the heart;
so rendered and so free from any mercenary taint, he had such an exalted
respect for it, that in the retributive arrangements made by his own mind -- we
all make such arrangements, more or less -- he stationed Miss Pross much nearer
to the lower Angels than many ladies immeasurably better got up both by Nature
and Art, who had balances at Tellson's.
"There never was,
nor will be, but one man worthy of Ladybird," said Miss Pross; "and
that was my brother Solomon, if he hadn't made a mistake in life."
Here again: Mr. Lorry's
inquiries into Miss Pross's personal history had established the fact that her
brother Solomon was a heartless scoundrel who had stripped her of everything
she possessed, as a stake to speculate with, and had abandoned her in her
poverty for evermore, with no touch of compunction. Miss Pross's fidelity of
belief in Solomon (deducting a mere trifle for this slight mistake) was quite a
serious matter with Mr. Lorry, and had its weight in his good opinion of her.
"As we happen to
be alone for the moment, and are both people of business," he said, when
they had got back to the drawing-room and had sat down there in friendly
relations, "let me ask you -- does the Doctor, in talking with Lucie,
never refer to the shoemaking time, yet?"
"Never."
"And yet keeps
that bench and those tools beside him?"
"Ah!"
returned Miss Pross, shaking her head. "But I don't say he don't refer to
it within himself."
"Do you believe
that he thinks of it much?"
"I do," said
Miss Pross.
"Do you imagine
--" Mr. Lorry had begun, when Miss Pross took him up short with:
"Never imagine
anything. Have no imagination at all."
"I stand
corrected; do you suppose -- you go so far as to suppose, sometimes?"
"Now and
then," said Miss Pross.
"Do you
suppose," Mr. Lorry went on, with a laughing twinkle in his bright eye, as
it looked kindly at her, "that Doctor Manette has any theory of his own,
preserved through all those years, relative to the cause of his being so
oppressed; perhaps, even to the name of his oppressor?"
"I don't suppose
anything about it but what Ladybird tells me."
"And that is --
?"
"That she thinks
he has."
"Now don't be
angry at my asking all these questions; because I am a mere dull man of
business, and you are a woman of business."
"Dull?" Miss
Pross inquired, with placidity.
Rather wishing his
modest adjective away, Mr. Lorry replied, "No, no, no. Surely not. To
return to business: -- Is it not remarkable that Doctor Manette, unquestionably
innocent of any crane as we are all well assured he is, should never touch upon
that question? I will not say with me, though he had business relations with me
many years ago, and we are now intimate; I will say with the fair daughter to whom
he is so devotedly attached, and who is so devotedly attached to him? Believe
me, Miss Pross, I don't approach the topic with you, out of curiosity, but out
of zealous interest."
"Well! To the best
of my understanding, and bad's the best, you'll tell me," said Miss Pross,
softened by the tone of the apology, "he is afraid of the whole
subject."
"Afraid?"
"It's plain
enough, I should think, why he may be. It's a dreadful remembrance. Besides
that, his loss of himself grew out of it. Not knowing how he lost himself, or
how he recovered himself, he may never feel certain of not losing himself
again. That alone wouldn't make the subject pleasant, I should think."
It was a profounder
remark than Mr. Lorry had looked for. "True," said he, "and
fearful to reflect upon. Yet, a doubt lurks in my mind, Miss Pross, whether it
is good for Doctor Manette to have that suppression always shut up within him.
Indeed, it is this doubt and the uneasiness it sometimes causes me that has led
me to our present confidence."
"Can't be
helped," said Miss Pross, shaking her head. "Touch that string, and
he instantly changes for the worse. Better leave it alone. In short, must leave
it alone, like or no like. Sometimes, he gets up in the dead of the night, and
will be heard, by us overhead there, walking up and down, walking up and down,
in his room. Ladybird has learnt to know then that his mind is walking up and
down, walking up and down, in his old prison. She hurries to him, and they go
on together, walking up and down, walking up and down, until he is composed.
But he never says a word of the true reason of his restlessness, to her, and
she finds it best not to hint at it to him. In silence they go walking up and
down together, walking up and down together, till her love and company have
brought him to himself."
Notwithstanding Miss
Pross's denial of her own imagination, there was a perception of the pain of
being monotonously haunted by one sad idea, in her repetition of the phrase,
walking up and down, which testified to her possessing such a thing.
The corner has been
mentioned as a wonderful corner for echoes; it had begun to echo so
resoundingly to the tread of coming feet, that it seemed as though the very
mention of that weary pacing to and fro had set it going.
"Here they
are!" said Miss Pross, rising to break up the conference; "and now we
shall have hundreds of people pretty soon!"
It was such a curious
corner in its acoustical properties, such a peculiar Ear of a place, that as
Mr. Lorry stood at the open window, looking for the father and daughter whose
steps he heard, he fancied they would never approach. Not only would the echoes
die away, as though the steps had gone; but, echoes of other steps that never
came would be heard in their stead, and would die away for good when they
seemed close at hand. However, father and daughter did at last appear, and Miss
Pross was ready at the street door to receive them.
Miss Pross was a
pleasant sight, albeit wild, and red, and grim, taking off her darling's bonnet
when she came up-stairs, and touching it up with the ends of her handkerchief,
and blowing the dust off it, and folding her mantle ready for laying by, and smoothing
her rich hair with as much pride as she could possibly have taken in her own
hair if she had been the vainest and handsomest of women. Her darling was a
pleasant sight too, embracing her and thanking her, and protesting against her
taking so much trouble for her -- which last she only dared to do playfully, or
Miss Pross, sorely hurt, would have retired to her own chamber and cried. The
Doctor was a pleasant sight too, looking on at them, and telling Miss Pross how
she spoilt Lucie, in accents and with eyes that had as much spoiling in them as
Miss Pross had, and would have had more if it were possible. Mr. Lorry was a
pleasant sight too, beaming at all this in his little wig, and thanking his
bachelor stars for having lighted him in his declining years to a Home. But, no
Hundreds of people came to see the sights, and Mr. Lorry looked in vain for the
fulfilment of Miss Pross's prediction.
Dinner-time, and still
no Hundreds of people. In the arrangements of the little household, Miss Pross
took charge of the lower regions, and always acquitted herself marvellously.
Her dinners, of a very modest quality, were so well cooked and so well served,
and so neat in their contrivances, half English and half French, that nothing
could be better. Miss Pross's friendship being of the thoroughly practical
kind, she had ravaged Soho and the adjacent provinces, in search of
impoverished French, who, tempted by shillings and half-crowns, would impart
culinary mysteries to her. From these decayed sons and daughters of Gaul, she
had acquired such wonderful arts, that the woman and girl who formed the staff
of domestics regarded her as quite a Sorceress, or Cinderella's Godmother: who
would send out for a fowl, a rabbit, a vegetable or two from the garden, and
change them into anything she pleased.
On Sundays, Miss Pross
dined at the Doctor's table, but on other days persisted in taking her meals at
unknown periods, either in the lower regions, or in her own room on the second
floor -- a blue chamber, to which no one but her Ladybird ever gained
admittance. On this occasion, Miss Pross, responding to Ladybird's pleasant
face and pleasant efforts to please her, unbent exceedingly; so the dinner was
very pleasant, too.
It was an oppressive
day, and, after dinner, Lucie proposed that the wine should be carried out
under the plane-tree, and they should sit there in the air. As everything
turned upon her, and revolved about her, they went out under the plane-tree,
and she carried the wine down for the special benefit of Mr. Lorry. She had
installed herself, some time before, as Mr. Lorry's cup-bearer; and while they
sat under the plane-tree, talking, she kept his glass replenished. Mysterious
backs and ends of houses peeped at them as they talked, and the plane-tree
whispered to them in its own way above their heads.
Still, the Hundreds of
people did not present themselves. Mr. Darnay presented himself while they were
sitting under the plane-tree, but he was only One.
Doctor Manette received
him kindly, and so did Lucie. But, Miss Pross suddenly became afflicted with a
twitching in the head and body, and retired into the house. She was not
unfrequently the victim of this disorder, and she called it, in familiar
conversation, "a fit of the jerks."
The Doctor was in his
best condition, and looked specially young. The resemblance between him and
Lucie was very strong at such times, and as they sat side by side, she leaning
on his shoulder, and he resting his arm on the back of her chair, it was very
agreeable to trace the likeness.
He had been talking all
day, on many subjects, and with unusual vivacity. "Pray, Doctor
Manette," said Mr. Darnay, as they sat under the plane-tree -- and he said
it in the natural pursuit of the topic in hand, which happened to be the old
buildings of London -- "have you seen much of the Tower?"
"Lucie and I have
been there; but only casually. We have seen enough of it, to know that it teems
with interest; little more."
"I have been
there, as you remember," said Darnay, with a smile, though reddening a
little angrily, "in another character, and not in a character that gives
facilities for seeing much of it. They told me a curious thing when I was
there."
"What was
that?" Lucie asked.
"In making some
alterations, the workmen came upon an old dungeon, which had been, for many
years, built up and forgotten. Every stone of its inner wall was covered by
inscriptions which had been carved by prisoners -- dates, names, complaints,
and prayers. Upon a corner stone in an angle of the wall, one prisoner, who
seemed to have gone to execution, had cut as his last work, three letters. They
were done with some very poor instrument, and hurriedly, with an unsteady hand.
At first, they were read as D. I. C.; but, on being more carefully examined,
the last letter was found to be G. There was no record or legend of any
prisoner with those initials, and many fruitless guesses were made what the
name could have been. At length, it was suggested that the letters were not
initials, but the complete word, DIG. The floor was examined very carefully
under the inscription, and, in the earth beneath a stone, or tile, or some
fragment of paving, were found the ashes of a paper, mingled with the ashes of
a small leathern case or bag. What the unknown prisoner had written will never
be read, but he had written something, and hidden it away to keep it from the
gaoler."
"My father,"
exclaimed Lucie, "you are ill!"
He had suddenly started
up, with his hand to his head. His manner and his look quite terrified them
all.
"No, my dear, not
ill. There are large drops of rain falling, and they made me start. We had
better go in."
He recovered himself
almost instantly. Rain was really falling in large drops, and he showed the
back of his hand with rain-drops on it. But, he said not a single word in
reference to the discovery that had been told of, and, as they went into the
house, the business eye of Mr. Lorry either detected, or fancied it detected,
on his face, as it turned towards Charles Darnay, the same singular look that had
been upon it when it turned towards him in the passages of the Court House.
He recovered himself so
quickly, however, that Mr. Lorry had doubts of his business eye. The arm of the
golden giant in the hall was not more steady than he was, when he stopped under
it to remark to them that he was not yet proof against slight surprises (if he
ever would be), and that the rain had startled him.
Tea-time, and Miss
Pross making tea, with another fit of the jerks upon her, and yet no Hundreds
of people. Mr. Carton had lounged in, but he made only Two.
The night was so very
sultry, that although they sat with doors and windows open, they were
overpowered by heat. When the tea-table was done with, they all moved to one of
the windows, and looked out into the heavy twilight. Lucie sat by her father;
Darnay sat beside her; Carton leaned against a window. The curtains were long
and white, and some of the thunder-gusts that whirled into the corner, caught
them up to the ceiling, and waved them like spectral wings.
"The rain-drops
are still falling, large, heavy, and few," said Doctor Manette. "It
comes slowly."
"It comes
surely," said Carton.
They spoke low, as
people watching and waiting mostly do; as people in a dark room, watching and
waiting for Lightning, always do.
There was a great hurry
in the streets of people speeding away to get shelter before the storm broke;
the wonderful corner for echoes resounded with the echoes of footsteps coming
and going, yet not a footstep was there.
"A multitude of
people, and yet a solitude!" said Darnay, when they had listened for a
while.
"Is it not
impressive, Mr. Darnay?" asked Lucie. "Sometimes, I have sat here of
an evening, until I have fancied -- but even the shade of a foolish fancy makes
me shudder to-night, when all is so black and solemn --"
"Let us shudder
too. We may know what it is."
"It will seem
nothing to you. Such whims are only impressive as we originate them, I think;
they are not to be communicated. I have sometimes sat alone here of an evening,
listening, until I have made the echoes out to be the echoes of all the
footsteps that are coming by-and-bye into our lives."
"There is a great
crowd coming one day into our lives, if that be so," Sydney Carton struck
in, in his moody way.
The footsteps were
incessant, and the hurry of them became more and more rapid. The corner echoed
and re-echoed with the tread of feet; some, as it seemed, under the windows;
some, as it seemed, in the room; some coming, some going, some breaking off,
some stopping altogether; all in the distant streets, and not one within sight.
"Are all these
footsteps destined to come to all of us, Miss Manette, or are we to divide them
among us?"
"I don't know, Mr.
Darnay; I told you it was a foolish fancy, but you asked for it. When I have
yielded myself to it, I have been alone, and then I have imagined them the
footsteps of the people who are to come into my life, and my father's."
"I take them into
mine!" said Carton. "I ask no questions and make no stipulations.
There is a great crowd bearing down upon us, Miss Manette, and I see them -- by
the Lightning." He added the last words, after there had been a vivid
flash which had shown him lounging in the window.
"And I hear
them!" he added again, after a peal of thunder. "Here they come,
fast, fierce, and furious!"
It was the rush and
roar of rain that he typified, and it stopped him, for no voice could be heard
in it. A memorable storm of thunder and lightning broke with that sweep of
water, and there was not a moment's interval in crash, and fire, and rain,
until after the moon rose at midnight.
The great bell of Saint
Paul's was striking one in the cleared air, when Mr. Lorry, escorted by Jerry,
high-booted and bearing a lantern, set forth on his return-passage to
Clerkenwell. There were solitary patches of road on the way between Soho and
Clerkenwell, and Mr. Lorry, mindful of foot-pads, always retained Jerry for
this service: though it was usually performed a good two hours earlier.
"What a night it
has been! Almost a night, Jerry," said Mr. Lorry, "to bring the dead
out of their graves."
"I never see the
night myself, master -- nor yet I don't expect to -- what would do that,"
answered Jerry.
"Good night, Mr.
Carton," said the man of business. "Good night, Mr. Darnay. Shall we
ever see such a night again, together!"
Perhaps. Perhaps, see
the great crowd of people with its rush and roar, bearing down upon them, too.
MONSEIGNEUR, one of the
great lords in power at the Court, held his fortnightly reception in his grand
hotel in Paris. Monseigneur was in his inner room, his sanctuary of
sanctuaries, the Holiest of Holiests to the crowd of worshippers in the suite of
rooms without. Monseigneur was about to take his chocolate. Monseigneur could
swallow a great many things with ease, and was by some few sullen minds
supposed to be rather rapidly swallowing France; but, his morning's chocolate
could not so much as get into the throat of Monseigneur, without the aid of
four strong men besides the Cook.
Yes. It took four men,
all four ablaze with gorgeous decoration, and the Chief of them unable to exist
with fewer than two gold watches in his pocket, emulative of the noble and
chaste fashion set by Monseigneur, to conduct the happy chocolate to
Monseigneur's lips. One lacquey carried the chocolate-pot into the sacred
presence; a second, milled and frothed the chocolate with the little instrument
he bore for that function; a third, presented the favoured napkin; a fourth (he
of the two gold watches), poured the chocolate out. It was impossible for
Monseigneur to dispense with one of these attendants on the chocolate and hold
his high place under the admiring Heavens. Deep would have been the blot upon
his escutcheon if his chocolate had been ignobly waited on by only three men;
he must have died of two.
Monseigneur had been
out at a little supper last night, where the Comedy and the Grand Opera were
charmingly represented. Monseigneur was out at a little supper most nights,
with fascinating company. So polite and so impressible was Monseigneur, that
the Comedy and the Grand Opera had far more influence with him in the tiresome
articles of state affairs and state secrets, than the needs of all France. A
happy circumstance for France, as the like always is for all countries
similarly favoured! -- always was for England (by way of example), in the
regretted days of the merry Stuart who sold it.
Monseigneur had one
truly noble idea of general public business, which was, to let everything go on
in its own way; of particular public business, Monseigneur had the other truly
noble idea that it must all go his way -- tend to his own power and pocket. Of
his pleasures, general and particular, Monseigneur had the other truly noble
idea, that the world was made for them. The text of his order (altered from the
original by only a pronoun, which is not much) ran: "The earth and the
fulness thereof are mine, saith Monseigneur."
Yet, Monseigneur had
slowly found that vulgar embarrassments crept into his affairs, both private
and public; and he had, as to both classes of affairs, allied himself perforce
with a Farmer-General. As to finances public, because Monseigneur could not
make anything at all of them, and must consequently let them out to somebody
who could; as to finances private, because Farmer-Generals were rich, and
Monseigneur, after generations of great luxury and expense, was growing poor.
Hence Monseigneur had taken his sister from a convent, while there was yet time
to ward off the impending veil, the cheapest garment she could wear, and had
bestowed her as a prize upon a very rich Farmer-General, poor in family. Which
Farmer-General, carrying an appropriate cane with a golden apple on the top of
it, was now among the company in the outer rooms, much prostrated before by
mankind -- always excepting superior mankind of the blood of Monseigneur, who,
his own wife included, looked down upon him with the loftiest contempt.
A sumptuous man was the
Farmer-General. Thirty horses stood in his stables, twenty-four male domestics
sat in his halls, six body-women waited on his wife. As one who pretended to do
nothing but plunder and forage where he could, the Farmer-General -- howsoever
his matrimonial relations conduced to social morality -- was at least the
greatest reality among the personages who attended at the hotel of Monseigneur
that day.
For, the rooms, though
a beautiful scene to look at, and adorned with every device of decoration that
the taste and skill of the time could achieve, were, in truth, not a sound
business; considered with any reference to the scarecrows in the rags and
nightcaps elsewhere (and not so far off, either, but that the watching towers
of Notre Dame, almost equidistant from the two extremes, could see them both),
they would have been an exceedingly uncomfortable business -- if that could
have been anybody's business, at the house of Monseigneur. Military officers
destitute of military knowledge; naval officers with no idea of a ship; civil
officers without a notion of affairs; brazen ecclesiastics, of the worst world
worldly, with sensual eyes, loose tongues, and looser lives; all totally unfit
for their several callings, all lying horribly in pretending to belong to them,
but all nearly or remotely of the order of Monseigneur, and therefore foisted
on all public employments from which anything was to be got; these were to be
told off by the score and the score. People not immediately connected with Monseigneur
or the State, yet equally unconnected with anything that was real, or with
lives passed in travelling by any straight road to any true earthly end, were
no less abundant. Doctors who made great fortunes out of dainty remedies for
imaginary disorders that never existed, smiled upon their courtly patients in
the ante-chambers of Monseigneur. Projectors who had discovered every kind of
remedy for the little evils with which the State was touched, except the remedy
of setting to work in earnest to root out a single sin, poured their
distracting babble into any ears they could lay hold of, at the reception of
Monseigneur. Unbelieving Philosophers who were remodelling the world with
words, and making card-towers of Babel to scale the skies with, talked with Unbelieving
Chemists who had an eye on the transmutation of metals, at this wonderful
gathering accumulated by Monseigneur. Exquisite gentlemen of the finest
breeding, which was at that remarkable time -- and has been since -- to be
known by its fruits of indifference to every natural subject of human interest,
were in the most exemplary state of exhaustion, at the hotel of Monseigneur.
Such homes had these various notabilities left behind them in the fine world of
Paris, that the spies among the assembled devotees of Monseigneur -- forming a
goodly half of the polite company -- would have found it hard to discover among
the angels of that sphere one solitary wife, who, in her manners and
appearance, owned to being a Mother. Indeed, except for the mere act of
bringing a troublesome creature into this world -- which does not go far
towards the realisation of the name of mother -- there was no such thing known
to the fashion. Peasant women kept the unfashionable babies close, and brought
them up, and charming, grandmammas of sixty dressed and supped as at twenty.
The leprosy of
unreality disfigured every human creature in attendance upon Monseigneur. In
the outermost room were half a dozen exceptional people who had had, for a few
years, some vague misgiving in them that things in general were going rather
wrong. As a promising way of setting them right, half of the half-dozen had
become members of a fantastic sect of Convulsionists, and were even then
considering within themselves whether they should foam, rage, roar, and turn
cataleptic on the spot -- thereby setting up a highly intelligible finger-post
to the Future, for Monseigneur's guidance. Besides these Dervishes, were other
three who had rushed into another sect, which mended matters with a jargon about
"the Centre of Truth:" holding that Man had got out of the Centre of
Truth -- which did not need much demonstration -- but had not got out of the
Circumference, and that he was to be kept from flying out of the Circumference,
and was even to be shoved back into the Centre, by fasting and seeing of
spirits. Among these, accordingly, much discoursing with spirits went on -- and
it did a world of good which never became manifest.
But, the comfort was,
that all the company at the grand hotel of Monseigneur were perfectly dressed.
If the Day of Judgment had only been ascertained to be a dress day, everybody
there would have been eternally correct. Such frizzling and powdering and
sticking up of hair, such delicate complexions artificially preserved and mended,
such gallant swords to look at, and such delicate honour to the sense of smell,
would surely keep anything going, for ever and ever. The exquisite gentlemen of
the finest breeding wore little pendent trinkets that chinked as they languidly
moved; these golden fetters rang like precious little bells; and what with that
ringing, and with the rustle of silk and brocade and fine linen, there was a
flutter in the air that fanned Saint Antoine and his devouring hunger far away.
Dress was the one
unfailing talisman and charm used for keeping all things in their places.
Everybody was dressed for a Fancy Ball that was never to leave off. From the
Palace of the Tuileries, through Monseigneur and the whole Court, through the
Chambers, the Tribunals of Justice, and all society (except the scarecrows),
the Fancy Ball descended to the Common Executioner: who, in pursuance of the
charm, was required to officiate "frizzled, powdered, in a gold-laced
coat, pumps, and white silk stockings." At the gallows and the wheel -- the
axe was a rarity -- Monsieur Paris, as it was the episcopal mode among his
brother Professors of the provinces, Monsieur Orleans, and the rest, to call
him, presided in this dainty dress. And who among the company at Monseigneur's
reception in that seventeen hundred and eightieth year of our Lord, could
possibly doubt, that a system rooted in a frizzled hangman, powdered,
gold-laced, pumped, and white-silk stockinged, would see the very stars out!
Monseigneur having
eased his four men of their burdens and taken his chocolate, caused the doors
of the Holiest of Holiests to be thrown open, and issued forth. Then, what
submission, what cringing and fawning, what servility, what abject humiliation!
As to bowing down in body and spirit, nothing in that way was left for Heaven
-- which may have been one among other reasons why the worshippers of
Monseigneur never troubled it.
Bestowing a word of
promise here and a smile there, a whisper on one happy slave and a wave of the
hand on another, Monseigneur affably passed through his rooms to the remote
region of the Circumference of Truth. There, Monseigneur turned, and came back
again, and so in due course of time got himself shut up in his sanctuary by the
chocolate sprites, and was seen no more.
The show being over,
the flutter in the air became quite a little storm, and the precious little
bells went ringing down-stairs. There was soon but one person left of all the
crowd, and he, with his hat under his arm and his snuff-box in his hand, slowly
passed among the mirrors on his way out.
"I devote
you," said this person, stopping at the last door on his way, and turning
in the direction of the sanctuary, "to the Devil!"
With that, he shook the
snuff from his fingers as if he had shaken the dust from his feet, and quietly
walked down-stairs.
He was a man of about
sixty, handsomely dressed, haughty in manner, and with a face like a fine mask.
A face of a transparent paleness; every feature in it clearly defined; one set
expression on it. The nose, beautifully formed otherwise, was very slightly
pinched at the top of each nostril. In those two compressions, or dints, the
only little change that the face ever showed, resided. They persisted in
changing colour sometimes, and they would be occasionally dilated and contracted
by something like a faint pulsation; then, they gave a look of treachery, and
cruelty, to the whole countenance. Examined with attention, its capacity of
helping such a look was to be found in the line of the mouth, and the lines of
the orbits of the eyes, being much too horizontal and thin; still, in the
effect of the face made, it was a handsome face, and a remarkable one.
Its owner went
down-stairs into the courtyard, got into his carriage, and drove away. Not many
people had talked with him at the reception; he had stood in a little space
apart, and Monseigneur might have been warmer in his manner. It appeared, under
the circumstances, rather agreeable to him to see the common people dispersed
before his horses, and often barely escaping from being run down. His man drove
as if he were charging an enemy, and the furious recklessness of the man
brought no check into the face, or to the lips, of the master. The complaint
had sometimes made itself audible, even in that deaf city and dumb age, that,
in the narrow streets without footways, the fierce patrician custom of hard
driving endangered and maimed the mere vulgar in a barbarous manner. But, few
cared enough for that to think of it a second time, and, in this matter, as in
all others, the common wretches were left to get out of their difficulties as
they could.
With a wild rattle and
clatter, and an inhuman abandonment of consideration not easy to be understood
in these days, the carriage dashed through streets and swept round corners,
with women screaming before it, and men clutching each other and clutching
children out of its way. At last, swooping at a street corner by a fountain,
one of its wheels came to a sickening little jolt, and there was a loud cry
from a number of voices, and the horses reared and plunged.
But for the latter
inconvenience, the carriage probably would not have stopped; carriages were
often known to drive on, and leave their wounded behind, and why not? But the
frightened valet had got down in a hurry, and there were twenty hands at the
horses' bridles.
"What has gone
wrong?" said Monsieur, calmly looking out.
A tall man in a
nightcap had caught up a bundle from among the feet of the horses, and had laid
it on the basement of the fountain, and was down in the mud and wet, howling
over it like a wild animal.
"Pardon, Monsieur
the Marquis!" said a ragged and submissive man, "it is a child."
"Why does he make
that abominable noise? Is it his child?"
"Excuse me,
Monsieur the Marquis -- it is a pity -- yes."
The fountain was a
little removed; for the street opened, where it was, into a space some ten or
twelve yards square. As the tall man suddenly got up from the ground, and came
running at the carriage, Monsieur the Marquis clapped his hand for an instant
on his sword-hilt.
"Killed!"
shrieked the man, in wild desperation, extending both arms at their length
above his head, and staring at him. "Dead!"
The people closed
round, and looked at Monsieur the Marquis. There was nothing revealed by the
many eyes that looked at him but watchfulness and eagerness; there was no
visible menacing or anger. Neither did the people say anything; after the first
cry, they had been silent, and they remained so. The voice of the submissive
man who had spoken, was flat and tame in its extreme submission. Monsieur the
Marquis ran his eyes over them all, as if they had been mere rats come out of
their holes.
He took out his purse.
"It is
extraordinary to me," said he, "that you people cannot take care of
yourselves and your children. One or the other of you is for ever in the, way.
How do I know what injury you have done my horses. See! Give him that."
He threw out a gold
coin for the valet to pick up, and all the heads craned forward that all the
eyes might look down at it as it fell. The tall man called out again with a
most unearthly cry, "Dead!"
He was arrested by the
quick arrival of another man, for whom the rest made way. On seeing him, the
miserable creature fell upon his shoulder, sobbing and crying, and pointing to
the fountain, where some women were stooping over the motionless bundle, and
moving gently about it. They were as silent, however, as the men.
"I know all, I
know all," said the last comer. "Be a brave man, my Gaspard! It is
better for the poor little plaything to die so, than to live. It has died in a
moment without pain. Could it have lived an hour as happily?"
"You are a
philosopher, you there," said the, Marquis, smiling. "How do they
call you?"
"They call me
Defarge."
"Of what
trade?"
"Monsieur the
Marquis, vendor of wine."
"Pick up that,
philosopher and vendor of wine," said the Marquis, throwing him another
gold coin, "and spend it as you will. The horses there; are they
right?"
Without deigning to
look at the assemblage a second time, Monsieur the Marquis leaned back in his
seat, and was just being driven away with the air of a gentleman who had
accidentally broke some common thing, and had paid for it, and could afford to
pay for it; when his ease was suddenly disturbed by a coin flying into his
carriage, and ringing on its floor.
"Hold!" said
Monsieur the Marquis. "Hold the horses! Who threw that?"
He looked to the spot
where Defarge the vendor of wine had stood, a moment before; but the wretched
father was grovelling on his face on the pavement in that spot, and the figure
that stood beside him was the figure of a dark stout woman, knitting.
"You dogs!"
said the Marquis, but smoothly, and with an unchanged front, except as to the
spots on his nose: "I would ride over any of you very willingly, and
exterminate you from the earth. If I knew which rascal threw at the carriage,
and if that brigand were sufficiently near it, he should be crushed under the
wheels."
So cowed was their
condition, and so long and hard their experience of what such a man could do to
them, within the law and beyond it, that not a voice, or a hand, or even an eye
was raised. Among the men, not one. But the woman who stood knitting looked up
steadily, and looked the Marquis in the face. It was not for his dignity to
notice it; his contemptuous eyes passed over her, and over all the other rats;
and he leaned back in his seat again, and gave the word "Go on!"
He was driven on, and
other carriages came whirling by in quick succession; the Minister, the
State-Projector, the Farmer-General, the Doctor, the Lawyer, the Ecclesiastic,
the Grand Opera, the Comedy, the whole Fancy Ball in a bright continuous flow,
came whirling by. The rats had crept out of their holes to look on, and they
remained looking on for hours; soldiers and police often passing between them
and the spectacle, and making a barrier behind which they slunk, and through
which they peeped. The father had long ago taken up his bundle and bidden
himself away with it, when the women who had tended the bundle while it lay on
the base of the fountain, sat there watching the running of the water and the
rolling of the Fancy Ball -- when the one woman who had stood conspicuous,
knitting, still knitted on with the steadfastness of Fate. The water of the
fountain ran, the swift river ran, the day ran into evening, so much life in
the city ran into death according to rule, time and tide waited for no man, the
rats were sleeping close together in their dark holes again, the Fancy Ball was
lighted up at supper, all things ran their course.
A BEAUTIFUL LANDSCAPE,
with the corn bright in it, but not abundant. Patches of poor rye where com
should have been, patches of poor peas and beans, patches of most coarse
vegetable substitutes for wheat. On inanimate nature, as on the men and women
who cultivated it, a prevalent tendency towards an appearance of vegetating
unwillingly -- a dejected disposition to give up, and wither away.
Monsieur the Marquis in
his travelling carriage (which might have been lighter), conducted by four
post-horses and two postilions, fagged up a steep hill. A blush on the
countenance of Monsieur the Marquis was no impeachment of his high breeding; it
was not from within; it was occasioned by an external circumstance beyond his
control -- the setting sun.
The sunset struck so
brilliantly into the travelling carriage when it gained the hill-top, that its
occupant was steeped in crimson. "It will die out," said Monsieur the
Marquis, glancing at his hands, "directly."
In effect, the sun was
so low that it dipped at the moment. When the heavy drag had been adjusted to
the wheel, and the carriage slid down hill, with a cinderous smell, in a cloud
of dust, the red glow departed quickly; the sun and the Marquis going down
together, there was no glow left when the drag was taken off.
But, there remained a
broken country, bold and open, a little village at the bottom of the hill, a
broad sweep and rise beyond it, a church- tower, a windmill, a forest for the
chase, and a crag with a fortress on it used as a prison. Round upon all these
darkening objects as the night drew on, the Marquis looked, with the air of one
who was coming near home.
The village had its one
poor street, with its poor brewery, poor tannery, poor tavern, poor stable-yard
for relays of post-horses, poor fountain, all usual poor appointments. It had
its poor people too. All its people were poor, and many of them were sitting at
their doors, shredding spare onions and the like for supper, while many were at
the fountain, washing leaves, and grasses, and any such small yieldings of the
earth that could be eaten. Expressive sips of what made them poor, were not
wanting; the tax for the state, the tax for the church, the tax for the lord,
tax local and tax general, were to be paid here and to be paid there, according
to solemn inscription in the little village, until the wonder was, that there
was any village left unswallowed.
Few children were to be
seen, and no dogs. As to the men and women, their choice on earth was stated in
the prospect -- Life on the lowest terms that could sustain it, down in the
little village under the mill; or captivity and Death in the dominant prison on
the crag.
Heralded by a courier
in advance, and by the cracking of his postilions' whips, which twined
snake-like about their heads in the evening air, as if he came attended by the
Furies, Monsieur the Marquis drew up in his travelling carriage at the
posting-house gate. It was hard by the fountain, and the peasants suspended
their operations to look at him. He looked at them, and saw in them, without
knowing it, the slow sure filing down of misery-worn face and figure, that was
to make the meagreness of Frenchmen an English superstition which should
survive the truth through the best part of a hundred years.
Monsieur the Marquis
cast his eyes over the submissive faces that drooped before him, as the like of
himself had drooped before Monseigneur of the Court -- only the difference was,
that these faces drooped merely to suffer and not to propitiate -- when a
grizzled mender of the roads joined the group.
"Bring me hither
that fellow!" said the Marquis to the courier.
The fellow was brought,
cap in hand, and the other fellows closed round to look and listen, in the
manner of the people at the Paris fountain.
"I passed you on
the road?"
"Monseigneur, it
is true. I had the honour of being passed on the road."
"Coming up the
hill, and at the top of the hill, both?"
"Monseigneur, it
is true."
"What did you look
at, so fixedly?"
"Monseigneur, I
looked at the man."
He stooped a little,
and with his tattered blue cap pointed under the carriage. All his fellows
stooped to look under the carriage.
"What man, pig?
And why look there?"
"Pardon,
Monseigneur; he swung by the chain of the shoe -- the drag."
"Who?"
demanded the traveller.
"Monseigneur, the
man."
"May the Devil
carry away these idiots! How do you can the man? You know all the men of this
part of the country. Who was he?"
"Your clemency,
Monseigneur! He was not of this part of the country. Of all the days of my
life, I never saw him."
"Swinging by the
chain? To be suffocated?"
"With your
gracious permission, that was the wonder of it, Monseigneur. His head hanging
over -- like this!"
He turned himself
sideways to the carriage, and leaned back, with his face thrown up to the sky,
and his head hanging down; then recovered himself, fumbled with his cap, and
made a bow.
"What was he
like?"
"Monseigneur, he
was whiter than the miller. All covered with dust, white as a spectre, tall as
a spectre!"
The picture produced an
immense sensation in the little crowd; but all eyes, without comparing notes
with other eyes, looked at Monsieur the Marquis. Perhaps, to observe whether he
had any spectre on his conscience.
"Truly, you did
well," said the Marquis, felicitously sensible that such vermin were not
to ruffle him, "to see a thief accompanying my carriage, and not open that
great mouth of yours. Bah! Put him aside, Monsieur Gabelle!"
Monsieur Gabelle was
the Postmaster, and some other taxing functionary united; he had come out with
great obsequiousness to assist at this examination, and had held the examined
by the drapery of his arm in an official manner.
"Bah! Go
aside!" said Monsieur Gabelle.
"Lay hands on this
stranger if he seeks to lodge in your village to- night, and be sure that his
business is honest, Gabelle."
"Monseigneur, I am
flattered to devote myself to your orders."
"Did he run away,
fellow? -- where is that Accursed?"
The accursed was
already under the carriage with some half-dozen particular friends, pointing
out the chain with his blue cap. Some half- dozen other particular friends
promptly hauled him out, and presented him breathless to Monsieur the Marquis.
"Did the man run
away, Dolt, when we stopped for the drag?"
"Monseigneur, he
precipitated himself over the hill-side, head first, as a person plunges into
the river."
"See to it,
Gabelle. Go on!"
The half-dozen who were
peering at the chain were still among the wheels, ne sheep; the wheels turned
so suddenly that they were lucky to save their skins and bones; they had very
little else to save, or they might not have been so fortunate.
The burst with which
the carriage started out of the village and up the rise beyond, was soon
checked by the steepness of the hill. Gradually, it subsided to a foot pace,
swinging and lumbering upward among the many sweet scents of a summer night.
The postilions, with a thousand gossamer gnats circling about them in lieu of
the Furies, quietly mended the points to the lashes of their whips; the valet
walked by the horses; the courier was audible, trotting on ahead into the dun
distance.
At the steepest point
of the hill there was a little burial-ground, with a Cross and a new large
figure of Our Saviour on it; it was a poor figure in wood, done by some
inexperienced rustic carver, but he had studied the figure from the life -- his
own life, maybe -- for it was dreadfully spare and thin.
To this distressful
emblem of a great distress that had long been growing worse, and was not at its
worst, a woman was kneeling. She turned her head as the carriage came up to
her, rose quickly, and presented herself at the carriage-door.
"It is you,
Monseigneur! Monseigneur, a petition."
With an exclamation of
impatience, but with his unchangeable face, Monseigneur looked out.
"How, then! What
is it? Always petitions!"
"Monseigneur. For
the love of the great God! My husband, the forester. "
"What of your
husband, the forester? Always the same with you people. He cannot pay
something?"
"He has paid all,
Monseigneur. He is dead."
"Well! He is
quiet. Can I restore him to you?"
"Alas, no,
Monseigneur! But he lies yonder, under a little heap of poor grass."
"Well?"
"Monseigneur,
there are so many little heaps of poor grass?"
"Again, well?"
She looked an old
woman, but was young. Her manner was one of passionate grief; by turns she
clasped her veinous and knotted hands together with wild energy, and laid one
of them on the carriage-door -- tenderly, caressingly, as if it had been a human
breast, and could be expected to feel the appealing touch.
"Monseigneur, hear
me! Monseigneur, hear my petition! My husband died of want; so many die of
want; so many more will die of want."
"Again, well? Can
I feed them?"
"Monseigneur, the
good God knows; but I don't ask it. My petition is, that a morsel of stone or
wood, with my husband's name, may be placed over him to show where he lies.
Otherwise, the place will be quickly forgotten, it will never be found when I
am dead of the same malady, I shall be laid under some other heap of poor
grass. Monseigneur, they are so many, they increase so fast, there is so much
want. Monseigneur! Monseigneur!"
The valet had put her
away from the door, the carriage had broken into a brisk trot, the postilions
had quickened the pace, she was left far behind, and Monseigneur, again
escorted by the Furies, was rapidly diminishing the league or two of distance
that remained between him and his chateau.
The sweet scents of the
summer night rose all around him, and rose, as the rain falls, impartially, on
the dusty, ragged, and toil-worn group at the fountain not far away; to whom
the mender of roads, with the aid of the blue cap without which he was nothing,
still enlarged upon his man like a spectre, as long as they could bear it. By
degrees, as they could bear no more, they dropped off one by one, and lights
twinkled in little casements; which lights, as the casements darkened, and more
stars came out, seemed to have shot up into the sky instead of having been
extinguished.
The shadow of a large
high-roofed house, and of many over-hanging trees, was upon Monsieur the
Marquis by that time; and the shadow was exchanged for the light of a flambeau,
as his carriage stopped, and the great door of his chateau was opened to him.
"Monsieur Charles,
whom I expect; is he arrived from England?"
"Monseigneur, not
yet."
IT WAS a heavy mass of
building, that chateau of Monsieur the Marquis, with a large stone courtyard
before it, and two stone sweeps of staircase meeting in a stone terrace before
the principal door. A stony business altogether, with heavy stone balustrades,
and stone urns, and stone flowers, and stone faces of men, and stone heads of
lions, in all directions. As if the Gorgon's head had surveyed it, when it was
finished, two centuries ago.
Up the broad flight of
shallow steps, Monsieur the Marquis, flambeau preceded, went from his carriage,
sufficiently disturbing the darkness to elicit loud remonstrance from an owl in
the roof of the great pile of stable building away among the trees. All else
was so quiet, that the flambeau carried up the steps, and the other flambeau
held at the great door, burnt as if they were in a close room of state, instead
of being in the open night-air. Other sound than the owl's voice there was
none, save the failing of a fountain into its stone basin; for, it was one of
those dark nights that hold their breath by the hour together, and then heave a
long low sigh, and hold their breath again.
The great door clanged
behind him, and Monsieur the Marquis crossed a hall grim with certain old
boar-spears, swords, and knives of the chase; grimmer with certain heavy
riding-rods and riding-whips, of which many a peasant, gone to his benefactor
Death, had felt the weight when his lord was angry.
Avoiding the larger
rooms, which were dark and made fast for the night, Monsieur the Marquis, with
his flambeau-bearer going on before, went up the staircase to a door in a
corridor. This thrown open, admitted him to his own private apartment of three
rooms: his bed-chamber and two others. High vaulted rooms with cool uncarpeted
floors, great dogs upon the hearths for the burning of wood in winter time, and
all luxuries befitting the state of a marquis in a luxurious age and country.
The fashion of the last Louis but one, of the line that was never to break --
the fourteenth Louis -- was conspicuous in their rich furniture; but, it was
diversified by many objects that were illustrations of old pages in the history
of France.
A supper-table was laid
for two, in the third of the rooms; a round room, in one of the chateau's four
extinguisher-topped towers. A small lofty room, with its window wide open, and
the wooden jalousie-blinds closed, so that the dark night only showed in slight
horizontal lines of black, alternating with their broad lines of stone colour.
"My nephew,"
said the Marquis, glancing at the supper preparation; "they said he was
not arrived."
Nor was he; but, he had
been expected with Monseigneur.
"Ah! It is not
probable he will arrive to-night; nevertheless, leave the table as it is. I
shall be ready in a quarter of an hour."
In a quarter of an hour
Monseigneur was ready, and sat down alone to his sumptuous and choice supper.
His chair was opposite to the window, and he had taken his soup, and was
raising his glass of Bordeaux to his lips, when he put it down.
"What is
that?" he calmly asked, looking with attention at the horizontal lines of
black and stone colour.
"Monseigneur? That?"
"Outside the
blinds. Open the blinds."
It was done.
"Well?"
"Monseigneur, it
is nothing. The trees and the night are all that are here."
The servant who spoke,
had thrown the blinds wide, had looked out into the vacant darkness, and stood with
that blank behind him, looking round for instructions.
"Good," said
the imperturbable master. "Close them again."
That was done too, and
the Marquis went on with his supper. He was half way through it, when he again
stopped with his glass in his hand, hearing the sound of wheels. It came on
briskly, and came up to the front of the chateau.
"Ask who is
arrived."
It was the nephew of
Monseigneur. He had been some few leagues behind Monseigneur, early in the
afternoon. He had diminished the distance rapidly, but not so rapidly as to
come up with Monseigneur on the road. He had heard of Monseigneur, at the
posting-houses, as being before him.
He was to be told (said
Monseigneur) that supper awaited him then and there, and that he was prayed to
come to it. In a little while he came. He had been known in England as Charles
Darnay.
Monseigneur received
him in a courtly manner, but they did not shake hands.
"You left Paris
yesterday, sir?" he said to Monseigneur, as he took his seat at table.
"Yesterday. And
you?"
"I come
direct."
"From
London?"
"Yes."
"You have been a
long time coming," said the Marquis, with a smile.
"On the contrary;
I come direct."
"Pardon me! I
mean, not a long time on the journey; a long time intending the journey."
"I have been
detained by" -- the nephew stopped a moment in his answer -- "various
business."
"Without
doubt," said the polished uncle.
So long as a servant
was present, no other words passed between them. When coffee had been served
and they were alone together, the nephew, looking at the uncle and meeting the
eyes of the face that was like a fine mask, opened a conversation.
"I have come back,
sir, as you anticipate, pursuing the object that took me away. It carried me
into great and unexpected peril; but it is a sacred object, and if it had
carried me to death I hope it would have sustained me."
"Not to death,"
said the uncle; "it is not necessary to say, to death."
"I doubt,
sir," returned the nephew, "whether, if it had carried me to the
utmost brink of death, you would have cared to stop me there."
The deepened marks in
the nose, and the lengthening of the fine straight lines in the cruel face,
looked ominous as to that; the uncle made a graceful gesture of protest, which
was so clearly a slight form of good breeding that it was not reassuring.
"Indeed,
sir," pursued the nephew, "for anything I know, you may have
expressly worked to give a more suspicious appearance to the suspicious
circumstances that surrounded me."
"No, no, no,"
said the uncle, pleasantly.
"But, however that
may be," resumed the nephew, glancing at him with deep distrust, "I
know that your diplomacy would stop me by any means, and would know no scruple
as to means."
"My friend, I told
you so," said the uncle, with a fine pulsation in the two marks. "Do
me the favour to recall that I told you so, long ago."
"I recall
it."
"Thank you,"
said the Marquis -- very sweetly indeed.
His tone lingered in
the air, almost like the tone of a musical instrument.
"In effect,
sir," pursued the nephew, "I believe it to be at once your bad
fortune, and my good fortune, that has kept me out of a prison in France
here."
"I do not quite
understand," returned the uncle, sipping his coffee. "Dare I ask you
to explain?"
"I believe that if
you were not in disgrace with the Court, and had not been overshadowed by that
cloud for years past, a letter de cachet would have sent me to some fortress
indefinitely."
"It is
possible," said the uncle, with great calmness. "For the honour of
the family, I could even resolve to incommode you to that extent. Pray excuse
me!"
"I perceive that,
happily for me, the Reception of the day before yesterday was, as usual, a cold
one," observed the nephew.
"I would not say
happily, my friend," returned the uncle, with refined politeness; "I
would not be sure of that. A good opportunity for consideration, surrounded by
the advantages of solitude, might influence your destiny to far greater
advantage than you influence it for yourself. But it is useless to discuss the
question. I am, as you say, at a disadvantage. These little instruments of
correction, these gentle aids to the power and honour of families, these slight
favours that might so incommode you, are only to be obtained now by interest
and importunity. They are sought by so many, and they are granted
(comparatively) to so few! It used not to be so, but France in all such things
is changed for the worse. Our not remote ancestors held the right of life and
death over the surrounding vulgar. From this room, many such dogs have been
taken out to be hanged; in the next room (my bedroom), one fellow, to our
knowledge, was poniarded on the spot for professing some insolent delicacy
respecting his daughter -- his daughter? We have lost many privileges; a new
philosophy has become the mode; and the assertion of our station, in these days,
might (I do not go so far as to say would, but might) cause us real
inconvenience. All very bad, very bad!"
The Marquis took a
gentle little pinch of snuff, and shook his head; as elegantly despondent as he
could becomingly be of a country still containing himself, that great means of
regeneration.
"We have so
asserted our station, both in the old time and in the modern time also,"
said the nephew, gloomily, "that I believe our name to be more detested
than any name in France."
"Let us hope
so," said the uncle. "Detestation of the high is the involuntary
homage of the low."
"There is
not," pursued the nephew, in his former tone, "a face I can look at,
in all this country round about us, which looks at me with any deference on it
but the dark deference of fear and slavery."
"A
compliment," said the Marquis, "to the grandeur of the family,
merited by the manner in which the family has sustained its grandeur.
Hah!" And he took another gentle little pinch of snuff, and lightly
crossed his legs.
But, when his nephew,
leaning an elbow on the table, covered his eyes thoughtfully and dejectedly
with his hand, the fine mask looked at him sideways with a stronger
concentration of keenness, closeness, and dislike, than was comportable with
its wearer's assumption of indifference.
"Repression is the
only lasting philosophy. The dark deference of fear and slavery, my
friend," observed the Marquis, "will keep the dogs obedient to the
whip, as long as this roof," looking up to it, "shuts out the
sky."
That might not be so
long as the Marquis supposed. If a picture of the chateau as it was to be a
very few years hence, and of fifty like it as they too were to be a very few
years hence, could have been shown to him that night, he might have been at a
loss to claim his own from the ghastly, fire-charred, plunder-wrecked rains. As
for the roof he vaunted, he might have found that shutting out the sky in a new
way -- to wit, for ever, from the eyes of the bodies into which its lead was
fired, out of the barrels of a hundred thousand muskets.
"Meanwhile,"
said the Marquis, "I will preserve the honour and repose of the family, if
you will not. But you must be fatigued. Shall we terminate our conference for
the night?"
"A moment
more."
"An hour, if you
please."
"Sir," said
the nephew, "we have done wrong, and are reaping the fruits of
wrong."
"We have done
wrong?" repeated the Marquis, with an inquiring smile, and delicately
pointing, first to his nephew, then to himself.
"Our family; our
honourable family, whose honour is of so much account to both of us, in such
different ways. Even in my father's time, we did a world of wrong, injuring
every human creature who came between us and our pleasure, whatever it was. Why
need I speak of my father's time, when it is equally yours? Can I separate my
father's twin- brother, joint inheritor, and next successor, from
himself?"
"Death has done
that!" said the Marquis.
"And has left
me," answered the nephew, "bound to a system that is frightful to me,
responsible for it, but powerless in it; seeking to execute the last request of
my dear mother's lips, and obey the last look of my dear mother's eyes, which
implored me to have mercy and to redress; and tortured by seeking assistance
and power in vain."
"Seeking them from
me, my nephew," said the Marquis, touching him on the breast with his
forefinger -- they were now standing by the hearth -- "you will for ever
seek them in vain, be assured."
Every fine straight
line in the clear whiteness of his face, was cruelly, craftily, and closely
compressed, while he stood looking quietly at his nephew, with his snuff-box in
his hand. Once again he touched him on the breast, as though his finger were
the fine point of a small sword, with which, in delicate finesse, he ran him through
the body, and said,
"My friend, I will
die, perpetuating the system under which I have lived."
When he had said it, he
took a culminating pinch of snuff, and put his box in his pocket.
"Better to be a
rational creature," he added then, after ringing a small bell on the
table, "and accept your natural destiny. But you are lost, Monsieur
Charles, I see."
"This property and
France are lost to me," said the nephew, sadly; "I renounce
them."
"Are they both
yours to renounce? France may be, but is the property? It is scarcely worth
mentioning; but, is it yet?"
"I had no
intention, in the words I used, to claim it yet. If it passed to me from you,
to-morrow --"
"Which I have the
vanity to hope is not probable."
"-- or twenty
years hence -- "
"You do me too
much honour," said the Marquis; "still, I prefer that
supposition."
"-- I would
abandon it, and live otherwise and elsewhere. It is little to relinquish. What
is it but a wilderness of misery and ruin!"
"Hah!" said
the Marquis, glancing round the luxurious room.
"To the eye it is
fair enough, here; but seen in its integrity, under the sky, and by the
daylight, it is a crumbling tower of waste, mismanagement, extortion, debt,
mortgage, oppression, hunger, nakedness, and suffering."
"Hah!" said
the Marquis again, in a well-satisfied manner.
"If it ever
becomes mine, it shall be put into some hands better qualified to free it
slowly (if such a thing is possible) from the weight that drags it down, so that
the miserable people who cannot leave it and who have been long wrung to the
last point of endurance, may, in another generation, suffer less; but it is not
for me. There is a curse on it, and on all this land."
"And you?"
said the uncle. "Forgive my curiosity; do you, under your new philosophy,
graciously intend to live?"
"I must do, to
live, what others of my countrymen, even with nobility at their backs, may have
to do some day-work."
"In England, for
example?"
"Yes. The family
honour, sir, is safe from me in this country. The family name can suffer from
me in no other, for I bear it in no other."
The ringing of the bell
had caused the adjoining bed-chamber to be lighted. It now shone brightly,
through the door of communication. The Marquis looked that way, and listened
for the retreating step of his valet.
"England is very
attractive to you, seeing how indifferently you have prospered there," he
observed then, turning his calm face to his nephew with a smile.
"I have already
said, that for my prospering there, I am sensible I may be indebted to you,
sir. For the rest, it is my Refuge."
"They say, those
boastful English, that it is the Refuge of many. You know a compatriot who has
found a Refuge there? A Doctor?"
"Yes."
"With a daughter?"
"Yes."
"Yes," said
the Marquis. "You are fatigued. Good night!"
As he bent his head in
his most courtly manner, there was a secrecy in his smiling face, and he
conveyed an air of mystery to those words, which struck the eyes and ears of
his nephew forcibly. At the same time, the thin straight lines of the setting
of the eyes, and the thin straight lips, and the markings in the nose, curved
with a sarcasm that looked handsomely diabolic.
"Yes,"
repeated the Marquis. "A Doctor with a daughter. Yes. So commences the new
philosophy! You are fatigued. Good night!"
It would have been of
as much avail to interrogate any stone face outside the chateau as to
interrogate that face of his. The nephew looked at him, in vain, in passing on
to the door.
"Good night!"
said the uncle. "I look to the pleasure of seeing you again in the
morning. Good repose! Light Monsieur my nephew to his chamber there! -- And
burn Monsieur my nephew in his bed, if you will," he added to himself,
before he rang his little ben again, and summoned his valet to his own bedroom.
The valet come and
gone, Monsieur the Marquis walked to and fro in his loose chamber-robe, to
prepare himself gently for sleep, that hot still night. Rustling about the
room, his softly-slippered feet making no noise on the floor, he moved like a
refined tiger: -- looked like some enchanted marquis of the impenitently wicked
sort, in story, whose periodical change into tiger form was either just going
off, or just coming on.
He moved from end to
end of his voluptuous bedroom, looking again at the scraps of the day's journey
that came unbidden into his mind; the slow toil up the hill at sunset, the
setting sun, the descent, the mill, the prison on the crag, the little village
in the hollow, the peasants at the fountain, and the mender of roads with his
blue cap pointing out the chain under the carriage. That fountain suggested the
Paris fountain, the little bundle lying on the step, the women bending over it,
and the tall man with his arms up, crying, "Dead!"
"I am cool
now," said Monsieur the Marquis, "and may go to bed."
So, leaving only one
light burning on the large hearth, he let his thin gauze curtains fa]J around
him, and heard the night break its silence with a long sigh as he composed
himself to sleep.
The stone faces on the
outer wails stared blindly at the black night for three heavy hours; for three
heavy hours, the horses in the stables rattled at their racks, the dogs barked,
and the owl made a noise with very little resemblance in it to the noise
conventionally assigned to the owl by men- poets. But it is the obstinate
custom of such creatures hardly ever to say what is set down for them.
For three heavy hours,
the stone faces of the chateau, lion and human, stared blindly at the night.
Dead darkness lay on all the landscape, dead darkness added its own hush to the
hushing dust on all the roads. The burial-place had got to the pass that its
little heaps of poor grass were undistinguishable from one another; the figure
on the Cross might have come down, for anything that could be seen of it. In
the village, taxers and taxed were fast asleep. Dreaming, perhaps, of banquets,
as the starved usually do, and of ease and rest, as the driven slave and the
yoked ox may, its lean inhabitants slept soundly, and were fed and freed.
The fountain in the
village flowed unseen and unheard, and the fountain at the chateau dropped
unseen and unheard -- both melting away, like the minutes that were falling
from the spring of Time -- through three dark hours. Then, the grey water of
both began to be ghostly in the light, and the eyes of the stone faces of the
chateau were opened.
Lighter and lighter,
until at last the sun touched the tops of the still trees, and poured its
radiance over the hill. In the glow, the water of the chateau fountain seemed
to turn to blood, and the stone faces crimsoned. The carol of the birds was
loud and high, and, on the weather-beaten sill of the great window of the
bed-chamber of Monsieur the Marquis, one little bird sang its sweetest song
with all its might. At this, the nearest stone face seemed to stare amazed,
and, with open mouth and dropped under-jaw, looked awe-stricken.
Now, the sun was full
up, and movement began in the village. Casement windows opened, crazy doors
were unbarred, and people came forth shivering -- chilled, as yet, by the new
sweet air. Then began the rarely lightened toil of the day among the village
population. Some, to the fountain; some, to the fields; men and women here, to
dig and delve; men and women there, to see to the poor live stock, and lead the
bony cows out, to such pasture as could be found by the roadside. In the church
and at the Cross, a kneeling figure or two; attendant on the latter prayers,
the led cow, trying for a breakfast among the weeds at its foot.
The chateau awoke
later, as became its quality, but awoke gradually and surely. First, the lonely
boar-spears and knives of the chase had been reddened as of old; then, had
gleamed trenchant in the morning sunshine; now, doors and windows were thrown
open, horses in their stables looked round over their shoulders at the light
and freshness pouring in at doorways, leaves sparkled and rustled at
iron-grated windows, dogs pulled hard at their chains, and reared impatient to
be loosed.
All these trivial
incidents belonged to the routine of life, and the return of morning. Surely,
not so the ringing of the great bell of the chateau, nor the running up and
down the stairs; nor the hurried figures on the terrace; nor the booting and
tramping here and there and everywhere, nor the quick saddling of horses and
riding away?
What winds conveyed
this hurry to the grizzled mender of roads, already at work on the hill-top
beyond the village, with his day's dinner (not much to carry) lying in a bundle
that it was worth no crow's while to peck at, on a heap of stones? Had the
birds, carrying some grains of it to a distance, dropped one over him as they
sow chance seeds? Whether or no, the mender of roads ran, on the sultry
morning, as if for his life, down the hill, knee-high in dust, and never
stopped till he got to the fountain.
All the people of the
village were at the fountain, standing about in their depressed manner, and
whispering low, but showing no other emotions than grim curiosity and surprise.
The led cows, hastily brought in and tethered to anything that would hold them,
were looking stupidly on, or lying down chewing the cud of nothing particularly
repaying their trouble, which they had picked up in their interrupted saunter.
Some of the people of the chateau, and some of those of the posting-house, and
all the taxing authorities, were armed more or less, and were crowded on the
other side of the little street in a purposeless way, that was highly fraught
with nothing. Already, the mender of roads had penetrated into the midst of a
group of fifty particular friends, and was smiting himself in the breast with
his blue cap. What did all this portend, and what portended the swift
hoisting-up of Monsieur Gabelle behind a servant on horseback, and the
conveying away of the said Gabelle (double-laden though the horse was), at a
gallop, like a new version of the German ballad of Leonora?
It portended that there
was one stone face too many, up at the chateau.
The Gorgon had surveyed
the building again in the night, and had added the one stone face wanting; the
stone face for which it had waited through about two hundred years.
It lay back on the
pillow of Monsieur the Marquis. It was like a fine mask, suddenly startled,
made angry, and petrified. Driven home into the heart of the stone figure
attached to it, was a knife. Round its hilt was a frill of paper, on which was
scrawled:
"Drive him fast to
his tomb. This, from JACQUES."
MORE MONTHS, to the
number of twelve, had come and gone, and Mr. Charles Darnay was established in
England as a higher teacher of the French language who was conversant with French
literature. In this age, he would have been a Professor; in that age, he was a
Tutor. He read with young men who could find any leisure and interest for the
study of a living tongue spoken all over the world, and he cultivated a taste
for its stores of knowledge and fancy. He could write of them, besides, in
sound English, and render them into sound English. Such masters were not at
that time easily found; Princes that had been, and Kings that were to be, were
not yet of the Teacher class, and no ruined nobility had dropped out of
Tellson's ledgers, to turn cooks and carpenters. As a tutor, whose attainments
made the student's way unusually pleasant and profitable, and as an elegant
translator who brought something to his work besides mere dictionary knowledge,
young Mr. Darnay soon became known and encouraged. He was well acquainted,
moreover, with the circumstances of his country, and those were of ever-growing
interest. So, with great perseverance and untiring industry, he prospered.
In London, he had
expected neither to walk on pavements of gold, nor to lie on beds of roses; if
he had had any such exalted expectation, he would not have prospered. He had
expected labour, and he found it, and did it and made the best of it. In this,
his prosperity consisted.
A certain portion of
his time was passed at Cambridge, where he read with undergraduates as a sort
of tolerated smuggler who drove a contraband trade in European languages,
instead of conveying Greek and Latin through the Custom-house. The rest of his
time he passed in London.
Now, from the days when
it was always summer in Eden, to these days when it is mostly winter in fallen
latitudes, the world of a man has invariably gone one way -- Charles Darnay's
way -- the way of the love of a woman.
He had loved Lucie
Manette from the hour of his danger. He had never heard a sound so sweet and
dear as the sound of her compassionate voice; he had never seen a face so
tenderly beautiful, as hers when it was confronted with his own on the edge of
the grave that had been dug for him. But, he had not yet spoken to her on the
subject; the assassination at the deserted chateau far away beyond the heaving
water and the long, tong, dusty roads -- the solid stone chateau which had
itself become the mere mist of a dream -- had been done a year, and he had
never yet, by so much as a single spoken word, disclosed to her the state of
his heart.
That he had his reasons
for this, he knew full well. It was again a summer day when, lately arrived in
London from his college occupation, he turned into the quiet corner in Soho,
bent on seeking an opportunity of opening his mind to Doctor Manette. It was
the close of the summer day, and he knew Lucie to be out with Miss Pross.
He found the Doctor
reading in his arm-chair at a window. The energy which had at once supported
him under his old sufferings and aggravated their sharpness, had been gradually
restored to him. He was now a very energetic man indeed, with great firmness of
purpose, strength of resolution, and vigour of action. In his recovered energy
he was sometimes a little fitful and sudden, as he had at first been in the
exercise of his other recovered faculties; but, this had never been frequently
observable, and had grown more and more rare.
He studied much, slept
little, sustained a great deal of fatigue with ease, and was equably cheerful.
To him, now entered Charles Darnay, at sight of whom he laid aside his book and
held out his hand.
"Charles Darnay! I
rejoice to see you. We have been counting on your return these three or four
days past. Mr. Stryver and Sydney Carton were both here yesterday, and both
made you out to be more than due."
"I am obliged to
them for their interest in the matter," he answered, a little coldly as to
them, though very warmly as to the Doctor. "Miss Manette --"
"Is well,"
said the Doctor, as he stopped short, "and your return will delight us
all. She has gone out on some household matters, but will soon be home. "
"Doctor Manette, I
knew she was from home. I took the opportunity of her being from home, to beg
to speak to you."
There was a blank
silence.
"Yes?" said
the Doctor, with evident constraint. "Bring your chair here, and speak
on."
He complied as to the
chair, but appeared to find the speaking on less easy.
"I have had the
happiness, Doctor Manette, of being so intimate here," so he at length
began, "for some year and a half, that I hope the topic on which I am
about to touch may not --"
He was stayed by the
Doctor's putting out his hand to stop him. When he had kept it so a little
while, he said, drawing it back:
"Is Lucie the
topic?"
"She is."
"It is hard for me
to speak of her at any time. It is very hard for me to hear her spoken of in
that tone of yours, Charles Darnay."
"It is a tone of
fervent admiration, true homage, and deep love, Doctor Manette!" he said
deferentially.
There was another blank
silence before her father rejoined:
"I believe it. I
do you justice; I believe it."
His constraint was so
manifest, and it was so manifest, too, that it originated in an unwillingness
to approach the subject, that Charles Darnay hesitated.
"Shall I go on,
sir?"
Another blank.
"Yes, go on."
"You anticipate
what I would say, though you cannot know how earnestly I say it, how earnestly
I feel it, without knowing my secret heart, and the hopes and fears and
anxieties with which it has long been laden. Dear Doctor Manette, I love your
daughter fondly, dearly, disinterestedly, devotedly. If ever there were love in
the world, I love her. You have loved yourself; let your old love speak for
me!"
The Doctor sat with his
face turned away, and his eyes bent on the ground. At the last words, he
stretched out his hand again, hurriedly, and cried:
"Not that, sir!
Let that be! I adjure you, do not recall that!"
His cry was so like a
cry of actual pain, that it rang in Charles Darnay's ears long after he had
ceased. He motioned with the hand he had extended, and it seemed to be an appeal
to Darnay to pause. The latter so received it, and remained silent.
"I ask your
pardon," said the Doctor, in a subdued tone, after some moments. "I
do not doubt your loving Lucie; you may be satisfied of it."
He turned towards him
in his chair, but did not look at him, or raise his eyes. His chin dropped upon
his hand, and his white hair overshadowed his face:
"Have you spoken
to Lucie?"
"No."
"Nor
written?"
"Never."
"It would be
ungenerous to affect not to know that your self-denial is to be referred to
your consideration for her father. Her father thanks you.))
He offered his hand;
but his eyes did not go with it.
"I know,"
said Darnay, respectfully, "how can I fail to know, Doctor Manette, I who
have seen you together from day to day, that between you and Miss Manette there
is an affection so unusual, so touching, so belonging to the circumstances in
which it has been nurtured, that it can have few parallels, even in the
tenderness between a father and child. I know, Doctor Manette -- how can I fail
to know -- that, mingled with the affection and duty of a daughter who has
become a woman, there is, in her heart, towards you, all the love and reliance
of infancy itself. I know that, as in her childhood she had no parent, so she
is now devoted to you with all the constancy and fervour of her present years
and character, united to the trustfulness and attachment of the early days in
which you were lost to her. I know perfectly well that if you had been restored
to her from the world beyond this life, you could hardly be invested, in her
sight, with a more sacred character than that in which you are always with her.
I know that when she is clinging to you, the hands of baby, girl, and woman,
all in one, are round your neck. I know that in loving you she sees and loves
her mother at her own age, sees and loves you at my age, loves her mother
broken-hearted, loves you through your dreadful trial and in your blessed
restoration. I have known this, night and day, since I have known you in your home."
Her father sat silent,
with his face bent down. His breathing was a little quickened; but he repressed
all other signs of agitation.
"Dear Doctor
Manette, always knowing this, always seeing her and you with this hallowed
light about you, I have forborne, and forborne, as long as it was in the nature
of man to do it. I have felt, and do even now feel, that to bring my love --
even mine -- between you, is to touch your history with something not quite so
good as itself. But I love her. Heaven is my witness that I love her!"
"I believe
it," answered her father, mournfully. "I have thought so before now.
I believe it."
"But, do not
believe," said Darnay, upon whose ear the mournful voice struck with a
reproachful sound, "that if my fortune were so cast as that, being one day
so happy as to make her my wife, I must at any time put any separation between
her and you, I could or would breathe a word of what I now say. Besides that I
should know it to be hopeless, I should know it to be a baseness. If I had any
such possibility, even at a remote distance of years, harboured in my thoughts,
and hidden in my heart -- if it ever had been there -- if it ever could be
there -- I could not now touch this honoured hand."
He laid his own upon it
as he spoke.
"No, dear Doctor
Manette. Like you, a voluntary exile from France; like you, driven from it by
its distractions, oppressions, and miseries; like you, striving to live away
from it by my own exertions, and trusting in a happier future; I look only to
sharing your fortunes, sharing your life and home, and being faithful to you to
the death. Not to divide with Lucie her privilege as your child, companion, and
friend; but to come in aid of it, and bind her closer to you, if such a thing
can be."
His touch still
lingered on her father's hand. Answering the touch for a moment, but not
coldly, her father rested his hands upon the arms of his chair, and looked up
for the first time since the beginning of the conference. A struggle was
evidently in his face; a struggle with that occasional look which had a
tendency in it to dark doubt and dread.
"You speak so
feelingly and so manfully, Charles Darnay, that I thank you with all my heart,
and will open all my heart -- or nearly so. Have you any reason to believe that
Lucie loves you?"
"None. As yet,
none."
"Is it the
immediate object of this confidence, that you may at once ascertain that, with
my knowledge?"
"Not even so. I
might not have the hopefulness to do it for weeks; I might (mistaken or not
mistaken) have that hopefulness to-morrow."
"Do you seek any
guidance from me?"
"I ask none, sir.
But I have thought it possible that you might have it in your power, if you
should deem it right, to give me some."
"Do you seek any
promise from me?"
"I do seek
that."
"What is it?"
"I well understand
that, without you, I could have no hope. I well understand that, even if Miss
Manette held me at this moment in her innocent heart -- do not think I have the
presumption to assume so much -- I could retain no place in it against her love
for her father."
"If that be so, do
you see what, on the other hand, is involved in it?"
"I understand
equally well, that a word from her father in any suitor's favour, would
outweigh herself and all the world. For which reason, Doctor Manette,"
said Darnay, modestly but firmly, "I would not ask that word, to save my
life."
"I am sure of it.
Charles Darnay, mysteries arise out of close love, as well as out of wide
division; in the former case, they are subtle and delicate, and difficult to
penetrate. My daughter Lucie is, in this one respect, such a mystery to me; I
can make no guess at the state of her heart."
"May I ask, sir,
if you think she is --" As he hesitated, her father supplied the rest.
"Is sought by any
other suitor?"
"It is what I
meant to say."
Her father considered a
little before he answered:
"You have seen Mr.
Carton here, yourself. Mr. Stryver is here too, occasionally. If it be at all,
it can only be by one of these."
"Or both,"
said Darnay.
"I had not thought
of both; I should not think either, likely. You want a promise from me. Tell me
what it is."
"It is, that if
Miss Manette should bring to you at any time, on her own part, such a
confidence as I have ventured to lay before you, you will bear testimony to
what I have said, and to your belief in it. I hope you may be able to think so
well of me, as to urge no influence against me. I say nothing more of my stake
in this; this is what I ask. The condition on which I ask it, and which you have
an undoubted right to require, I will observe immediately."
"I give the
promise," said the Doctor, "without any condition. I believe your
object to be, purely and truthfully, as you have stated it. I believe your
intention is to perpetuate, and not to weaken, the ties between me and my other
and far dearer self. If she should ever tell me that you are essential to her
perfect happiness, I will give her to you. If there were -- Charles Darnay, if
there were -- "
The young man had taken
his hand gratefully; their hands were joined as the Doctor spoke:
"-- any fancies,
any reasons, any apprehensions, anything whatsoever, new or old, against the
man she really loved -- the direct responsibility thereof not lying on his head
-- they should all be obliterated for her sake. She is everything to me; more
to me than suffering, more to me than wrong, more to me -- Well! This is idle
talk."
So strange was the way
in which he faded into silence, and so strange his fixed look when he had
ceased to speak, that Darnay felt his own hand turn cold in the hand that
slowly released and dropped it.
"You said
something to me," said Doctor Manette, breaking into a smile. "What
was it you said to me?"
He was at a loss how to
answer, until he remembered having spoken of a condition. Relieved as his mind
reverted to that, he answered:
"Your confidence
in me ought to be returned with full confidence on my part. My present name,
though but slightly changed from my mother's, is not, as you will remember, my
own. I wish to tell you what that is, and why I am in England."
"Stop!" said
the Doctor of Beauvais.
"I wish it, that I
may the better deserve your confidence, and have no secret from you."
"Stop!"
For an instant, the
Doctor even had his two hands at his ears; for another instant, even had his
two hands laid on Darnay's lips.
"Tell me when I
ask you, not now. If your suit should prosper, if Lucie should love you, you
shall tell me on your marriage morning. Do you promise?"
"Willingly.
"Give me your
hand. She will be home directly, and it is better she should not see us together
to-night. Go! God bless you!"
It was dark when
Charles Darnay left him, and it was an hour later and darker when Lucie came
home; she hurried into the room alone -- for Miss Pross had gone straight
up-stairs -- and was surprised to find his reading-chair empty.
"My father!"
she called to him. "Father dear!"
Nothing was said in
answer, but she heard a low hammering sound in his bedroom. Passing lightly
across the intermediate room, she looked in at his door and came running back
frightened, crying to herself, with her blood all chilled, "What shall I
do! What shall I do!"
Her uncertainty lasted
but a moment; she hurried back, and tapped at his door, and softly called to
him. The noise ceased at the sound of her voice, and he presently came out to her,
and they walked up and down together for a long time.
She came down from her
bed, to look at him in his sleep that night. He slept heavily, and his tray of
shoemaking tools, and his old unfinished work, were all as usual.
"SYDNEY,"
said Mr. Stryver, on that selfsame night, or morning, to his jackal; "mix
another bowl of punch; I have something to say to you."
Sydney had been working
double tides that night, and the night before, and the night before that, and a
good many nights in succession, making a grand clearance among Mr. Stryver's
papers before the setting in of the long vacation. The clearance was effected
at last; the Stryver arrears were handsomely fetched up; everything was got rid
of until November should come with its fogs atmospheric, and fogs legal, and
bring grist to the mill again.
Sydney was none the
livelier and none the soberer for so much application. It had taken a deal of
extra wet-towelling to pull him through the night; a correspondingly extra
quantity of wine had preceded the towelling; and he was in a very damaged
condition, as he now pulled his turban off and threw it into the basin in which
he had steeped it at intervals for the last six hours.
"Are you mixing
that other bowl of punch?" said Stryver the portly, with his hands in his
waistband, glancing round from the sofa where he lay on his back.
"I am."
"Now, look here! I
am going to tell you something that will rather surprise you, and that perhaps
will make you think me not quite as shrewd as you usually do think me. I intend
to marry."
"Do you?"
"Yes. And not for
money. What do you say now?"
"I don't feel
disposed to say much. Who is she?"
"Guess."
"Do I know
her?"
"Guess."
"I am not going to
guess, at five o'clock in the morning, with my brains frying and sputtering in
my head. if you want me to guess, you must ask me to dinner."
"Well then, I'll
tell you, said Stryver, coming slowly into a sitting posture. "Sydney, I
rather despair of making myself intelligible to you, because you are such an
insensible dog.
"And you,"
returned Sydney, busy concocting the punch, "are such a sensitive and
poetical spirit --"
"Come!"
rejoined Stryver, laughing boastfully, "though I don't prefer any claim to
being the soul of Romance (for I hope I know better), still I am a tenderer
sort of fellow than you."
"You are a
luckier, if you mean that."
"I don't mean
that. I mean I am a man of more -- more --"
"Say gallantry,
while you are about it," suggested Carton.
"Well! I'll say
gallantry. My meaning is that I am a man," said Stryver, inflating himself
at his friend as he made the punch, t(who cares more to be agreeable, who takes
more pains to be agreeable, who knows better how to be agreeable, in a woman's
society, than you do."
"Go on," said
Sydney Carton.
"No; but before I
go on," said Stryver, shaking his head in his bullying way, I'll have this
out with you. You've been at Doctor Manette's house as much as I have, or more
than I have. Why, I have been ashamed of your moroseness there! Your manners
have been of that silent and sullen and hangdog kind, that, upon my life and
soul, I have been ashamed of you, Sydney!"
"It should be very
beneficial to a man in your practice at the bar, to be ashamed of
anything," returned Sydney; "you ought to be much obliged to
me."
"You shall not get
off in that way," rejoined Stryver, shouldering the rejoinder at him;
"no, Sydney, it's my duty to tell you -- and I tell you to your face to do
you good -- that you are a devilish ill-conditioned fellow in that sort of
society. You are a disagreeable fellow."
Sydney drank a bumper
of the punch he had made, and laughed.
"Look at me!"
said Stryver, squaring himself; "I have less need to make myself agreeable
than you have, being more independent in circumstances. Why do I do it?"
"I never saw you
do it yet," muttered Carton.
"I do it because
it's politic; I do it on principle. And look at me! I get on."
"You don't get on
with your account of your matrimonial intentions," answered Carton, with a
careless air; "I wish you would keep to that. As to me -- will you never
understand that I am incorrigible?"
He asked the question
with some appearance of scorn.
"You have no
business to be incorrigible," was his friend's answer, delivered in no
very soothing tone.
"I have no
business to be, at all, that I know of," said Sydney Carton. "Who is
the lady?"
"Now, don't let my
announcement of the name make you uncomfortable, Sydney," said Mr.
Stryver, preparing him with ostentatious friendliness for the disclosure he was
about to make, "because I know you don't mean half you say; and if you meant
it all, it would be of no importance. I make this little preface, because you
once mentioned the young lady to me in slighting terms."
"I did?"
"Certainly; and in
these chambers."
Sydney Carton looked at
his punch and looked at his complacent friend; drank his punch and looked at
his complacent friend.
"You made mention
of the young lady as a golden-haired doll. The young lady is Miss Manette. If
you had been a fellow of any sensitiveness or delicacy of feeling in that kind
of way, Sydney, I might have been a little resentful of your employing such a
designation; but you are not. You want that sense altogether; therefore I am no
more annoyed when I think of the expression, than I should be annoyed by a
man's opinion of a picture of mine, who had no eye for pictures: or of a piece
of music of mine, who had no ear for music."
Sydney Carton drank the
punch at a great rate; drank it by bumpers, looking at his friend.
"Now you know all
about it, Syd," said Mr. Stryver. "I don't care about fortune: she is
a charming creature, and I have made up my mind to please myself: on the whole,
I think I can afford to please myself. She will have in me a man already pretty
well off, and a rapidly rising man, and a man of some distinction: it is a
piece of good fortune for her, but she is worthy of good fortune. Are you
astonished?"
Carton, still drinking
the punch, rejoined, "Why should I be astonished?"
"You
approve?"
Carton, still drinking
the punch, rejoined, "Why should I not approve?"
"Well!" said
his friend Stryver, "you take it more easily than I fancied you would, and
are less mercenary on my behalf than I thought you would be; though, to be
sure, you know well enough by this time that your ancient chum is a man of a
pretty strong will. Yes, Sydney, I have had enough of this style of life, with
no other as a change from it; I feel that it is a pleasant thing for a man to
have a home when he feels inclined to go to it (when he doesn't, he can stay
away), and I feel that Miss Manette will tell well in any station, and will
always do me credit. So I have made up my mind. And now, Sydney, old boy, I
want to say a word to you about your prospects. You are in a bad way, you know;
you really are in a bad way. You don't know the value of money, you Eve hard,
you'll knock up one of these days, and be ill and poor; you really ought to
think about a nurse."
The prosperous
patronage with which he said it, made him look twice as big as he was, and four
times as offensive.
"Now, let me
recommend you," pursued Stryver, "to look it in the face. I have
looked it in the face, in my different way; look it in the face, you, in your
different way. Marry. Provide somebody to take care of you. Never mind your
having no enjoyment of women's society, nor understanding of it, nor tact for
it. Find out somebody. Find out some respectable woman with a little property
-- somebody in the landlady way, or lodging-letting way -- and marry her,
against a rainy day. That's the kind of thing for you. Now think of it, Sydney."
"I'll think of
it," said Sydney.
MR. STRYVER having made
up his mind to that magnanimous bestowal of good fortune on the Doctor's
daughter, resolved to make her happiness known to her before he left town for
the Long Vacation. After some mental debating of the point, he came to the
conclusion that it would be as well to get all the preliminaries done with, and
they could then arrange at their leisure whether he should give her his hand a
week or two before Michaelmas Term, or in the little Christmas vacation between
it and Hilary.
As to the strength of
his case, he had not a doubt about it, but clearly saw his way to the verdict.
Argued with the jury on substantial worldly grounds -- the only grounds ever
worth taking into account -- it was a plain case, and had not a weak spot in
it. He called himself for the plaintiff, there was no getting over his
evidence, the counsel for the defendant threw up his brief, and the jury did
not even turn to consider. After trying it, Stryver, C. J., was satisfied that
no plainer case could be.
Accordingly, Mr.
Stryver inaugurated the Long Vacation with a formal proposal to take Miss
Manette to Vauxhall Gardens; that failing, to Ranelagh; that unaccountably
failing too, it behoved him to present himself in Soho, and there declare his
noble mind.
Towards Soho,
therefore, Mr. Stryver shouldered his way from the Temple, while the bloom of
the Long Vacation's infancy was still upon it. Anybody who had seen him
projecting himself into Soho while he was yet on Saint Dunstan's side of Temple
Bar, bursting in his full-blown way along the pavement, to the jostlement of
all weaker people, might have seen how safe and strong he was.
His way taking him past
Tellson's, and he both banking at Tellson's and knowing Mr. Lorry as the
intimate friend of the Manettes, it entered Mr. Stryver's mind to enter the
bank, and reveal to Mr. Lorry the brightness of the Soho horizon. So, he pushed
open the door with the weak rattle in its throat, stumbled down the two steps,
got past the two ancient cashiers, and shouldered himself into the musty back
closet where Mr. Lorry sat at great books ruled for figures, with perpendicular
iron bars to his window as if that were ruled for figures too, and everything
under the clouds were a sum.
"Halloa!"
said Mr. Stryver. "How do you do? I hope you are well!"
It was Stryver's grand
peculiarity that he always seemed too big for any place, or space. He was so
much too big for Tellson's, that old clerks in distant corners looked up with
looks of remonstrance, as though he squeezed them against the wall. The House
itself, magnificently reading the paper quite in the far-off perspective,
lowered displeased, as if the Stryver head had been butted into its responsible
waistcoat.
The discreet Mr. Lorry
said, in a sample tone of the voice he would recommend under the circumstances,
"How do you do, Mr. Stryver? How do you do, sir?" and shook hands.
There was a peculiarity in his manner of shaking hands, always to be seen in
any clerk at Tellson's who shook hands with a customer when the House pervaded
the air. He shook in a self-abnegating way, as one who shook for Tellson and
Co.
"Can I do anything
for you, Mr. Stryver?" asked Mr. Lorry, in his business character.
"Why, no, thank
you; this is a private visit to yourself, Mr. Lorry; I have come for a private
word."
"Oh indeed!"
said Mr. Lorry, bending down his ear, while his eye strayed to the House afar
off.
"I am going,"
said Mr. Stryver, leaning his arms confidentially on the desk: whereupon,
although it was a large double one, there appeared to be not half desk enough
for him: "I am going to make an offer of myself in marriage to your
agreeable little friend, Miss Manette, Mr. Lorry."
"Oh dear me!"
cried Mr. Lorry, rubbing his chin, and looking at his visitor dubiously.
"Oh dear me,
sir?" repeated Stryver, drawing back. "Oh dear you, sir? What may
your meaning be, Mr. Lorry?"
"My meaning,"
answered the man of business, "is, of course, friendly and appreciative,
and that it does you the greatest credit, and -- in short, my meaning is
everything you could desire. But -- really, you know, Mr. Stryver --" Mr.
Lorry paused, and shook his head at him in the oddest manner, as if he were
compelled against his will to add, internally, "you know there really is
so much too much of you!"
"Well!" said
Stryver, slapping the desk with his contentious hand, opening his eyes wider,
and taking a long breath, "if I understand you, Mr. Lorry, I'll be
hanged!"
Mr. Lorry adjusted his
little wig at both ears as a means towards that end, and bit the feather of a
pen.
"D--n it all,
sir!" said Stryver, staring at him, "am I not eligible?"
"Oh dear yes! Yes.
Oh yes, you're eligible!" said Mr. Lorry. "If you say eligible, you
are eligible."
"Am I not
prosperous?" asked Stryver.
"Oh! if you come
to prosperous, you are prosperous," said Mr. Lorry.
"And
advancing?"
"If you come to
advancing you know," said Mr. Lorry, delighted to be able to make another
admission, "nobody can doubt that."
"Then what on
earth is your meaning, Mr. Lorry?" demanded Stryver, perceptibly
crestfallen.
"Well! I -- Were
you going there now?" asked Mr. Lorry.
"Straight!"
said Stryver, with a plump of his fist on the desk.
"Then I think I
wouldn't, if I was you."
"Why?" said
Stryver. "Now, I'll put you in a corner," forensically shaking a
forefinger at him. "You are a man of business and bound to have a reason.
State your reason. Why wouldn't you go?"
"Because,"
said Mr. Lorry, "I wouldn't go on such an object without having some cause
to believe that I should succeed."
"D--n ME!"
cried Stryver, "but this beats everything."
Mr. Lorry glanced at
the distant House, and glanced at the angry Stryver.
"Here's a man of
business -- a man of years -- a man of experience -- in a Bank," said
Stryver; "and having summed up three leading reasons for complete success,
he says there's no reason at all! Says it with his head on!" Mr. Stryver
remarked upon the peculiarity as if it would have been infinitely less
remarkable if he had said it with his head off.
"When I speak of
success, I speak of success with the young lady; and when I speak of causes and
reasons to make success probable, I speak of causes and reasons that will tell
as such with the young lady. The young lady, my good sir," said Mr. Lorry,
mildly tapping the Stryver arm, "the young lady. The young lady goes
before all."
"Then you mean to
tell me, Mr. Lorry," said Stryver, squaring his elbows, "that it is
your deliberate opinion that the young lady at present in question is a mincing
Fool?"
"Not exactly so. I
mean to tell you, Mr. Stryver," said Mr. Lorry, reddening, "that I will
hear no disrespectful word of that young lady from any lips; and that if I knew
any man -- which I hope I do not -- whose taste was so coarse, and whose temper
was so overbearing, that he could not restrain himself from speaking
disrespectfully of that young lady at this desk, not even Tellson's should
prevent my giving him a piece of my mind."
The necessity of being
angry in a suppressed tone had put Mr. Stryver's blood-vessels into a dangerous
state when it was his turn to be angry; Mr. Lorry's veins, methodical as their
courses could usually be, were in no better state now it was his turn.
"That is what I
mean to tell you, sir," said Mr. Lorry. "Pray let there be no mistake
about it."
Mr. Stryver sucked the
end of a ruler for a little while, and then stood hitting a tune out of his
teeth with it, which probably gave him the toothache. He broke the awkward
silence by saying:
"This is something
new to me, Mr. Lorry. You deliberately advise me not to go up to Soho and offer
myself -- myself, Stryver of the King's Bench bar?"
"Do you ask me for
my advice, Mr. Stryver?"
"Yes, I do."
"Very good. Then I
give it, and you have repeated it correctly."
"And all I can say
of it is," laughed Stryver with a vexed laugh, "that this -- ha, ha!
-- beats everything past, present, and to come."
"Now understand
me," pursued Mr. Lorry. "As a man of business, I am not justified in
saying anything about this matter, for, as a man of business, I know nothing of
it. But, as an old fellow, who has carried Miss Manette in his arms, who is the
trusted friend of Miss Manette and of her father too, and who has a great
affection for them both, I have spoken. The confidence is not of my seeking,
recollect. Now, you think I may not be right?"
"Not I!" said
Stryver, whistling. "I can't undertake to find third parties in common
sense; I can only find it for myself. I suppose sense in certain quarters; you
suppose mincing bread-and-butter nonsense. It's new to me, but you are right, I
dare say."
"What I suppose,
Mr. Stryver, I claim to characterise for myself -- And understand me,
sir," said Mr. Lorry, quickly flushing again, "I will not -- not even
at Tellson's -- have it characterised for me by any gentleman breathing."
"There! I beg your
pardon!" said Stryver.
"Granted. Thank
you. Well, Mr. Stryver, I was about to say: -- it might be painful to you to
find yourself mistaken, it might be painful to Doctor Manette to have the task
of being explicit with you, it might be very painful to Miss Manette to have
the task of being explicit with you. You know the terms upon which I have the
honour and happiness to stand with the family. If you please, committing you in
no way, representing you in no way, I will undertake to correct my advice by
the exercise of a little new observation and judgment expressly brought to bear
upon it. If you should then be dissatisfied with it, you can but test its
soundness for yourself; if, on the other hand, you should be satisfied with it,
and it should be what it now is, it may spare all sides what is best spared.
What do you say?"
"How long would
you keep me in town?"
"Oh! It is only a
question of a few hours. I could go to Soho in the, evening, and come to your
chambers afterwards."
"Then I say
yes," said Stryver: "I won't go up there now, I am not so hot upon it
as that comes to; I say yes, and I shall expect you to look in to-night. Good
morning."
Then Mr. Stryver turned
and burst out of the Bank, causing such a concussion of air on his passage
through, that to stand up against it bowing behind the two counters, required
the utmost remaining strength of the two ancient clerks. Those venerable and
feeble persons were always seen by the public in the act of bowing, and were
popularly believed, when they had bowed a customer out, still to keep on bowing
in the empty office until they bowed another customer in.
The barrister was keen
enough to divine that the banker would not have gone so far in his expression
of opinion on any less solid ground than moral certainty. Unprepared as he was
for the large pill he had to swallow, he got it down. "And now," said
Mr. Stryver, shaking his forensic forefinger at the Temple in general, when it
was down, "my way out of this, is, to put you all in the wrong."
It was a bit of the art
of an Old Bailey tactician, in which he found great relief. "You shall not
put me in the wrong, young lady," said Mr. Stryver; "I'll do that for
you."
Accordingly, when Mr.
Lorry called that night as late as ten o'clock, Mr. Stryver, among a quantity
of books and papers littered out for the purpose, seemed to have nothing less
on his mind than the subject of the morning. He even showed surprise when he
saw Mr. Lorry, and was altogether in an absent and preoccupied state.
"Well!" said
that good-natured emissary, after a full half-hour of bootless attempts to
bring him round to the question. "I have been to Soho."
"To Soho?"
repeated Mr. Stryver, coldly. "Oh, to be sure! What am I thinking
of!"
"And I have no
doubt," said Mr. Lorry, "that I was right in the conversation we had.
My opinion is confirmed, and I reiterate my advice."
"I assure
you," returned Mr. Stryver, in the friendliest way, "that I am sorry
for it on your account, and sorry for it on the poor father's account. I know
this must always be a sore subject with the family; let us say no more about
it."
"I don't
understand you," said Mr. Lorry.
"I dare say
not," rejoined Stryver, nodding his head in a smoothing and final way;
"no matter, no matter."
"But it does
matter," Mr. Lorry urged.
"No it doesn't; I
assure you it doesn't. Having supposed that there was sense where there is no
sense, and a laudable ambition where there is not a laudable ambition, I am
well out of my mistake, and no harm is done. Young women have committed similar
follies often before, and have repented them in poverty and obscurity often
before. In an unselfish aspect, I am sorry that the thing is dropped, because
it would have been a bad thing for me in a worldly point of view; in a selfish
aspect, I am glad that the thing has dropped, because it would have been a bad
thing for me in a worldly point of view -- it is hardly necessary to say I
could have gained nothing by it. There is no harm at all done. I have not
proposed to the young lady, and, between ourselves, I am by no means certain,
on reflection, that I ever should have committed myself to that extent. Mr.
Lorry, you cannot control the mincing vanities and giddinesses of empty-headed
girls; you must not expect to do it, or you will always be disappointed. Now,
pray say no more about it. I tell you, I regret it on account of others, but I
am satisfied on my own account. And I am really very much obliged to you for
allowing me to sound you, and for giving me your advice; you know the young
lady better than I do; you were right, it never would have done."
Mr. Lorry was so taken
aback, that he looked quite stupidly at Mr. Stryver shouldering him towards the
door, with an appearance of showering generosity, forbearance, and goodwill, on
his erring head. "Make the best of it, my dear sir," said Stryver;
"say no more about it; thank you again for allowing me to sound you; good
night!"
Mr. Lorry was out in
the night, before he knew where he was. Mr. Stryver was lying back on his sofa,
winking at his ceiling.
IF SYDNEY CARTON ever
shone anywhere, he certainly never shone in the house of Doctor Manette. He had
been there often, during a whole year, and had always been the same moody and
morose lounger there. When he cared to talk, he talked well; but, the cloud of
caring for nothing, which overshadowed him with such a fatal darkness, was very
rarely pierced by the light within him.
And yet he did care
something for the streets that environed that house, and for the senseless
stones that made their pavements. Many a night he vaguely and unhappily
wandered there, when wine had brought no transitory gladness to him; many a dreary
daybreak revealed his solitary figure lingering there, and still lingering
there when the first beams of the sun brought into strong relief, removed
beauties of architecture in spires of churches and lofty buildings, as perhaps
the quiet time brought some sense of better things, else forgotten and
unattainable, into his mind. Of late, the neglected bed in the Temple Court had
known him more scantily than ever; and often when he had thrown himself upon it
no longer than a few minutes, he had got up again, and haunted that
neighbourhood.
On a day in August,
when Mr. Stryver (after notifying to his jackal that "he had thought
better of that marrying matter") had carried his delicacy into Devonshire,
and when the sight and scent of flowers in the City streets had some waifs of
goodness in them for the worst, of health for the sickliest, and of youth for
the oldest, Sydney's feet still trod those stones. From being irresolute and
purposeless, his feet became animated by an intention, and, in the working out of
that intention, they took him to the Doctor's door.
He was shown up-stairs,
and found Lucie at her work, alone. She had never been quite at her ease with
him, and received him with some little embarrassment as he seated himself near
her table. But, looking up at his face in the interchange of the first few
common-places, she observed a change in it.
"I fear you are
not well, Mr. Carton!"
"No. But the life
I lead, Miss Manette, is not conducive to health. What is to be expected of, or
by, such profligates?"
"Is it not --
forgive me; I have begun the question on my lips -- a pity to live no better
life?"
"God knows it is a
shame!"
"Then why not
change it?"
Looking gently at him
again, she was surprised and saddened to see that there were tears in his eyes.
There were tears in his voice too, as he answered:
"It is too late
for that. I shall never be better than I am. I shall sink lower, and be
worse."
He leaned an elbow on
her table, and covered his eyes with his hand. The table trembled in the
silence that followed.
She had never seen him
softened, and was much distressed. He knew her to be so, without looking at
her, and said:
"Pray forgive me,
Miss Manette. I break down before the knowledge of what I want to say to you.
Will you hear me?"
"If it will do you
any good, Mr. Carton, if it would make you happier, it would make me very
glad!"
"God bless you for
your sweet compassion!"
He unshaded his face
after a little while, and spoke steadily.
"Don't be afraid
to hear me. Don't shrink from anything I say. I am like one who died young. All
my life might have been."
"No, Mr. Carton. I
am sure that the best part of it might still be; I am sure that you might be
much, much worthier of yourself."
"Say of you, Miss
Manette, and although I know better -- although in the mystery of my own
wretched heart I know better -- I shall never forget it!"
She was pale and
trembling. He came to her relief with a fixed despair of himself which made the
interview unlike any other that could have been holden.
"If it had been
possible, Miss Manette, that you could have returned the love of the man you
see before you -- self-flung away, wasted, drunken, poor creature of misuse as
you know him to be -- he would have been conscious this day and hour, in spite
of his happiness, that he would bring you to misery, bring you to sorrow and
repentance, blight you, disgrace you, pull you down with him. I know very well
that you can have no tenderness for me; I ask for none; I am even thankful that
it cannot be."
"Without it, can I
not save you, Mr. Carton? Can I not recall you -- forgive me again! -- to a
better course? Can I in no way repay your confidence? I know this is a
confidence," she modestly said, after a little hesitation, and in earnest
tears, "I know you would say this to no one else. Can I turn it to no good
account for yourself, Mr. Carton?"
He shook his head.
"To none. No, Miss
Manette, to none. If you will hear me through a very little more, all you can
ever do for me is done. I wish you to know that you have been the last dream of
my soul. In my degradation I have not been so degraded but that the sight of
you with your father, and of this home made such a home by you, has stirred old
shadows that I thought had died out of me. Since I knew you, I have been
troubled by a remorse that I thought would never reproach me again, and have
heard whispers from old voices impelling me upward, that I thought were silent
for ever. I have had unformed ideas of striving afresh, beginning anew, shaking
off sloth and sensuality, and fighting out the abandoned fight. A dream, all a
dream, that ends in nothing, and leaves the sleeper where he lay down, but I
wish you to know that you inspired it."
"Will nothing of
it remain? O Mr. Carton, think again! Try again!"
"No, Miss Manette;
all through it, I have known myself to be quite undeserving. And yet I have had
the weakness, and have still the weakness, to wish you to know with what a
sudden mastery you kindled me, heap of ashes that I am, into fire -- a fire,
however, inseparable in its nature from myself, quickening nothing, lighting
nothing, doing no service, idly burning away."
"Since it is my misfortune,
Mr. Carton, to have made you more unhappy than you were before you knew me
--"
"Don't say that,
Miss Manette, for you would have reclaimed me, if anything could. you will not
be the cause of my becoming worse."
"Since the state
of your mind that you describe, is, at all events, attributable to some
influence of mine -- this is what I mean, if I can make it plain -- can I use
no influence to serve you? Have I no power for good, with you, at all?"
"The utmost good
that I am capable of now, Miss Manette, I have come here to realise. Let me
carry through the, rest of my misdirected life, the remembrance that I opened
my heart to you, last of all the world; and that there was something left in me
at this time which you could deplore and pity."
"Which I entreated
you to believe, again and again, most fervently, with all my heart, was capable
of better things, Mr. Carton!"
"Entreat me to
believe it no more, Miss Manette. I have proved myself, and I know better. I
distress you; I draw fast to an end. Will you let me believe, when I recall
this day, that the last confidence of my life was reposed in your pure and
innocent breast, and that it lies there alone, and will be shared by no
one?"
"If that will be a
consolation to you, yes."
"Not even by the
dearest one ever to be known to you?"
"Mr. Carton,"
she answered, after an agitated pause, "the secret is yours, not mine; and
I promise to respect it."
"Thank you. And
again, God bless you."
He put her hand to his
lips, and moved towards the door.
"Be under no
apprehension, Miss Manette, of my ever resuming this conversation by so much as
a passing word. I will never refer to it again. If I were dead, that could not
be surer than it is henceforth. in the hour of my death, I shall hold sacred
the one good remembrance -- and shall thank and bless you for it -- that my
last avowal of myself was made to you, and that my name, and faults, and
miseries were gently carried in your heart. May it otherwise be light and
happy!"
He was so unlike what
he had ever shown himself to be, and it was so sad to think how much he had
thrown away, and how much he every day kept down and perverted, that Lucie
Manette wept mournfully for him as he stood looking back at her.
"Be
comforted!" he said, "I am not worth such feeling, Miss Manette. An
hour or two hence, and the low companions and low habits that I scorn but yield
to, will render me less worth such tears as those, than any wretch who creeps
along the streets. Be comforted! But, within myself, I shall always be, towards
you, what I am now, though outwardly I shall be what you have heretofore seen
me. The last supplication but one I make to you, is, that you will believe this
of me."
"I will, Mr.
Carton."
"My last
supplication of all, is this; and with it, I will relieve you of a visitor with
whom I well know you have nothing in unison, and between whom and you there is
an impassable space. It is useless to say it, I know, but it rises out of my
soul. For you, and for any dear to you, I would do anything. If my career were
of that better kind that there was any opportunity or capacity of sacrifice in
it, I would embrace any sacrifice for you and for those dear to you. Try to
hold me in your mind, at some quiet times, as ardent and sincere in this one
thing. The time will come, the time will not be long in coming, when new ties
will be formed about you -- ties that will bind you yet more tenderly and
strongly to the home you so adorn -- the dearest ties that will ever grace and
gladden you. O Miss Manette, when the little picture of a happy father's face
looks up in yours, when you see your own bright beauty springing up anew at
your feet, think now and then that there is a man who would give his life, to
keep a life you love beside you!"
He said,
"Farewell!" said a last "God bless you!" and left her.
TO THE EYES of Mr.
Jeremiah Cruncher, sitting on his stool in Fleet- street with his grisly urchin
beside him, a vast number and variety of objects in movement were every day
presented. Who could sit upon anything in Fleet-street during the busy hours of
the day, and not be dazed and deafened by two immense processions, one ever
tending westward with the sun, the other ever tending eastward from the sun,
both ever tending to the plains beyond the range of red and purple where the
sun goes down!
With his straw in his
mouth, Mr. Cruncher sat watching the two streams, like the heathen rustic who
has for several centuries been on duty watching one stream -- saving that Jerry
had no expectation of their ever running dry. Nor would it have been an
expectation of a hopeful kind, since a small part of his income was derived
from the pilotage of timid women (mostly of a full habit and past the middle
term of life) from Tellson's side of the tides to the opposite shore. Brief as
such companionship was in every separate instance, Mr. Cruncher never failed to
become so interested in the lady as to express a strong desire to have the
honour of drinking her very good health. And it was from the gifts bestowed
upon him towards the execution of this benevolent purpose, that he recruited
his finances, as just now observed.
Time was, when a poet
sat upon a stool in a public place, and mused in the sight of men. Mr.
Cruncher, sitting on a stool in a public place, but not being a poet, mused as
little as possible, and looked about him.
It fell out that he was
thus engaged in a season when crowds were few, and belated women few, and when
his affairs in general were so unprosperous as to awaken a strong suspicion in
his breast that Mrs. Cruncher must have been "flopping" in some
pointed manner, when an unusual concourse pouring down Fleet-street westward,
attracted his attention. Looking that way, Mr. Cruncher made out that some kind
of funeral was coming along, and that there was popular objection to this
funeral, which engendered uproar.
"Young
Jerry," said Mr. Cruncher, turning to his offspring, "it's a
buryin'."
"Hooroar,
father!" cried Young Jerry.
The young gentleman
uttered this exultant sound with mysterious significance. The elder gentleman
took the cry so HI, that he watched his opportunity, and smote the young
gentleman on the ear.
"What d'ye mean?
What are you hooroaring at? What do you want to conwey to your own father, you
young Rip? This boy is a getting too many for me!" said Mr. Cruncher,
surveying him. "Him and his hooroars! Don't let me hear no more of you, or
you shall feel some more of me. D'ye hear?"
"I warn't doing no
harm," Young Jerry protested, rubbing his cheek.
"Drop it
then," said Mr. Cruncher; "I won't have none of your no harms. Get a
top of that there seat, and look at the crowd."
His son obeyed, and the
crowd approached; they were bawling and hissing round a dingy hearse and dingy
mourning coach, in which mourning coach there was only one mourner, dressed in
the dingy trappings that were considered essential to the dignity of the
position. The position appeared by no means to please him, however, with an
increasing rabble surrounding the coach, deriding him, making grimaces at him,
and incessantly groaning and calling out: "Yah! Spies! Tst! Yaha!
Spies!" with many compliments too numerous and forcible to repeat.
Funerals had at all
times a remarkable attraction for Mr. Cruncher; he always pricked up his
senses, and became excited, when a funeral passed Tellson's. Naturally,
therefore, a funeral with this uncommon attendance excited him greatly, and he
asked of the first man who ran against him:
"What is it,
brother? What's it about?"
"I don't
know," said the man. "Spies! Yaha! Tst! Spies!"
He asked another man.
"Who is it?"
"I don't
know," returned the man, clapping his hands to his mouth nevertheless, and
vociferating in a surprising heat and with the greatest ardour, "Spies!
Yaha! Tst, tst! Spi-ies!"
At length, a person
better informed on the merits of the case, tumbled against him, and from this
person he learned that the funeral was the funeral of one Roger Cly.
"Was He a
spy?" asked Mr. Cruncher.
"Old Bailey
spy," returned his informant. "Yaha! Tst! Yah! Old Bailey
Spi-i-ies!"
"Why, to be
sure!" exclaimed Jerry, recalling the Trial at which he had assisted.
"I've seen him. Dead, is he?"
"Dead as
mutton," returned the other, "and can't be too dead. Have 'em out,
there! Spies! Pull 'em out, there! Spies!"
The idea was so
acceptable in the prevalent absence of any idea, that the crowd caught it up
with eagerness, and loudly repeating the suggestion to have 'em out, and to
pull 'em out, mobbed the two vehicles so closely that they came to a stop. On
the crowd's opening the coach doors, the one mourner scuffled out of himself
and was in their bands for a moment; but he was so alert, and made such good
use of his time, that in another moment he was scouring away up a bye-street,
after shedding his cloak, hat, long hatband, white pocket-handkerchief, and
other symbolical tears.
These, the people tore
to pieces and scattered far and wide with great enjoyment, while the tradesmen
hurriedly shut up their shops; for a crowd in those times stopped at nothing,
and was a monster much dreaded. They had already got the length of opening the
hearse to take the coffin out, when some brighter genius proposed instead, its
being escorted to its destination amidst general rejoicing. Practical
suggestions being much needed, this suggestion, too, was received with
acclamation, and the coach was immediately filled with eight inside and a dozen
out, while as many people got on the roof of the hearse as could by any
exercise of ingenuity stick upon it. Among the first of these volunteers was
Jerry Cruncher himself, who modestly concealed his spiky head from the
observation of Tellson's, in the further corner of the mourning coach.
The officiating
undertakers made some protest against these changes in the ceremonies; but, the
river being alarmingly near, and several voices remarking on the efficacy of
cold immersion in bringing refractory members of the profession to reason, the
protest was faint and brief. The remodelled procession started, with a
chimney-sweep driving the hearse -- advised by the regular driver, who was
perched beside him, under close inspection, for the purpose -- and with a
pieman, also attended by his cabinet minister, driving the mourning coach. A
bear-leader, a popular street character of the time, was impressed as an
additional ornament, before the cavalcade had gone far down the Strand; and his
bear, who was black and very mangy, gave quite an Undertaking air to that part
of the procession in which he walked.
Thus, with
beer-drinking, pipe-smoking, song-roaring, and infinite caricaturing of woe,
the disorderly procession went its way, recruiting at every step, and all the
shops shutting up before it. Its destination was the old church of Saint
Pancras, far off in the fields. It got there in course of time; insisted on
pouring into the burial-ground; finally, accomplished the interment of the
deceased Roger Cly in its own way, and highly to its own satisfaction.
The dead man disposed
of, and the crowd being under the necessity of providing some other
entertainment for itself, another brighter genius (or perhaps the same)
conceived the humour of impeaching casual passersby, as Old Bailey spies, and
wreaking vengeance on them. Chase was given to some scores of inoffensive
persons who had never been near the Old Bailey in their lives, in the
realisation of this fancy, and they were roughly hustled and maltreated. The
transition to the sport of window-breaking, and thence to the plundering of
public-houses, was easy and natural. At last, after several hours, when sundry
summer- houses had been pulled down, and some area-railings had been torn up,
to arm the more belligerent spirits, a rumour got about that the Guards were
coming. Before this rumour, the crowd gradually melted away, and perhaps the
Guards came, and perhaps they never came, and this was the usual progress of a
mob.
Mr. Cruncher did not
assist at the closing sports, but had remained behind in the churchyard, to
confer and condole with the undertakers. The place had a soothing influence on
him. He procured a pipe from a neighbouring public-house, and smoked it,
looking in at the railings and maturely considering the spot.
"Jerry," said
Mr. Cruncher, apostrophising himself in his usual way, "you see that there
Cly that day, and you see with your own eyes that he was a young 'un and a
straight made 'un."
Having smoked his pipe
out, and ruminated a little longer, he turned himself about, that he might appear,
before the hour of closing, on his station at Tellson's. Whether his
meditations on mortality had touched his liver, or whether his general health
had been previously at all amiss, or whether he desired to show a little
attention to an eminent man, is not so much to the purpose, as that he made a
short call upon his medical adviser -- a distinguished surgeon -- on his way
back.
Young Jerry relieved
his father with dutiful interest, and reported No job in his absence. The bank
closed, the ancient clerks came out, the usual watch was set, and Mr. Cruncher
and his son went home to tea.
"Now, I tell you
where it is!" said Mr. Cruncher to his wife, on entering. "If, as a
honest tradesman, my wenturs goes wrong to-night, I shall make sure that you've
been praying again me, and I shall work you for it just the same as if I seen
you do it."
The dejected Mrs.
Cruncher shook her head.
"Why, you're at it
afore my face!" said Mr. Cruncher, with signs of angry apprehension.
"I am saying
nothing."
"Well, then; don't
meditate nothing. You might as well flop as meditate. You may as well go again
me one way as another. Drop it altogether."
"Yes, Jerry."
"Yes, Jerry,"
repeated Mr. Cruncher sitting down to tea. "Ah! It is yes, Jerry. That's
about it. You may say yes, Jerry."
Mr. Cruncher had no
particular meaning in these sulky corroborations, but made use of them, as
people not unfrequently do, to express general ironical dissatisfaction.
"You and your yes,
Jerry," said Mr. Cruncher, taking a bite out of his bread-and-butter, and
seeming to help it down with a large invisible oyster out of his saucer.
"Ah! I think so. I believe you."
"You are going out
to-night?" asked his decent wife, when he took another bite.
"Yes, I am."
"May I go with
you, father?" asked his son, briskly.
"No, you mayn't.
I'm a going -- as your mother knows -- a fishing. That's where I'm going to.
Going a fishing."
"Your fishing-rod
gets rayther rusty; don't it, father?"
"Never you
mind."
"Shall you bring
any fish home, father?"
"If I don't,
you'll have short commons, to-morrow," returned that gentleman, shaking
his head; "that's questions enough for you; I ain't a going out, till
you've been long abed."
He devoted himself
during the remainder of the evening to keeping a most vigilant watch on Mrs.
Cruncher, and sullenly holding her in conversation that she might be prevented
from meditating any petitions to his disadvantage. With this view, he urged his
son to hold her in conversation also, and led the unfortunate woman a hard life
by dwelling on any causes of complaint he could bring against her, rather than
he would leave her for a moment to her own reflections. The devoutest person
could have rendered no greater homage to the efficacy of an honest prayer than
he did in this distrust of his wife. It was as if a professed unbeliever in
ghosts should be frightened by a ghost story.
"And mind
you!" said Mr. Cruncher. "No games to-morrow! If I, as a honest
tradesman, succeed in providing a jinte of meat or two, none of your not
touching of it, and sticking to bread. If I, as a honest tradesman, am able to
provide a little beer, none of your declaring on water. When you go to Rome, do
as Rome does. Rome will be a ugly customer to you, if you don't. I'm your Rome,
you know."
Then he began grumbling
again:
"With your flying
into the face of your own wittles and drink! I don't know how scarce you mayn't
make the wittles and drink here, by your flopping tricks and your unfeeling
conduct. Look at your boy: he is your'n, ain't he? He's as thin as a lath. Do
you call yourself a mother, and not know that a mother's first duty is to blow
her boy out?"
This touched Young
Jerry on a tender place; who adjured his mother to perform her first duty, and,
whatever else she did or neglected, above all things to lay especial stress on
the discharge of that maternal function so affectingly and delicately indicated
by his other parent.
Thus the evening wore
away with the Cruncher family, until Young Jerry was ordered to bed, and his
mother, laid under similar injunctions, obeyed them. Mr. Cruncher beguiled the
earlier watches of the night with solitary pipes, and did not start upon his excursion
until nearly one o'clock. Towards that small and ghostly hour, he rose up from
his chair, took a key out of his pocket, opened a locked cupboard, and brought
forth a sack, a crowbar of convenient size, a rope and chain, and other fishing
tackle of that nature. Disposing these articles about him in skilful manner, he
bestowed a parting defiance on Mrs. Cruncher, extinguished the light, and went
out.
Young Jerry, who had
only made a feint of undressing when he went to bed, was not long after his father.
Under cover of the darkness he followed out of the room, followed down the
stairs, followed down the court, followed out into the streets. He was in no
uneasiness concerning his getting into the house again, for it was full of
lodgers, and the door stood ajar all night.
Impelled by a laudable
ambition to study the art and mystery of his father's honest calling, Young
Jerry, keeping as close to house fronts, walls, and doorways, as his eyes were
close to one another, held his honoured parent in view. The honoured parent
steering Northward, had not gone far, when he was joined by another disciple of
Izaak Walton, and the two trudged on together.
Within half an hour
from the first starting, they were beyond the winking lamps, and the more than
winking watchmen, and were out upon a lonely road. Another fisherman was picked
up here -- and that so silently, that if Young Jerry had been superstitious, he
might have supposed the second follower of the gentle craft to have, all of a
sudden, split himself into two.
The three went on, and
Young Jerry went on, until the three stopped under a bank overhanging the road.
Upon the top of the bank was a low brick wall, surmounted by an iron railing.
In the shadow of bank and wall the three turned out of the road, and up a blind
lane, of which the wall -- there, risen to some eight or ten feet high --
formed one side. Crouching down in a corner, peeping up the lane, the next
object that Young Jerry saw, was the form of his honoured parent, pretty well
defined against a watery and clouded moon, nimbly scaling an iron gate. He was
soon over, and then the second fisherman got over, and then the third. They all
dropped softly on the ground within the gate, and lay there a little --
listening perhaps. Then, they moved away on their hands and knees.
It was now Young
Jerry's turn to approach the gate: which he did, holding his breath. Crouching
down again in a corner there, and looking in, he made out the three fishermen
creeping through some rank grass! and all the gravestones in the churchyard --
it was a large churchyard that they were in -- looking on like ghosts in white,
while the church tower itself looked on Eke the ghost of a monstrous giant.
They did not creep far, before they stopped and stood upright. And then they
began to fish.
They fished with a
spade, at first. Presently the honoured parent appeared to be adjusting some
instrument like a great corkscrew. Whatever tools they worked with, they worked
hard, until the awful striking of the church clock so terrified Young Jerry,
that he made off, with his hair as stiff as his father's.
But, his long-cherished
desire to know more about these matters, not only stopped him in his running
away, but lured him back again. They were still fishing perseveringly, when he
peeped in at the gate for the second time; but, now they seemed to have got a
bite. There was a screwing and complaining sound down below, and their bent
figures were strained, as if by a weight. By slow degrees the weight broke away
the earth upon it, and came to the surface. Young Jerry very well knew what it
would be; but, when he saw it, and saw his honoured parent about to wrench it
open, he was so frightened, being new to the sight, that he made off again, and
never stopped until he had run a mile or more.
He would not have
stopped then, for anything less necessary than breath, it being a spectral sort
of race that he ran, and one highly desirable to get to the end of. He had a
strong idea that the coffin he had seen was running after him; and, pictured as
hopping on behind him, bolt upright, upon its narrow end, always on the point
of overtaking him and hopping on at his side -- perhaps taking his arm -- it
was a pursuer to shun. It was an inconsistent and ubiquitous fiend too, for,
while it was making the whole night behind him dreadful, be darted out into the
roadway to avoid dark alleys, fearful of its coming hopping out of them like a
dropsical boy's-Kite without tail and wings. It hid in doorways too, rubbing
its horrible shoulders against doors, and drawing them up to its ears, as if it
were laughing. It got into shadows on the road, and lay cunningly on its back
to trip him up. All this time it was incessantly hopping on behind and gaining
on him, so that when the boy got to his own door he had reason for being half
dead. And even then it would not leave him, but followed him upstairs with a
bump on every stair, scrambled into bed with him, and bumped down, dead and
heavy, on his breast when he fell asleep.
From his oppressed
slumber, Young Jerry in his closet was awakened after daybreak and before
sunrise, by the presence of his father in the family room. Something had gone
wrong with him; at least, so Young Jerry inferred, from the circumstance of his
holding Mrs. Cruncher by the cars, and knocking the back of her head against
the head-board of the bed.
"I told you I
would," said Mr. Cruncher, "and I did."
"Jerry, Jerry,
Jerry!" his wife implored.
"You oppose
yourself to the profit of the business," said Jerry, "and me and my
partners suffer. You was to honour and obey; why the devil don't you?"
"I try to be a
good wife, Jerry," the poor woman protested, with tears.
"Is it being a
good wife to oppose your husband's business? Is it honouring your husband to
dishonour his business? Is it obeying your husband to disobey him on the wital
subject of his business?"
"You hadn't taken
to the dreadful business then, Jerry."
"It's enough for
you," retorted Mr. Cruncher, "to be the wife of a honest tradesman,
and not to occupy your female mind with calculations when he took to his trade
or when he didn't. A honouring and obeying wife would let his trade alone
altogether. Call yourself a religious woman? If you're a religious woman, give
me a irreligious one! You have no more nat'ral sense of duty than the bed of
this here Thames river has of a pile, and similarly it must be knocked into
you."
The altercation was
conducted in a low tone of voice, and terminated in the honest tradesman's
kicking off his clay-soiled boots, and lying down at his length on the floor.
After taking a timid peep at him lying on his back, with his rusty hands under
his head for a pillow, his son lay down too, and fell asleep again.
There was no fish for
breakfast, and not much of anything else. Mr. Cruncher was out of spirits, and
out of temper, and kept an iron pot-lid by him as a projectile for the
correction of Mrs. Cruncher, in case he should observe any symptoms of her
saying Grace. He was brushed and washed at the usual hour, and set off with his
son to pursue his ostensible calling.
Young Jerry, walking
with the stool under his arm at his father's side along sunny and crowded
Fleet-street, was a very different Young Jerry from him of the previous night,
running home through darkness and solitude from his grim pursuer. His cunning
was fresh with the day, and his qualms were gone with the night -- in which
particulars it is not improbable that he had compeers in Fleet-street and the
City of London, that fine morning.
"Father,"
said Young Jerry, as they walked along: taking care to keep at arm's length and
to have the stool well between them: "what's a Resurrection-Man?"
Mr. Cruncher came to a
stop on the pavement before he answered, "How should I know?"
"I thought you
knowed everything, father," said the artless boy.
"Hem! Well,"
returned Mr. Cruncher, going on again, and lifting off his hat to give his
spikes free play, "he's a tradesman."
"What's his goods,
father?" asked the brisk Young Jerry.
"Ins goods,"
said Mr. Cruncher, after turning it over in his mind, "is a branch of
Scientific goods."
"Persons' bodies,
ain't it, father?" asked the lively boy.
"I believe it is
something of that sort," said Mr. Cruncher.
"Oh, father, I
should so like to be a Resurrection-Man when I'm quite growed up!"
Mr. Cruncher was
soothed, but shook his head in a dubious and moral way. "It depends upon
how you dewelop your talents. Be careful to dewelop your talents, and never to
say no more than you can help to nobody, and there's no telling at the present
time what you may not come to be fit for." As Young Jerry, thus
encouraged, went on a few yards in advance, to plant the stool in the shadow of
the Bar, Mr. Cruncher added to himself: "Jerry, you honest tradesman,
there's hopes wot that boy will yet be a blessing to you, and a recompense to
you for his mother!"
THERE HAD BEEN earlier
drinking than usual in the wine-shop of Monsieur Defarge. As early as six
o'clock in the morning, sallow faces peeping through its barred windows had
descried other faces within, bending over measures of wine. Monsieur Defarge
sold a very thin wine at the best of times, but it would seem to have been an
unusually thin wine that he sold at this time. A sour wine, moreover, or a
souring, for its influence on the mood of those who drank it was to make them
gloomy. No vivacious Bacchanalian flame leaped out of the pressed grape of
Monsieur Defarge: but, a smouldering fire that burnt in the dark, lay hidden in
the dregs of it.
This had been the third
morning in succession, on which there had been early drinking at the wine-shop
of Monsieur Defarge. It had begun on Monday, and here was Wednesday come. There
had been more of early brooding than drinking; for, many men had listened and
whispered and slunk about there from the time of the opening of the door, who
could not have laid a piece of money on the counter to save their souls. These
were to the full as interested in the place, however, as if they could have
commanded whole barrels of wine; and they glided from seat to seat, and from
corner to corner, swallowing talk in lieu of drink, with greedy looks.
Notwithstanding an
unusual flow of company, the master of the wine- shop was not visible. He was
not missed; for, nobody who crossed the threshold looked for him, nobody asked for
him, nobody wondered to see only Madame Defarge in her seat, presiding over the
distribution of wine, with a bowl of battered small coins before her, as much
defaced and beaten out of their original impress as the small coinage of
humanity from whose ragged pockets they had come.
A suspended interest
and a prevalent absence of mind, were perhaps observed by the spies who looked
in at the wine-shop, as they looked in at every place, high and low, from the
kings palace to the criminal's gaol. Games at cards languished, players at
dominoes musingly built towers with them, drinkers drew figures on the tables
with spilt drops of wine, Madame Defarge herself picked out the pattern on her
sleeve with her toothpick, and saw and heard something inaudible and invisible
a long way off.
Thus, Saint Antoine in
this vinous feature of his, until midday. It was high noontide, when two dusty
men passed through his streets and under his swinging lamps: of whom, one was
Monsieur Defarge: the other a mender of roads in a blue cap. All adust and
athirst, the two entered the wine-shop. Their arrival had lighted a kind of
fire in the breast of Saint Antoine, fast spreading as they came along, which
stirred and flickered in flames of faces at most doors and windows. Yet, no one
had followed them, and no man spoke when they entered the wine-shop, though the
eyes of every man there were turned upon them.
"Good day,
gentlemen!" said Monsieur Defarge.
It may have been a
signal for loosening the general tongue. It elicited an answering chorus of
"Good day!"
"It is bad
weather, gentlemen," said Defarge, shaking his head.
Upon which, every man
looked at his neighbour, and then an cast down their eyes and sat silent.
Except one man, who got up and went out.
"My wife,"
said Defarge aloud, addressing Madame Defarge: "I have travelled certain
leagues with this good mender of roads, called Jacques. I met him -- by
accident -- a day and half's journey out of Paris. He is a good child, this
mender of roads, called Jacques. Give him to drink, my wife!"
A second man got up and
went out. Madame Defarge set wine before the mender of roads called Jacques,
who doffed his blue cap to the company, and drank. In the breast of his blouse
he carried some coarse dark bread; he ate of this between whiles, and sat
munching and drinking near Madame Defarge's counter. A third man got up and
went out.
Defarge refreshed
himself with a draught of wine -- but, he took less than was given to the
stranger, as being himself a man to whom it was no rarity -- and stood waiting
until the countryman had made his breakfast. He looked at no one present, and
no one now looked at him; not even Madame Defarge, who had taken up her
knitting, and was at work.
"Have you finished
your repast, friend?" he asked, in due season.
"Yes, thank
you."
"Come, then! You
shall see the apartment that I told you you could occupy. It will suit you to a
marvel."
Out of the wine-shop
into the street, out of the street into a courtyard, out of the courtyard up a
steep staircase, out of the staircase into a garret, -- formerly the garret
where a white-haired man sat on a low bench, stooping forward and very busy,
making shoes.
No white-haired man was
there now; but, the three men were there who had gone out of the wine-shop singly.
And between them and the white-haired man afar off, was the one small link,
that they had once looked in at him through the chinks in the wall.
Defarge closed the door
carefully, and spoke in a subdued voice:
"Jacques One,
Jacques Two, Jacques Three! This is the witness encountered by appointment, by
me, Jacques Four. He will tell you all. Speak, Jacques Five!"
The mender of roads,
blue cap in hand, wiped his swarthy forehead with it, and said, "Where
shall I commence, monsieur?"
"Commence," was
Monsieur Defarge's not unreasonable reply, "at the commencement."
"I saw him then,
messieurs," began the mender of roads, "a year ago this running
summer, underneath the carriage of the Marquis, hanging by the chain. Behold
the manner of it. I leaving my work on the road, the sun going to bed, the
carriage of the Marquis slowly ascending the hill, he hanging by the chain --
like this."
Again the mender of
roads went through the whole performance; in which he ought to have been
perfect by that time, seeing that it had been the infallible resource and
indispensable entertainment of his village during a whole year.
Jacques One struck in,
and asked if he had ever seen the man before?
"Never,"
answered the mender of roads, recovering his perpendicular.
Jacques Three demanded
how he afterwards recognised him then?
"By his tall
figure," said the mender of roads, softly, and with his finger at his
nose. "When Monsieur the Marquis demands that evening, 'Say, what is he
like?' I make response, 'Tall as a spectre.'"
"You should have
said, short as a dwarf," returned Jacques Two.
"But what did I
know? The deed was not then accomplished, neither did he confide in me.
Observe! Under those circumstances even, I do not offer my testimony. Monsieur
the Marquis indicates me with his finger, standing near our little fountain,
and says, 'To me! Bring that rascal!' My faith, messieurs, I offer
nothing."
"He is right
there, Jacques," murmured Defarge, to him who had interrupted. "Go
on!"
"Good!" said
the mender of roads, with an air of mystery. "The tall man is lost, and he
is sought -- how many months? Nine, ten, eleven?"
"No matter, the
number," said Defarge. "He is well hidden, but at last he is
unluckily found. Go on!"
"I am again at
work upon the hill-side, and the sun is again about to go to bed. I am
collecting my tools to descend to my cottage down in the village below, where
it is already dark, when I raise my eyes, and see coming over the hill six
soldiers. In the midst of them is a tall man with his arms bound -- tied to his
sides -- like this!"
With the aid of his
indispensable cap, he represented a man with his elbows bound fast at his hips,
with cords that were knotted behind him.
"I stand aside,
messieurs, by my heap of stones, to see the soldiers and their prisoner pass
(for it is a solitary road, that, where any spectacle is well worth looking
at), and at first, as they approach, I see no more than that they are six
soldiers with a tall man bound, and that they are almost black to my sight --
except on the side of the sun going to bed, where they have a red edge,
messieurs. Also, I see that their long shadows are on the hollow ridge on the
opposite side of the road, and are on the hill above it, and are like the
shadows of giants. Also, I see that they are covered with dust, and that the
dust moves with them as they come, tramp, tramp! But when they advance quite
near to me, I recognise the tall man, and he recognises me. Ah, but he would be
well content to precipitate himself over the hill-side once again, as on the
evening when he and I first encountered, close to the same spot!"
He described it as if
he were there, and it was evident that he saw it vividly; perhaps he had not
seen much in his life.
"I do not show the
soldiers that I recognise the tall man; he does not show the soldiers that he
recognises me; we do it, and we know it, with our eyes. 'Come on!' says the
chief of that company, pointing to the village, 'bring him fast to his tomb!'
and they bring him faster. I follow. His arms are swelled because of being
bound so tight, his wooden shoes are large and clumsy, and he is lame. Because
he is lame, and consequently slow, they drive him with their guns -- like
this!"
He imitated the action
of a man's being impelled forward by the butt-ends of muskets.
"As they descend
the hill like madmen running a race, he falls. They laugh and pick him up
again. His face is bleeding and covered with dust, but he cannot touch it;
thereupon they laugh again. They bring him into the village; all the village
runs to look; they take him past the mill, and up to the prison; all the
village sees the prison gate open in the darkness of the night, and swallow him
-- like this!"
He opened his mouth as
wide as he could, and shut it with a sounding snap of his teeth. Observant of
his unwillingness to mar the effect by opening it again, Defarge said, "Go
on, Jacques."
"All the
village," pursued the mender of roads, on tiptoe and in a low voice,
"withdraws; all the village whispers by the fountain; all the village
sleeps; all the village dreams of that unhappy one, within the locks and bars
of the prison on the crag, and never to come out of it, except to perish. In
the morning, with my tools upon my shoulder, eating my morsel of black bread as
I go, I make a circuit by the prison, on my way to my work. There I see him,
high up, behind the bars of a lofty iron cage, bloody and dusty as last night,
looking through. He has no hand free, to wave to me; I dare not call to him; he
regards me like a dead man."
Defarge and the three
glanced darkly at one another. The looks of all of them were dark, repressed,
and revengeful, as they listened to the countryman's story; the manner of all
of them, while it was secret, was authoritative too. They had the air of a
rough tribunal; Jacques One and Two sitting on the old pallet-bed, each with
his chin resting on his hand, and his eyes intent on the road-mender; Jacques
Three, equally intent, on one knee behind them, with his agitated hand always
gliding over the network of fine nerves about his mouth and nose; Defarge
standing between them and the narrator, whom he had stationed in the light of
the window, by turns looking from him to them, and from them to him.
"Go on,
Jacques," said Defarge.
"He remains up
there in his iron cage some days. The village looks at him by stealth. for it
is afraid. But it always looks up, from a distance, at the prison on the crag;
and in the evening, when the work of the day is achieved and it assembles to
gossip at the fountain, all faces are turned towards the prison. Formerly, they
were turned towards the posting-house; now, they are turned towards the prison.
They whisper at the fountain, that although condemned to death he will not be
executed; they say that petitions have been presented in Paris, showing that he
was enraged and made mad by the death of his child; they say that a petition
has been presented to the King himself. What do I know? It is possible. Perhaps
yes, perhaps no."
"Listen then,
Jacques," Number One of that name sternly interposed. "Know that a
petition was presented to the King and Queen. All here, yourself excepted, saw
the King take it, in his carriage in the street, sitting beside the Queen. It
is Defarge whom you see here, who, at the hazard of his life, darted out before
the horses, with the petition in his hand."
"And once again
listen, Jacques!" said the kneeling Number Three: his fingers ever
wandering over and over those fine nerves, with a strikingly greedy air, as if
he hungered for something -- that was neither food nor drink; "the guard,
horse and foot, surrounded the petitioner, and struck him blows. You
hear?"
"I hear,
messieurs."
"Go on then,"
said Defarge.
"Again; on the
other hand, they whisper at the fountain," resumed the countryman,
"that he is brought down into our country to be executed on the spot, and
that he will very certainly be executed. They even whisper that because he has
slain Monseigneur, and because Monseigneur was the father of his tenants --
serfs -- what you will -- he will -- be executed as a parricide. One old man
says at the fountain, that his right hand, armed with the knife, will be burnt
off before his face; that, into wounds which will be made in his arms, his
breast, and his legs, there will be poured boiling oil, melted lead, hot resin,
wax, and sulphur; finally, that he will be tom limb from limb by four strong
horses. That old man says, all this was actually done to a prisoner who made an
attempt on the life of the late King, Louis Fifteen. But how do I know if he
lies? I am not a scholar."
"Listen once again
then, Jacques!" said the man with the restless hand and the craving air.
"The name of that prisoner was Damiens, and it was all done in open day,
in the open streets of this city of Paris; and nothing was more noticed in the
vast concourse that saw it done, than the crowd of ladies of quality and
fashion, who were full of eager attention to the last -- to the last, Jacques,
prolonged until nightfall, when he had lost two legs and an arm, and still
breathed! And it was done -- why, how old are you?"
"Thirty-five,"
said the mender of roads, who looked sixty.
"It was done when
you were more than ten years old; you might have seen it. "
"Enough!"
said Defarge, with grim impatience. "Long live the Devil! Go on."
"Well! Some
whisper this, some whisper that; they speak of nothing else; even the fountain
appears to fall to that tune. At length, on Sunday night when all the village
is asleep, come soldiers, winding down from the prison, and their guns ring on
the stones of the little street. Workmen dig, workmen hammer, soldiers laugh
and sing; in the morning, by the fountain, there is raised a gallows forty feet
high, poisoning the water."
The mender of roads
looked through rather than at the low ceiling, and pointed as if he saw the
gallows somewhere in the sky.
"All work is
stopped, all assemble there, nobody leads the cows out, the cows are there with
the rest. At midday, the roll of drums. Soldiers have marched into the prison
in the night, and he is in the midst of many soldiers. He is bound as before, and
in his mouth there is a gag -- tied so, with a tight string, making him look
almost as if he laughed." He suggested it, by creasing his face with his
two thumbs, from the corners of his mouth to his ears. "On the top of the
gallows is fixed the knife, blade upwards, with its point in the air. He is
hanged there forty feet high -- and is left hanging, poisoning the water."
They looked at one
another, as he used his blue cap to wipe his face, on which the perspiration
had started afresh while he recalled the spectacle.
"It is frightful,
messieurs. How can the women and the children draw water! Who can gossip of an
evening, under that shadow! Under it, have I said? When I left the village,
Monday evening as the sun was going to bed, and looked back from the hill, the
shadow struck across the church, across the mill, across the prison -- seemed
to strike across the earth, messieurs, to where the sky rests upon it!"
The hungry man gnawed
one of his fingers as he looked at the other three, and his finger quivered
with the craving that was on him.
"That's all,
messieurs. I left at sunset (as I had been warned to do), and I walked on, that
night and half next day, until I met (as I was warned I should) this comrade.
With him, I came on, now riding and now walking, through the rest of yesterday
and through last night. And here you see me!"
After a gloomy silence,
the first Jacques said, "Good! You have acted and recounted faithfully.
Will you wait for us a little, outside the door?"
"Very
willingly," said the mender of roads. Whom Defarge escorted to the top of
the stairs, and, leaving seated there, returned.
The three had risen,
and their heads were together when he came back to the garret.
"How say you,
Jacques?" demanded Number One. "To be registered?"
"To be registered,
as doomed to destruction," returned Defarge.
"Magnificent!"
croaked the man with the craving.
"The chateau, and
all the race?" inquired the first.
"The chateau and
all the race," returned Defarge. "Extermination."
The hungry man repeated,
in a rapturous croak, "Magnificent!" and began gnawing another
finger.
"Are you
sure," asked Jacques Two, of Defarge, "that no embarrassment can
arise from our manner of keeping the register? Without doubt it is safe, for no
one beyond ourselves can decipher it; but shall we always be able to decipher
it -- or, I ought to say, will she?"
"Jacques,"
returned Defarge, drawing himself up, "if madame my wife undertook to keep
the register in her memory alone, she would not lose a word of it -- not a
syllable of it. Knitted, in her own stitches and her own symbols, it will
always be as plain to her as the sun. Confide in Madame Defarge. It would be
easier for the weakest poltroon that lives, to erase himself from existence,
than to erase one letter of his name or crimes from the knitted register of
Madame Defarge."
There was a murmur of
confidence and approval, and then the man who hungered, asked: "Is this
rustic to be sent back soon? I hope so. He is very simple; is he not a little
dangerous?"
"He knows
nothing," said Defarge; "at least nothing more than would easily
elevate himself to a gallows of the same height. I charge myself with him; let
him remain with me; I will take care of him, and set him on his road. He wishes
to see the fine world -- the King, the Queen, and Court; let him see them on
Sunday."
"What?"
exclaimed the hungry man, staring. "Is it a good sign, that he wishes to
see Royalty and Nobility?"
"Jacques,"
said Defarge; "judiciously show a cat milk, if you wish her to thirst for
it. Judiciously show a dog his natural prey, if you wish him to bring it down
one day."
Nothing more was said,
and the mender of roads, being found already dozing on the topmost stair, was
advised to lay himself down on the pallet-bed and take some rest. He needed no
persuasion, and was soon asleep.
Worse quarters than
Defarge's wine-shop, could easily have been found in Paris for a provincial
slave of that degree. Saving for a mysterious dread of madame by which he was
constantly haunted, his life was very new and agreeable. But, madame sat all
day at her counter, so expressly unconscious of him, and so particularly
determined not to perceive that his being there had any connection with
anything below the surface, that he shook in his wooden shoes whenever his eye
lighted on her. For, he contended with himself that it was impossible to
foresee what that lady might pretend next; and he felt assured that if she
should take it into her brightly ornamented head to pretend that she had seen
him do a murder and afterwards flay the victim, she would infallibly go through
with it until the play was played out.
Therefore, when Sunday
came, the mender of roads was not enchanted (though he said he was) to find
that madame was to accompany monsieur and himself to Versailles. It was
additionally disconcerting to have madame knitting all the way there, in a
public conveyance; it was additionally disconcerting yet, to have madame in the
crowd in the afternoon, still with her knitting in her hands as the crowd waited
to see the carriage of the King and Queen.
"You work hard,
madame," said a man near her.
"Yes,"
answered Madame Defarge; "I have a good deal to do."
"What do you make,
madame?"
"Many
things."
"For instance
--"
"For
instance," returned Madame Defarge, composedly, "shrouds."
The man moved a little
further away, as soon as he could, and the mender of roads fanned himself with
his blue cap: feeling it mightily close and oppressive. If he needed a King and
Queen to restore him, he was fortunate in having his remedy at hand; for, soon
the large-faced King and the fair-faced Queen came in their golden coach,
attended by the shining Bull's Eye of their Court, a glittering multitude of
laughing ladies and fine lords; and in jewels and silks and powder and
splendour and elegantly spurning figures and handsomely disdainful faces of
both sexes, the mender of roads bathed himself, so much to his temporary
intoxication, that he cried Long live the King, Long live the Queen, Long live
everybody and everything! as if he had never heard of ubiquitous Jacques in his
time. Then, there were gardens, courtyards, terraces, fountains, green banks,
more King and Queen, more Bull's Eye, more lords and ladies, more Long live
they all! until he absolutely wept with sentiment. During the whole of this
scene, which lasted some three hours, he had plenty of shouting and weeping and
sentimental company, and throughout Defarge held him by the collar, as if to
restrain him from flying at the objects of his brief devotion and tearing them
to pieces.
"Bravo!" said
Defarge, clapping him on the back when it was over, like a patron; "you
are a good boy!"
The mender of roads was
now coming to himself, and was mistrustful of having made a mistake in his late
demonstrations; but no.
"You are the
fellow we want," said Defarge, in his ear; "you make these fools
believe that it will last for ever. Then, they are the more insolent, and it is
the nearer ended."
"Hey!" cried
the mender of roads, reflectively; "that's true."
"These fools know
nothing. While they despise your breath, and would stop it for ever and ever,
in you or in a hundred like you rather than in one of their own horses or dogs,
they only know what your breath tells them. Let it deceive them, then, a little
longer; it cannot deceive them too much."
Madame Defarge looked
superciliously at the client, and nodded in confirmation.
"As to you,"
said she, "you would shout and shed tears for anything, if it made a show
and a noise. Say! Would you not?"
"Truly, madame, I
think so. For the moment."
"If you were shown
a great heap of dolls, and were set upon them to pluck them to pieces and
despoil them for your own advantage, you would pick out the richest and gayest.
Say! Would you not?"
"Truly yes,
madame."
"Yes. And if you
were shown a flock of birds, unable to fly, and were set upon them to strip
them of their feathers for your own advantage, you would set upon the birds of
the finest feathers; would you not?"
"It is true,
madame."
"You have seen
both dolls and birds to-day," said Madame Defarge, with a wave of her hand
towards the place where they had last been apparent; "now, go home!"
MADAME DEFARGE and
monsieur her husband returned amicably to the bosom of Saint Antoine, while a
speck in a blue cap toiled through the darkness, and through the dust, and down
the weary miles of avenue by the wayside, slowly tending towards that point of
the compass where the chateau of Monsieur the Marquis, now in his grave, listened
to the whispering trees. Such ample leisure had the stone faces, now, for
listening to the trees and to the fountain, that the few village scarecrows
who, in their quest for herbs to eat and fragments of dead stick to bum,
strayed within sight of the great stone courtyard and terrace staircase, had it
borne in upon their starved fancy that the expression of the faces was altered.
A rumour just lived in the village -- had a faint and bare existence there, as
its people had -- that when the knife struck home, the faces changed, from
faces of pride to faces of anger and pain; also, that when that dangling figure
was hauled up forty feet above the fountain, they changed again, and bore a
cruel look of being avenged, which they would henceforth bear for ever. In the
stone face over the great window of the bed-chamber where the murder was done,
two fine dints were pointed out in the sculptured nose, which everybody
recognised, and which nobody had seen of old; and on the scarce occasions when
two or three ragged peasants emerged from the crowd to take a hurried peep at
Monsieur the Marquis petrified, a skinny finger would not have pointed to it
for a minute, before they all started away among the moss and leaves, like the
more fortunate hares who could find a living there.
Chateau and hut, stone
face and dangling figure, the red stain on the stone floor, and the pure water
in the village well -- thousands of acres of land -- a whole province of France
-- all France itself -- lay under the night sky, concentrated into a faint
hair-breadth line. So does a whole world, with all its greatnesses and
littlenesses, he in a twinkling star. And as mere human knowledge can split a
ray of light and analyse the manner of its composition, so, sublimer
intelligences may read in the feeble shining of this earth of ours, every
thought and act, every vice and virtue, of every responsible creature on it.
The Defarges, husband
and wife, came lumbering under the starlight, in their public vehicle, to that
gate of Paris whereunto their journey naturally tended. There was the usual
stoppage at the barrier guard- house, and the usual lanterns came glancing
forth for the usual examination and inquiry. Monsieur Defarge alighted; knowing
one or two of the soldiery there, and one of the police. The latter he was
intimate with, and affectionately embraced.
When Saint Antoine had
again enfolded the Defarges in his dusky wings, and they, having finally
alighted near the Saint's boundaries, were picking their way on foot through
the black mud and offal of his streets, Madame Defarge spoke to her husband:
"Say then, my
friend; what did Jacques of the police tell thee?"
"Very little
to-night, but all he knows. There is another spy commissioned for our quarter.
There may be many more, for all that he can say, but he knows of one."
"Eh well!"
said Madame Defarge, raising her eyebrows with a cool business air. "It is
necessary to register him. How do they call that man?"
"He is
English."
"So much the
better. His name?"
"Barsad," said
Defarge, making it French by pronunciation. But, he had been so careful to get
it accurately, that he then spelt it with perfect correctness.
"Barsad,"
repeated madame. "Good. Christian name?"
"John."
"John
Barsad," repeated madame, after murmuring it once to herself. "Good.
His appearance; is it known?"
"Age, about forty
years; height, about five feet nine; black hair; complexion dark; generally,
rather handsome visage; eyes dark, face thin, long, and sallow; nose aquiline,
but not straight, having a peculiar inclination towards the left cheek;
expression, therefore, sinister."
"Eh my faith. It
is a portrait!" said madame, laughing. "He shall be registered
to-morrow."
They turned into the
wine-shop, which was closed (for it was midnight), and where Madame Defarge
immediately took her post at her desk, counted the small moneys that had been
taken during her absence, examined the stock, went through the entries in the
book, made other entries of her own, checked the serving man in every possible
way, and finally dismissed him to bed. Then she turned out the contents of the
bowl of money for the second time, and began knotting them up in her
handkerchief, in a chain of separate knots, for safe keeping through the night.
All this while, Defarge, with his pipe in his mouth, walked up and down,
complacently admiring, but never interfering; in which condition, indeed, as to
the business and his domestic affairs, he walked up and down through life.
The night was hot, and
the shop, close shut and surrounded by so foul a neighbourhood, was
ill-smelling. Monsieur Defarge's olfactory sense was by no means delicate, but
the stock of wine smelt much stronger than it ever tasted, and so did the stock
of rum and brandy and aniseed. He whiffed the compound of scents away, as he
put down his smoked-out pipe.
"You are
fatigued," said madame, raising her glance as she knotted the money.
"There are only the usual odours."
"I am a little
tired," her husband acknowledged.
"You are a little
depressed, too," said madame, whose quick eyes had never been so intent on
the accounts, but they had had a ray or two for him. "Oh, the men, the
men!"
"But my
dear!" began Defarge.
"But my
dear!" repeated madame, nodding firmly; "but my dear! You are faint
of heart to-night, my dear!"
"Well, then,"
said Defarge, as if a thought were wrung out of his breast, "it is a long
time."
"It is a long
time," repeated his wife; "and when is it not a long time? Vengeance
and retribution require a long time; it is the rule."
"It does not take
a long time to strike a man with Lightning," said Defarge.
"How long,"
demanded madame, composedly, "does it take to make and store the
lightning? Tell me."
Defarge raised his head
thoughtfully, as if there were something in that too.
"It does not take
a long time," said madame, "for an earthquake to swallow a town. Eh
well! Tell me how long it takes to prepare the earthquake?"
"A long time, I
suppose," said Defarge.
"But when it is
ready, it takes place, and grinds to pieces everything before it. In the
meantime, it is always preparing, though it is not seen or heard. That is your
consolation. Keep it."
She tied a knot with
flashing eyes, as if it throttled a foe.
"I tell
thee," said madame, extending her right hand, for emphasis, "that
although it is a long time on the road, it is on the road and coming. I tell
thee it never retreats, and never stops. I tell thee it is always advancing.
Look around and consider the Eves of all the world that we know, consider the
faces of all the world that we know, consider the rage and discontent to which
the Jacquerie addresses itself with more and more of certainty every hour. Can
such things last? Bah! I mock you."
"My brave
wife," returned Defarge, standing before her with his head a little bent,
and his hands clasped at his back, like a docile and attentive pupil before his
catechist, "I do not question all this. But it has lasted a long time, and
it is possible -- you know well, my wife, it is possible -- that it may not
come, during our lives."
"Eh well! How
then?" demanded madame, tying another knot, as if there were another enemy
strangled.
"Well!" said
Defarge, with a half complaining and half apologetic shrug. "We shall not
see the triumph."
"We shall have
helped it," returned madame, with her extended hand in strong action.
"Nothing that we do, is done in vain. I believe, with all my soul, that we
shall see the triumph. But even if not, even if I knew certainly not, show me the
neck of an aristocrat and tyrant, and still I would --"
Then madame, with her
teeth set, tied a very terrible knot indeed.
"Hold!" cried
Defarge, reddening a little as if he felt charged with cowardice; "I too,
my dear, will stop at nothing."
"Yes! But it is
your weakness that you sometimes need to see your victim and your opportunity,
to sustain you. Sustain yourself without that. When the time comes, let loose a
tiger and a devil; but wait for the time with the tiger and the devil chained
-- not shown -- yet always ready."
Madame enforced the
conclusion of this piece of advice by striking her little counter with her
chain of money as if she knocked its brains out, and then gathering the heavy
handkerchief under her arm in a serene manner, and observing that it was time
to go to bed.
Next noontide saw the
admirable woman in her usual place in the wine-shop, knitting away assiduously.
A rose lay beside her, and if she now and then glanced at the flower, it was
with no infraction of her usual preoccupied air. There were a few customers,
drinking or not drinking, standing or seated, sprinkled about. The day was very
hot, and heaps of flies, who were extending their inquisitive and adventurous
perquisitions into all the glutinous little glasses near madame, fell dead at
the bottom. Their decease made no impression on the other flies out
promenading, who looked at them in the coolest manner (as if they themselves
were elephants, or something as far removed), until they met the same fate.
Curious to consider how heedless flies are! -- perhaps they thought as much at
Court that sunny summer day.
A figure entering at
the door threw a shadow on Madame Defarge which she felt to be a new one. She
laid down her knitting, and began to pin her rose in her head-dress, before she
looked at the figure.
It was curious. The
moment Madame Defarge took up the rose, the customers ceased talking, and began
gradually to drop out of the wine- shop.
"Good day,
madame," said the new-comer.
"Good day,
monsieur."
She said it aloud, but
added to herself, as she resumed her knitting: "Hah! Good day, age about
forty, height about five feet nine, black hair, generally rather handsome
visage, complexion dark, eyes dark, thin, long and sallow face, aquiline nose
but not straight, having a peculiar inclination towards the left cheek which
imparts a sinister expression! Good day, one and all!"
"Have the goodness
to give me a little glass of old cognac, and a mouthful of cool fresh water,
madame."
Madame complied with a
polite air.
"Marvellous cognac
this, madame!"
It was the first time
it had ever been so complemented, and Madame Defarge knew enough of its
antecedents to know better. She said, however, that the cognac was flattered,
and took up her knitting. The visitor watched her fingers for a few moments,
and took the opportunity of observing the place in general.
"You knit with
great skill, madame."
"I am accustomed
to it."
"A pretty pattern
too!"
"You think
so?" said madame, looking at him with a smile.
"Decidedly. May
one ask what it is for?"
"Pastime,"
said madame, still looking at him with a smile while her fingers moved nimbly.
"Not for
use?"
"That depends. I
may find a use for it one day. If I do -- Well," said madame, drawing a
breath and nodding her head with a stem kind of coquetry, "I'll use
it!"
It was remarkable; but,
the taste of Saint Antoine seemed to be decidedly opposed to a rose on the
head-dress of Madame Defarge. Two men had entered separately, and had been
about to order drink, when, catching sight of that novelty, they faltered, made
a pretence of looking about as if for some friend who was not there, and went
away. Nor, of those who had been there when this visitor entered, was there one
left. They had all dropped off. The spy had kept his eyes open, but had been
able to detect no sign. They had lounged away in a poverty- stricken,
purposeless, accidental manner, quite natural and unimpeachable.
"JOHN,"
thought madame, checking off her work as her fingers knitted, and her eyes
looked at the stranger. "Stay long enough, and I shall knit 'BARSAD'
before you go."
"You have a
husband, madame?"
"I have."
"Children?"
"No
children."
"Business seems
bad?"
"Business is very
bad; the people are so poor."
"Ah, the
unfortunate, miserable people! So oppressed, too -- as you say."
"As you say,"
madame retorted, correcting him, and deftly knitting an extra something into
his name that boded him no good.
"Pardon me;
certainly it was I who said so, but you naturally think so. Of course."
"I think?"
returned madame, in a high voice. "I and my husband have enough to do to
keep this wine-shop open, without thinking. All we think, here, is how to live.
That is the subject we think of, and it gives us, from morning to night, enough
to think about, without embarrassing our heads concerning others. I think for
others? No, no."
The spy, who was there
to pick up any crumbs he could find or make, did not allow his baffled state to
express itself in his sinister face; but, stood with an air of gossiping
gallantry, leaning his elbow on Madame Defarge's little counter, and
occasionally sipping his cognac.
"A bad business
this, madame, of Gaspard's execution. Ah! the poor Gaspard!" With a sigh
of great compassion.
"My faith!"
returned madame, coolly and lightly, "if people use knives for such
purposes, they have to pay for it. He knew beforehand what the price of his
luxury was; he has paid the price."
"I believe,"
said the spy, dropping his soft voice to a tone that invited confidence, and
expressing an injured revolutionary susceptibility in every muscle of his
wicked face: "I believe there is much compassion and anger in this
neighbourhood, touching the poor fellow? Between ourselves."
"Is there?"
asked madame, vacantly.
"Is there
not?"
"-- Here is my
husband!" said Madame Defarge.
As the keeper of the
wine-shop entered at the door, the spy saluted him by touching his hat, and
saying, with an engaging smile, "Good day, Jacques!" Defarge stopped
short, and stared at him.
"Good day, Jacques!"
the spy repeated; with not quite so much confidence, or quite so easy a smile
under the stare.
"You deceive
yourself, monsieur," returned the keeper of the wine- shop. "You
mistake me for another. That is not my name. I am Ernest Defarge."
"It is all the
same," said the spy, airily, but discomfited too: "good day!"
"Good day!"
answered Defarge, drily.
"I was saying to
madame, with whom I had the pleasure of chatting when you entered, that they
tell me there is -- and no wonder! -- much sympathy and anger in Saint Antoine,
touching the unhappy fate of poor Gaspard."
"No one has told
me so," said Defarge, shaking his head. "I know nothing of it."
Having said it, he
passed behind the little counter, and stood with his hand on the back of his
wife's chair, looking over that barrier at the person to whom they were both
opposed, and whom either of them would have shot with the greatest
satisfaction.
The spy, well used to
his business, did not change his unconscious attitude, but drained his little
glass of cognac, took a sip of fresh water, and asked for another glass of
cognac. Madame Defarge poured it out for him, took to her knitting again, and
hummed a little song over it.
"You seem to know
this quarter well; that is to say, better than I do?" observed Defarge.
"Not at all, but I
hope to know it better. I am so profoundly interested in its miserable
inhabitants."
"Hah!"
muttered Defarge.
"The pleasure of
conversing with you, Monsieur Defarge, recalls to me," pursued the spy,
"that I have the honour of cherishing some interesting associations with
your name."
"Indeed!"
said Defarge, with much indifference.
"Yes, indeed. When
Doctor Manette was released, you, his old domestic, had the charge of him, I
know. He was delivered to you. You see I am informed of the
circumstances?"
"Such is the fact,
certainly," said Defarge. He had had it conveyed to him, in an accidental
touch of his wife's elbow as she knitted and warbled, that he would do best to
answer, but always with brevity.
"It was to
you," said the spy, "that his daughter came; and it was from your
care that his daughter took him, accompanied by a neat brown monsieur; how is
he called? -- in a little wig -- Lorry -- of the bank of Tellson and Company --
over to England."
"Such is the
fact," repeated Defarge.
"Very interesting
remembrances!" said the spy. "I have known Doctor Manette and his
daughter, in England."
"Yes?" said
Defarge.
"You don't hear
much about them now?" said the spy.
"No," said
Defarge.
"In effect,"
madame struck in, looking up from her work and her little song, "we never
hear about them. We received the news of their safe arrival, and perhaps
another letter, or perhaps two; but, since then, they have gradually taken their
road in life -- we, ours -- and we have held no correspondence."
"Perfectly so,
madame," replied the spy. "She is going to be married."
"Going?"
echoed madame. "She was pretty enough to have been married long ago. You
English are cold, it seems to me."
"Oh! You know I am
English."
"I perceive your
tongue is," returned madame; "and what the tongue is, I suppose the
man is."
He did not take the
identification as a compliment; but he made the best of it, and turned it off
with a laugh. After sipping his cognac to the end, he added:
"Yes, Miss Manette
is going to be married. But not to an Englishman; to one who, like herself, is
French by birth. And speaking of Gaspard (ah, poor Gaspard! It was cruel,
cruel!), it is a curious thing that she is going to marry the nephew of
Monsieur the Marquis, for whom Gaspard was exalted to that height of so many
feet; in other words, the present Marquis. But he lives unknown in England, he
is no Marquis there; he is Mr. Charles Darnay. D'Aulnais is the name of his
mother's family."
Madame Defarge knitted
steadily, but the intelligence had a palpable effect upon her husband. Do what
he would, behind the little counter, as to the striking of a light and the
lighting of his pipe, he was troubled, and his hand was not trustworthy. The
spy would have been no spy if he had failed to see it, or to record it in his
mind.
Having made, at least,
this one hit, whatever it might prove to be worth, and no customers coming in
to help him to any other, Mr. Barsad paid for what he had drunk, and took his
leave: taking occasion to say, in a genteel manner, before he departed, that he
looked forward to the pleasure of seeing Monsieur and Madame Defarge again. For
some minutes after he had emerged into the outer presence of Saint Antoine, the
husband and wife remained exactly as he had left them, lest he should come
back.
"Can it be
true," said Defarge, in a low voice, looking down at his wife as he stood
smoking with his hand on the back of her chair: "what he has said of
Ma'amselle Manette?"
"As he has said
it," returned madame, lifting her eyebrows a little, "it is probably
false. But it may be true."
"If it is --"
Defarge began, and stopped.
"If it is?"
repeated his wife.
"-- And if it does
come, while we live to see it triumph -- I hope, for her sake, Destiny will
keep her husband out of France."
"Her husband's
destiny," said Madame Defarge, with her usual composure, "will take
him where he is to go, and will lead him to the end that is to end him. That is
all I know."
"But it is very
strange -- now, at least, is it not very strange" -- said Defarge, rather
pleading with his wife to induce her to admit it, "that, after all our
sympathy for Monsieur her father, and herself, her husband's name should be
proscribed under your hand at this moment, by the side of that infernal dog's
who has just left us?"
"Stranger things
than that will happen when it does come," answered madame. "I have
them both here, of a certainty; and they are both here for their merits; that
is enough."
She roiled up her
knitting when she had said those words, and presently took the rose out of the
handkerchief that was wound about her head. Either Saint Antoine had an
instinctive sense that the objectionable decoration was gone, or Saint Antoine
was on the watch for its disappearance; howbeit, the Saint took courage to
lounge in, very shortly afterwards, and the wine-shop recovered its habitual
aspect.
In the evening, at
which season of all others Saint Antoine turned himself inside out, and sat on
door-steps and window-ledges, and came to the corners of vile streets and
courts, for a breath of air, Madame Defarge with her work in her hand was
accustomed to pass from place to place and from group to group: a Missionary --
there were many like her -- such as the world will do well never to breed
again. All the women knitted. They knitted worthless things; but, the
mechanical work was a mechanical substitute for eating and drinking; the hands
moved for the jaws and the digestive apparatus: if the bony fingers had been
still, the stomachs would have been more famine-pinched.
But, as the fingers
went, the eyes went, and the thoughts. And as Madame Defarge moved on from
group to group, all three went quicker and fiercer among every little knot of
women that she had spoken with, and left behind.
Her husband smoked at
his door, looking after her with admiration. "A great woman," said
he, "a strong woman, a grand woman, a frightfully grand woman!"
Darkness closed around,
and then came the ringing of church bells and the distant beating of the
military drums in the Palace Courtyard, as the women sat knitting, knitting.
Darkness encompassed them. Another darkness was closing in as surely, when the
church bells, then ringing pleasantly in many an airy steeple over France,
should be melted into thundering cannon; when the military drums should be
beating to drown a wretched voice, that night all potent as the voice of Power
and Plenty, Freedom and Life. So much was closing in about the women who sat
knitting, knitting, that they their very selves were closing in around a
structure yet unbuilt, where they were to sit knitting, knitting, counting
dropping heads.
NEVER DID the sun go
down with a brighter glory on the quiet corner in Soho, than one memorable
evening when the Doctor and his daughter sat under the plane-tree together.
Never did the moon rise with a reader radiance over great London, than on that
night when it found them still seated under the tree, and shone upon their
faces through its leaves.
Lucie was to be married
to-morrow. She had reserved this last evening for her father, and they sat
alone under the plane-tree.
"You are happy, my
dear father?"
"Quite, my
child."
They had said little,
though they had been there a long time. When it was yet light enough to work
and read, she had neither engaged herself in her usual work, nor had she read
to him. She had employed herself in both ways, at his side under the tree, many
and many a time; but, this time was not quite like any other, and nothing could
make it so.
"And I am very
happy to-night, dear father. I am deeply happy in the love that Heaven has so
blessed -- my love for Charles, and Charles's love for me. But, if my life were
not to be still consecrated to you, or if my marriage were so arranged as that
it would part us, even by the length of a few of these streets, I should be
more unhappy and self- reproachful now than I can tell you. Even as it is
--"
Even as it was, she
could not command her voice.
In the sad moonlight,
she clasped him by the neck, and laid her face upon his breast. In the
moonlight which is always sad, as the light of the sun itself is -- as the
light called human life is -- at its coming and its going.
"Dearest dear! Can
you tell me, this last time, that you feel quite, quite sure, no new affections
of mine, and no new duties of mine, will ever interpose between us? I know it
well, but do you know it? In your own heart, do you feel quite certain?"
Her father answered,
with a cheerful firmness of conviction he could scarcely have assumed,
"Quite sure, my darling! More than that," he added, as he tenderly
kissed her: "my future is far brighter, Lucie, seen through your marriage,
than it could have been -- nay, than it ever was -- without it."
"If I could hope
that, my father! --"
"Believe it, love!
Indeed it is so. Consider how natural and how plain it is, my dear, that it
should be so. You, devoted and young, cannot fully appreciate the anxiety I
have felt that your life should not be wasted --"
She moved her hand
towards his lips, but he took it in his, and repeated the word.
"-- wasted, my
child -- should not be wasted, struck aside from the natural order of things --
for my sake. Your unselfishness cannot entirely comprehend how much my mind has
gone on this; but, only ask yourself, how could my happiness be perfect, while
yours was incomplete?"
"If I had never
seen Charles, my father, I should have been quite happy with you."
He smiled at her
unconscious admission that she would have been unhappy without Charles, having
seen him; and replied:
"My child, you did
see him, and it is Charles. If it had not been Charles, it would have been
another. Or, if it had been no other, I should have been the cause, and then
the dark part of my life would have cast its shadow beyond myself, and would
have fallen on you."
It was the first time,
except at the trial, of her ever hearing him refer to the period of his
suffering. It gave her a strange and new sensation while his words were in her
ears; and she remembered it long afterwards.
"See!" said
the Doctor of Beauvais, raising his hand towards the moon. "I have looked
at her from my prison-window, when I could not bear her light. I have looked at
her when it has been such torture to me to think of her shining upon what I had
lost, that I have beaten my head against my prison-walls. I have looked at her,
in a state so dun and lethargic, that I have thought of nothing but the number
of horizontal lines I could draw across her at the full, and the number of
perpendicular lines with which I could intersect them." He added in his
inward and pondering manner, as he looked at the moon, "It was twenty
either way, I remember, and the twentieth was difficult to squeeze in."
The strange thrill with
which she heard him go back to that time, deepened as he dwelt upon it; but,
there was nothing to shock her in the manner of his reference. He only seemed
to contrast his present cheerfulness and felicity with the dire endurance that
was over.
"I have looked at
her, speculating thousands of times upon the unborn child from whom I had been
rent. Whether it was alive. Whether it had been born alive, or the poor
mother's shock had killed it. Whether it was a son who would some day avenge
his father. (There was a time in my imprisonment, when my desire for vengeance
was unbearable.) Whether it was a son who would never know his father's story;
who might even live to weigh the possibility of his father's having disappeared
of his own will and act. Whether it was a daughter who would grow to be a
woman."
She drew closer to him,
and kissed his cheek and his hand.
"I have pictured
my daughter, to myself, as perfectly forgetful of me -- rather, altogether ignorant
of me, and unconscious of me. I have cast up the years of her age, year after
year. I have seen her married to a man who knew nothing of my fate. I have
altogether perished from the remembrance of the living, and in the next
generation my place was a blank."
"My father! Even
to hear that you had such thoughts of a daughter who never existed, strikes to
my heart as if I had been that child."
"You, Lucie? It is
out of the Consolation and restoration you have brought to me, that these
remembrances arise, and pass between us and the moon on this last night. --
What did I say just now?"
"She knew nothing
of you. She cared nothing for you."
"So! But on other
moonlight nights, when the sadness and the silence have touched me in a
different way -- have affected me with something as like a sorrowful sense of
peace, as any emotion that had pain for its foundations could -- I have
imagined her as coming to me in my cell, and leading me out into the freedom
beyond the fortress. I have seen her image in the moonlight often, as I now see
you; except that I never held her in my arms; it stood between the little
grated window and the door. But, you understand that that was not the child I
am speaking of?"
"The figure was
not; the -- the -- image; the fancy?"
"No. That was
another thing. It stood before my disturbed sense of sight, but it never moved.
The phantom that my mind pursued, was another and more real child. Of her
outward appearance I know no more than that she was like her mother. The other
had that likeness too -- as you have -- but was not the same. Can you follow
me, Lucie? Hardly, I think? I doubt you must have been a solitary prisoner to
understand these perplexed distinctions."
His collected and calm
manner could not prevent her blood from running cold, as he thus tried to
anatomise his old condition.
"In that more
peaceful state, I have imagined her, in the moonlight, coming to me and taking
me out to show me that the home of her married life was full of her loving
remembrance of her lost father. My picture was in her room, and I was in her
prayers. Her life was active, cheerful, useful; but my poor history pervaded it
all."
"I was that child,
my father, I was not half so good, but in my love that was l."
"And she showed me
her children," said the Doctor of Beauvais, "and they had heard of
me, and had been taught to pity me. When they passed a prison of the State,
they kept far from its frowning walls, and looked up at its bars, and spoke in
whispers. She could never deliver me; I imagined that she always brought me
back after showing me such things. But then, blessed with the relief of tears,
I fell upon my knees, and blessed her."
"I am that child,
I hope, my father. O my dear, my dear, will you bless me as fervently
to-morrow?"
"Lucie, I recall
these old troubles in the reason that I have to-night for loving you better
than words can tell, and thanking God for my great happiness. My thoughts, when
they were wildest, never rose near the happiness that I have known with you,
and that we have before us."
He embraced her,
solemnly commended her to Heaven, and humbly thanked Heaven for having bestowed
her on him. By-and-bye, they went into the house.
There was no one bidden
to the marriage but Mr. Lorry; there was even to be no bridesmaid but the gaunt
Miss Pross. The marriage was to make no change in their place of residence;
they had been able to extend it, by taking to themselves the upper rooms
formerly belonging to the apocryphal invisible lodger, and they desired nothing
more.
Doctor Manette was very
cheerful at the little supper. They were only three at table, and Miss Pross
made the third. He regretted that Charles was not there; was more than half
disposed to object to the loving little plot that kept him away; and drank to
him affectionately.
So, the time came for
him to bid Lucie good night, and they separated. But, in the stillness of the
third hour of the morning, Lucie came down- stairs again, and stole into his
room; not free from unshaped fears, beforehand.
All things, however,
were in their places; all was quiet; and he lay asleep, his white hair
picturesque on the untroubled pillow, and his hands lying quiet on the
coverlet. She put her needless candle in the shadow at a distance, crept up to
his bed, and put her lips to his; then, leaned over him, and looked at him.
Into his handsome face,
the bitter waters of captivity had worn; but, he covered up their tracks with a
determination so strong, that he held the mastery of them even in his sleep. A
more remarkable face in its quiet, resolute, and guarded struggle with an
unseen assailant, was not to be beheld in all the wide dominions of sleep, that
night.
She timidly laid her
hand on his dear breast, and put up a prayer that she might ever be as true to
him as her love aspired to be, and as his sorrows deserved. Then, she withdrew
her hand, and kissed his lips once more, and went away. So, the sunrise came,
and the shadows of the leaves of the plane-tree moved upon his face, as softly
as her lips had moved in praying for him.
THE MARRIAGE-DAY was
shining brightly, and they were ready outside the closed door of the Doctor's
room, where he was speaking with Charles Darnay. They were ready to go to
church; the beautiful bride, Mr. Lorry, and Miss Pross -- to whom the event,
through a gradual process of reconcilement to the inevitable, would have been
one of absolute bliss, but for the yet lingering consideration that her brother
Solomon should have been the bridegroom.
"And so,"
said Mr. Lorry, who could not sufficiently admire the bride, and who had been
moving round her to take in every point of her quiet, pretty dress; "and
so it was for this, my sweet Lucie, that I brought you across the Channel, such
a baby' Lord bless me' How little I thought what I was doing! How lightly I
valued the obligation I was conferring on my friend Mr. Charles!"
"You didn't mean
it," remarked the matter-of-fact Miss Pross, "and therefore how could
you know it? Nonsense!"
"Really? Well; but
don't cry," said the gentle Mr. Lorry.
"I am not
crying," said Miss Pross; "you are."
"I, my
Pross?" (By this time, Mr. Lorry dared to be pleasant with her, on
occasion.)
"You were, just
now; I saw you do it, and I don't wonder at it. Such a present of plate as you
have made 'em, is enough to bring tears into anybody's eyes. There's not a fork
or a spoon m the collection," said Miss Pross, "that I didn't cry
over, last night after the box came, till I couldn't see it."
"I am highly
gratified," said Mr. Lorry, "though, upon my honour, I had no
intention of rendering those trifling articles of remembrance invisible to any
one. Dear me! This is an occasion that makes a man speculate on all he has
lost. Dear, dear, dear! To think that there might have been a Mrs. Lorry, any
time these fifty years almost!"
"Not at all!"
From Miss Pross.
"You think there
never might have been a Mrs. Lorry?" asked the gentleman of that name.
"Pooh!"
rejoined Miss Pross; "you were a bachelor in your cradle."
"Well!" observed
Mr. Lorry, beamingly adjusting his little wig, "that seems probable,
too."
"And you were cut
out for a bachelor," pursued Miss Pross, "before you were put in your
cradle."
"Then, I
think," said Mr. Lorry, "that I was very unhandsomely dealt with, and
that I ought to have had a voice in the selection of my pattern. Enough! Now,
my dear Lucie," drawing his arm soothingly round her waist, "I hear
them moving in the next room, and Miss Pross and I, as two formal folks of
business, are anxious not to lose the final opportunity of saying something to
you that you wish to hear. You leave your good father, my dear, in hands as
earnest and as loving as your own; he shall be taken every conceivable care of;
during the next fortnight, while you are in Warwickshire and thereabouts, even
Tellson's shall go to the wall (comparatively speaking) before him. And when,
at the fortnight's end, he comes to join you and your beloved husband, on your
other fortnight's trip in Wales, you shall say that we have sent him to you in
the best health and in the happiest frame. Now, I hear Somebody's step coming
to the door. Let me kiss my dear girl with an old-fashioned bachelor blessing,
before Somebody comes to claim his own."
For a moment, he held
the fair face from him to look at the well- remembered expression on the
forehead, and then laid the bright golden hair against his little brown wig,
with a genuine tenderness and delicacy which, if such things be old-fashioned,
were as old as Adam.
The door of the
Doctor's room opened, and he came out with Charles Darnay. He was so deadly
pale -- which had not been the case when they went in together -- that no
vestige of colour was to be seen in his face. But, in the composure of his
manner he was unaltered, except that to the shrewd glance of Mr. Lorry it
disclosed some shadowy indication that the old air of avoidance and dread had
lately passed over him, like a cold wind.
He gave his arm to his
daughter, and took her down-stairs to the chariot which Mr. Lorry had hired in
honour of the day. The rest followed in another carriage, and soon, in a
neighbouring church, where no strange eyes looked on, Charles Darnay and Lucie Manette
were happily married.
Besides the glancing
tears that shone among the smiles of the little group when it was done, some
diamonds, very bright and sparkling, glanced on the bride's hand, which were
newly released from the dark obscurity of one of Mr. Lorry's pockets. They
returned home to breakfast, and all went well, and in due course the golden
hair that had mingled with the poor shoemaker's white locks in the Paris
garret, were mingled with them again in the morning sunlight, on the threshold
of the door at parting.
It was a hard parting,
though it was not for long. But her father cheered her, and said at last,
gently disengaging himself from her enfolding arms, "Take her, Charles!
She is yours!"
And her agitated hand
waved to them from a chaise window, and she was gone.
The corner being out of
the way of the idle and curious, and the preparations having been very simple
and few, the Doctor, Mr. Lorry, and Miss Pross, were left quite alone. It was
when they turned into the welcome shade of the cool old hall, that Mr. Lorry
observed a great change to have come over the Doctor; as if the golden arm
uplifted there, had struck him a poisoned blow.
He had naturally
repressed much, and some revulsion might have been expected in him when the
occasion for repression was gone. But, it was the old scared lost look that
troubled Mr. Lorry; and through his absent manner of clasping his head and
drearily wandering away into his own room when they got up-stairs, Mr. Lorry
was reminded of Defarge the wine-shop keeper, and the starlight ride.
"I think," he
whispered to Miss Pross, after anxious consideration, "I think we had best
not speak to him just now, or at all disturb him. I must look in at Tellson's;
so I will go there at once and come back presently. Then, we will take him a
ride into the country, and dine there, and all will be well. "
It was easier for Mr.
Lorry to look in at Tellson's, than to look out of Tellson's. He was detained
two hours. When he came back, he ascended the old staircase alone, having asked
no question of the servant; going thus into the Doctor's rooms, he was stopped
by a low sound of knocking.
"Good God!"
he said, with a start. "What's that?"
Miss Pross, with a
terrified face, was at his ear. "O me, O me! All is lost!" cried she,
wringing her hands. "What is to be told to Ladybird? He doesn't know me,
and is making shoes!"
Mr. Lorry said what he
could to calm her, and went himself into the Doctor's room. The bench was
turned towards the light, as it had been when he had seen the shoemaker at his
work before, and his head was bent down, and he was very busy.
"Doctor Manette.
My dear friend, Doctor Manette!"
The Doctor looked at
him for a moment -- half inquiringly, half as if he were angry at being spoken
to -- and bent over his work again.
He had laid aside his
coat and waistcoat; his shirt was open at the throat, as it used to be when he
did that work; and even the old haggard, faded surface of face had come back to
him. He worked hard -- impatiently -- as if in some sense of having been
interrupted.
Mr. Lorry glanced at
the work in his hand, and observed that it was a shoe of the old size and
shape. He took up another that was lying by him, and asked what it was.
"A young lady's
walking shoe," he muttered, without looking up. "It ought to have
been finished long ago. Let it be."
"But, Doctor
Manette. Look at me!"
He obeyed, in the old
mechanically submissive manner, without pausing in his work.
"You know me, my
dear friend? Think again. This is not your proper occupation. Think, dear
friend!"
Nothing would induce
him to speak more. He looked up, for an instant at a time, when he was
requested to do so; but, no persuasion would extract a word from him. He
worked, and worked, and worked, in silence, and words fell on him as they would
have fallen on an echo- less wall, or on the air. The only ray of hope that Mr.
Lorry could discover, was, that he sometimes furtively looked up without being
asked. In that, there seemed a faint expression of curiosity or perplexity --
as though he were trying to reconcile some doubts in his mind.
Two things at once
impressed themselves on Mr. Lorry, as important above all others; the first,
that this must be kept secret from Lucie; the second, that it must be kept
secret from all who knew him. In conjunction with Miss Pross, he took immediate
steps towards the latter precaution, by giving out that the Doctor was not
well, and required a few days of complete rest. In aid of the kind deception to
be practised on his daughter, Miss Pross was to write, describing his having
been called away professionally, and referring to an imaginary letter of two or
three hurried lines in his own hand, represented to have been addressed to her
by the same post.
These measures,
advisable to be taken in any case, Mr. Lorry took in the hope of his coming to
himself. If that should happen soon, he kept another course in reserve; which
was, to have a certain opinion that he thought the best, on the Doctor's case.
In the hope of his
recovery, and of resort to this third course being thereby rendered
practicable, Mr. Lorry resolved to watch him attentively, with as little
appearance as possible of doing so. He therefore made arrangements to absent
himself from Tellson's for the first time in his life, and took his post by the
window in the same room.
He was not long in
discovering that it was worse than useless to speak to him, since, on being
pressed, he became worried. He abandoned that attempt on the first day, and
resolved merely to keep himself always before him, as a silent protest against
the delusion into which he had fallen, or was failing. He remained, therefore,
in his seat near the window, reading and writing, and expressing in as many
pleasant and natural ways as he could think of, that it was a free place.
Doctor Manette took
what was given him to eat and drink, and worked on, that first day, until it
was too dark to see -- worked on, half an hour after Mr. Lorry could not have
seen, for his life, to read or write. When he put his tools aside as useless,
until morning, Mr. Lorry rose and said to him:
"Will you go
out?"
He looked down at the
floor on either side of him in the old manner, looked up in the old manner, and
repeated in the old low voice: clout?"
"Yes; for a walk
with me. Why not?"
He made no effort to
say why not, and said not a word more. But, Mr. Lorry thought he saw, as he
leaned forward on his bench in the dusk, with his elbows on his knees and his
head in his hands, that he was in some misty way asking himself, "Why
not?" The sagacity of the man of business perceived an advantage here, and
determined to hold it.
Miss Pross and he
divided the night into two watches, and observed him at intervals from the
adjoining room. He paced up and down for a long time before he lay down; but,
when he did finally lay himself down, he fell asleep. In the morning, he was up
betimes, and went straight to his bench and to work.
On this second day, Mr.
Lorry saluted him cheerfully by his name, and spoke to him on topics that had
been of late familiar to them. He returned no reply, but it was evident that he
heard what was said, and that he thought about it, however confusedly. This
encouraged Mr. Lorry to have Miss Pross in with her work, several times during
the day; at those times, they quietly spoke of Lucie, and of her father then
present, precisely in the usual manner, and as if there were nothing amiss.
This was done without any demonstrative accompaniment, not long enough, or
often enough to harass him; and it lightened Mr. Lorry's friendly heart to
believe that he looked up oftener, and that he appeared to be stirred by some perception
of inconsistencies surrounding him.
When it fell dark
again, Mr. Lorry asked him as before:
"Dear Doctor, will
you go out?"
As before, he repeated,
"Out?"
"Yes; for a walk
with me. Why not?"
This time, Mr. Lorry
feigned to go out when he could extract no answer from him, and, after
remaining absent for an hour, returned. In the meanwhile, the Doctor had
removed to the seat in the window, and had sat there looking down at the
plane-tree; but, on Mr. Lorry's return, be slipped away to his bench.
The time went very
slowly on, and Mr. Lorry's hope darkened, and his heart grew heavier again, and
grew yet heavier and heavier every day. The third day came and went, the
fourth, the fifth. Five days, six days, seven days, eight days, nine days.
With a hope ever
darkening, and with a heart always growing heavier and heavier, Mr. Lorry
passed through this anxious time. The secret was well kept, and Lucie was
unconscious and happy; but he could not fail to observe that the shoemaker,
whose hand had been a little out at first, was growing dreadfully skilful, and
that he had never been so intent on his work, and that his hands had never been
so nimble and expert, as in the dusk of the ninth evening.
WORN OUT by anxious
watching, Mr. Lorry fell asleep at his post. On the tenth morning of his
suspense, he was startled by the shining of the sun into the room where a heavy
slumber had overtaken him when it was dark night.
He rubbed his eyes and
roused himself; but he doubted, when he had done so, whether he was not still
asleep. For, going to the door of the Doctor's room and looking in, he
perceived that the shoemaker's bench and tools were put aside again, and that
the Doctor himself sat reading at the window. He was in his usual morning
dress, and his face (which Mr. Lorry could distinctly see), though still very
pale, was calmly studious and attentive.
Even when he had
satisfied himself that he was awake, Mr. Lorry felt giddily uncertain for some
few moments whether the late shoemaking might not be a disturbed dream of his
own; for, did not his eyes show him his friend before him in his accustomed
clothing and aspect, and employed as usual; and was there any sign within their
range, that the change of which he had so strong an impression had actually
happened?
It was but the inquiry
of his first confusion and astonishment, the answer being obvious. If the
impression were not produced by a real corresponding and sufficient cause, how
came he, Jarvis Lorry, there? How came he to have fallen asleep, in his
clothes, on the sofa in Doctor Manette's consulting-room, and to be debating
these points outside the Doctor's bedroom door in the early morning?
Within a few minutes,
Miss Pross stood whispering at his side. If he had had any particle of doubt
left, her talk would of necessity have resolved it; but he was by that time
clear-headed, and had none. He advised that they should let the time go by
until the regular breakfast-hour, and should then meet the Doctor as if nothing
unusual had occurred. If he appeared to be in his customary state of mind, Mr.
Lorry would then cautiously proceed to seek direction and guidance from the
opinion he had been, in his anxiety, so anxious to obtain.
Miss Pross, submitting
herself to his judgment, the scheme was worked out with care. Having abundance
of time for his usual methodical toilette, Mr. Lorry presented himself at the
breakfast-hour in his usual white linen, and with his usual neat leg. The
Doctor was summoned in the usual way, and came to breakfast.
So far as it was
possible to comprehend him without overstepping those delicate and gradual
approaches which Mr. Lorry felt to be the only safe advance, he at first
supposed that his daughter's marriage had taken place yesterday. An incidental
allusion, purposely thrown out, to the day of the week, and the day of the
month, set him thinking and counting, and evidently made him uneasy. In all
other respects, however, he was so composedly himself, that Mr. Lorry
determined to have the aid he sought. And that aid was his own.
Therefore, when the
breakfast was done and cleared away, and he and the Doctor were left together,
Mr. Lorry said, feelingly:
"My dear Manette,
I am anxious to have your opinion, in confidence, on a very curious case in
which I am deeply interested; that is to say, it is very curious to me;
perhaps, to your better information it may be less so."
Glancing at his hands,
which were discoloured by his late work, the Doctor looked troubled, and
listened attentively. He had already glanced at his hands more than once.
"Doctor
Manette," said Mr. Lorry, touching him affectionately on the arm,
"the case is the case of a particularly dear friend of mine. Pray give
your mind to it, and advise me well for his sake -- and above all, for his
daughter's -- his daughter's, my dear Manette."
"If I
understand," said the Doctor, in a subdued tone, "some mental shock
-- ?"
"Yes!"
"Be
explicit," said the Doctor. "Spare no detail."
Mr. Lorry saw that they
understood one another, and proceeded.
"My dear Manette,
it is the case of an old and a prolonged shock, of great acuteness and severity
to the affections, the feelings, the -- the -- as you express it -- the mind.
The mind. It is the case of a shock under which the sufferer was borne down,
one cannot say for how long, because I believe he cannot calculate the time
himself, and there are no other means of getting at it. It is the case of a
shock from which the sufferer recovered, by a process that he cannot trace
himself -- as I once heard him publicly relate in a striking manner. It is the
case of a shock from which he has recovered, so completely, as to be a highly
intelligent man, capable of close application of mind, and great exertion of
body, and of constantly making fresh additions to his stock of knowledge, which
was already very large. But, unfortunately, there has been," he paused and
took a deep breath -- "a slight relapse."
The Doctor, in a low
voice, asked, "Of how long duration?"
"Nine days and
nights."
"How did it show
itself? I infer," glancing at his hands again, "in the resumption of
some old pursuit connected with the shock?"
"That is the
fact."
"Now, did you ever
see him," asked the Doctor, distinctly and collectedly, though in the same
low voice, "engaged in that pursuit originally?"
"Once."
"And when the
relapse fell on him, was he in most respects -- or in all respects -- as he was
then?"
"I think in all
respects."
"You spoke of his
daughter. Does his daughter know of the relapse?"
"No. It has been
kept from her, and I hope will always be kept from her. It is known only to
myself, and to one other who may be trusted."
The Doctor grasped his
band, and murmured, "That was very kind. That was very thoughtful!"
Mr. Lorry grasped his hand in return, and neither of the two spoke for a little
while.
"Now, my dear
Manette," said Mr. Lorry, at length, in his most considerate and most
affectionate way, "I am a mere man of business, and unfit to cope with
such intricate and difficult matters. I do not possess the kind of information
necessary; I do not possess the kind of intelligence; I want guiding. There is
no man in this world on whom I could so rely for right guidance, as on you.
Tell me, how does this relapse come about? Is there danger of another? Could a
repetition of it be prevented? How should a repetition of it be treated? How
does it come about at all? What can I do for my friend? No man ever can have
been more desirous in his heart to serve a friend, than I am to serve mine, if
I knew how. But I don't know how to originate, in such a case. If your
sagacity, knowledge, and experience, could put me on the right track, I might
be able to do so much; unenlightened and undirected, I can do so little. Pray
discuss it with me; pray enable me to see it a little more clearly, and teach
me how to be a little more useful."
Doctor Manette sat
meditating after these earnest words were spoken, and Mr. Lorry did not press
him.
"I think it
probable," said the Doctor, breaking silence with an effort, "that
the relapse you have described, my dear friend, was not quite unforeseen by its
subject."
"Was it dreaded by
him?" Mr. Lorry ventured to ask.
"Very much."
He said it with an involuntary shudder.
"You have no idea
how such an apprehension weighs on the sufferer's mind, and how difficult --
how almost impossible -- it is, for him to force himself to utter a word upon
the topic that oppresses him."
"Would he,"
asked Mr. Lorry, "be sensibly relieved if he could prevail upon himself to
impart that secret brooding to any one, when it is on him?"
"I think so. But
it is, as I have told you, next to impossible. I even believe it -- in some
cases -- to be quite impossible."
"Now," said
Mr. Lorry, gently laying his hand on the Doctor's arm again, after a short
silence on both sides, "to what would you refer this attack? "
"I believe,"
returned Doctor Manette, "that there had been a strong and extraordinary
revival of the train of thought and remembrance that was the first cause of the
malady. Some intense associations of a most distressing nature were vividly
recalled, I think. It is probable that there had long been a dread lurking in
his mind, that those associations would be recalled -- say, under certain
circumstances -- say, on a particular occasion. He tried to prepare himself in
vain; perhaps the effort to prepare himself made him less able to bear
it."
"Would he remember
what took place in the relapse?" asked Mr. Lorry, with natural hesitation.
The Doctor looked
desolately round the room, shook his head, and answered, in a low voice,
"Not at all."
"Now, as to the
future," hinted Mr. Lorry.
"As to the
future," said the Doctor, recovering firmness, "I should have great
hope. As it pleased Heaven in its mercy to restore him so soon, I should have
great hope. He, yielding under the pressure of a complicated something, long
dreaded and long vaguely foreseen and contended against, and recovering after
the cloud had burst and passed, I should hope that the worst was over."
"Well, well! That's
good comfort. I am thankful!" said Mr. Lorry.
"I am
thankful!" repeated the Doctor, bending his head with reverence.
"There are two
other points," said Mr. Lorry, "on which I am anxious to be
instructed. I may go on?"
"You cannot do
your friend a better service." The Doctor gave him his hand.
"To the first,
then. He is of a studious habit, and unusually energetic; he applies himself
with great ardour to the acquisition of professional knowledge, to the
conducting of experiments, to many things. Now, does he do too much?"
"I think not. It
may be the character of his mind, to be always in singular need of occupation.
That may be, in part, natural to it; in part, the result of affliction. The
less it was occupied with healthy things, the more it would be in danger of
turning in the unhealthy direction. He may have observed himself, and made the
discovery."
"You are sure that
he is not under too great a strain?"
"I think I am
quite sure of it."
"My dear Manette,
if he were overworked now --"
"My dear Lorry, I
doubt if that could easily be. There has been a violent stress in one
direction, and it needs a counterweight."
"Excuse me, as a
persistent man of business. Assuming for a moment, that he was overworked; it
would show itself in some renewal of this disorder?"
"I do not think
so. I do not think," said Doctor Manette with the firmness of
self-conviction, "that anything but the one train of association would
renew it. I think that, henceforth, nothing but some extraordinary jarring of
that chord could renew it. After what has happened, and after his recovery, I
find it difficult to imagine any such violent sounding of that string again. I
trust, and I almost believe, that the circumstances likely to renew it are
exhausted."
He spoke with the
diffidence of a man who knew how slight a thing would overset the delicate
organisation of the mind, and yet with the confidence of a man who had slowly
won his assurance out of personal endurance and distress. It was not for his
friend to abate that confidence. He professed himself more relieved and
encouraged than he really was, and approached his second and last point. He
felt it to be the most difficult of all; but, remembering his old Sunday
morning conversation with Miss Pross, and remembering what he had seen in the
last nine days, he knew that he must face it.
"The occupation
resumed under the influence of this passing affliction so happily recovered
from," said Mr. Lorry, clearing his throat, "we will call --
Blacksmith's work, Blacksmith's work. We will say, to put a case and for the
sake of illustration, that he had been used, in his bad time, to work at a
little forge. We will say that he was unexpectedly found at his forge again. Is
it not a pity that he should keep it by him?"
The Doctor shaded his
forehead with his hand, and beat his foot nervously on the ground.
"He has always
kept it by him," said Mr. Lorry, with an anxious look at his friend.
"Now, would it not be better that he should let it go?"
Still, the Doctor, with
shaded forehead, beat his foot nervously on the ground.
"You do not find
it easy to advise me?" said Mr. Lorry. "I quite understand it to be a
nice question. And yet I think --" And there he shook his head, and
stopped.
"You see,"
said Doctor Manette, turning to him after an uneasy pause, "it is very
hard to explain, consistently, the innermost workings of this poor man's mind.
He once yearned so frightfully for that occupation, and it was so welcome when
it came; no doubt it relieved his pain so much, by substituting the perplexity
of the fingers for the perplexity of the brain, and by substituting, as he
became more practised, the ingenuity of the hands, for the ingenuity of the
mental torture; that he has never been able to bear the thought of putting it
quite out of his reach. Even now, when I believe he is more hopeful of himself
than he has ever been, and even speaks of himself with a kind of confidence,
the idea that he might need that old employment, and not find it, gives him a
sudden sense of terror, like that which one may fancy strikes to the heart of a
lost child."
He looked like his
illustration, as he raised his eyes to Mr. Lorry's face.
"But may not --
mind! I ask for information, as a plodding man of business who only deals with
such material objects as guineas, shillings, and bank-notes -- may not the
retention of the thing involve the retention of the idea? If the thing were
gone, my dear Manette, might not the fear go with it? In short, is it not a
concession to the misgiving, to keep the forge?"
There was another
silence.
"You see, too,"
said the Doctor, tremulously, "it is such an old companion."
"I would not keep
it," said Mr. Lorry, shaking his head; for he gained in firmness as he saw
the Doctor disquieted. "I would recommend him to sacrifice it. I only want
your authority. I am sure it does no good. Come! Give me your authority, like a
dear good man. For his daughter's sake, my dear Manette!"
Very strange to see
what a struggle there was within him!
"In her name,
then, let it be done; I sanction it. But, I would not take it away while he was
present. Let it be removed when he is not there; let him miss his old companion
after an absence."
Mr. Lorry readily
engaged for that, and the conference was ended. They passed the day in the
country, and the Doctor was quite restored. On the three following days he
remained perfectly well, and on the fourteenth day he went away to join Lucie
and her husband. The precaution that had been taken to account for his silence,
Mr. Lorry had previously explained to him, and he had written to Lucie in
accordance with it, and she had no suspicions.
On the night of the day
on which he left the house, Mr. Lorry went into his room with a chopper, saw,
chisel, and hammer, attended by Miss Pross carrying a light. There, with closed
doors, and in a mysterious and guilty manner, Mr. Lorry hacked the shoemaker's
bench to pieces, while Miss Pross held the candle as if she were assisting at a
murder -- for which, indeed, in her grimness, she was no unsuitable figure. The
burning of the body (previously reduced to pieces convenient for the purpose)
was commenced without delay in the kitchen fire; and the tools, shoes, and
leather, were buried in the garden. So wicked do destruction and secrecy appear
to honest minds, that Mr. Lorry and Miss Pross, while engaged in the commission
of their deed and in the removal of its traces, almost felt, and almost looked,
like accomplices in a horrible crime.
WHEN the newly-married
pair came home, the first person who appeared, to offer his congratulations,
was Sydney Carton. They had not been at home many hours, when he presented
himself. He was not improved in habits, or in looks, or in manner; but there
was a certain rugged air of fidelity about him, which was new to the
observation of Charles Darnay.
He watched his
opportunity of taking Darnay aside into a window, and of speaking to him when
no one overheard.
"Mr. Darnay,"
said Carton, "I wish we might be friends."
"We are already
friends, I hope."
"You are good
enough to say so, as a fashion of speech; but, I don't mean any fashion of
speech. Indeed, when I say I wish we might be friends, I scarcely mean quite
that, either."
Charles Darnay -- as
was natural -- asked him, in all good-humour and good-fellowship, what he did
mean?
"Upon my
life," said Carton, smiling, "I find that easier to comprehend in my
own mind, than to convey to yours. However, let me try. You remember a certain
famous occasion when I was more drunk than -- than usual?"
"I remember a
certain famous occasion when you forced me to confess that you had been
drinking."
"I remember it
too. The curse of those occasions is heavy upon me, for I always remember them.
I hope it may be taken into account one day, when all days are at an end for
me! Don't be alarmed; I am not going to preach."
"I am not at all
alarmed. Earnestness in you, is anything but alarming to me."
"Ah!" said
Carton, with a careless wave of his hand, as if he waved that away. "On
the drunken occasion in question (one of a large number, as you know), I was
insufferable about liking you, and not liking you. I wish you would forget
it."
"I forgot it long
ago."
"Fashion of speech
again! But, Mr. Darnay, oblivion is not so easy to me, as you represent it to
be to you. I have by no means forgotten it, and a light answer does not help me
to forget it."
"If it was a light
answer," returned Darnay, "I beg your forgiveness for it. I had no
other object than to turn a slight thing, which, to my surprise, seems to trouble
you too much, aside. I declare to you, on the faith of a gentleman, that I have
long dismissed it from my mind. Good Heaven, what was there to dismiss! Have I
had nothing more important to remember, in the great service you rendered me
that day?"
"As to the great
service," said Carton, "I am bound to avow to you, when you speak of
it in that way, that it was mere professional claptrap, I don't know that I
cared what became of you, when I rendered it. -- Mind! I say when I rendered
it; I am speaking of the past."
"You make light of
the obligation," returned Darnay, "but I will not quarrel with your
light answer."
"Genuine truth,
Mr. Darnay, trust me! I have gone aside from my purpose; I was speaking about
our being friends. Now, you know me; you know I am incapable of all the higher
and better flights of men. If you doubt it, ask Stryver, and he'll tell you
so."
"I prefer to form
my own opinion, without the aid of his."
"Well! At any rate
you know me as a dissolute dog, who has never done any good, and never
will."
"I don't know that
you 'never will.'"
"But I do, and you
must take my word for it. Well! If you could endure to have such a worthless
fellow, and a fellow of such indifferent reputation, coming and going at odd
times, I should ask that I might be permitted to come and go as a privileged
person here; that I might be regarded as an useless (and I would add, if it
were not for the resemblance I detected between you and me, an unornamental)
piece of furniture, tolerated for its old service, and taken no notice of. I
doubt if I should abuse the permission. It is a hundred to one if I should
avail myself of it four times in a year. It would satisfy me, I dare say, to
know that I had it."
"Will you
try?"
"That is another
way of saying that I am placed on the footing I have indicated. I thank you,
Darnay. I may use that freedom with your name?"
"I think so,
Carton, by this time."
They shook hands upon
it, and Sydney turned away. Within a minute afterwards, he was, to all outward
appearance, as unsubstantial as ever.
When he was gone, and
in the course of an evening passed with Miss Pross, the Doctor, and Mr. Lorry,
Charles Darnay made some mention of this conversation in general terms, and
spoke of Sydney Carton as a problem of carelessness and recklessness. He spoke
of him, in short, not bitterly or meaning to bear hard upon him, but as anybody
might who saw him as he showed himself.
He had no idea that
this could dwell in the thoughts of his fair young wife; but, when he afterwards
joined her in their own rooms, he found her waiting for him with the old pretty
lifting of the forehead strongly marked.
"We are thoughtful
to-night!" said Darnay, drawing his arm about her.
"Yes, dearest
Charles," with her hands on his breast, and the inquiring and attentive
expression fixed upon him; "we are rather thoughtful to- night, for we
have something on our mind to-night."
"What is it, my
Lucie?"
"Will you promise
not to press one question on me, if I beg you not to ask it?"
"Will I promise?
What will I not promise to my Love?"
What, indeed, with his
hand putting aside the golden hair from the cheek, and his other hand against
the heart that beat for him!
"I think, Charles,
poor Mr. Carton deserves more consideration and respect than you expressed for
him to-night."
"Indeed, my own?
Why so?"
"That is what you
are not to ask me. But I think -- I know -- he does."
"If you know it,
it is enough. N"at would you have me do, my Life?"
"I would ask you,
dearest, to be very generous with him always, and very lenient on his faults
when he is not by. I would ask you to believe that he has a heart he very, very
seldom reveals, and that there are deep wounds in it. My dear, I have seen it
bleeding."
"It is a painful
reflection to me," said Charles Darnay, quite astounded, "that I
should have done him any wrong. I never thought this of him."
"My husband, it is
so. I fear he is not to be reclaimed; there is scarcely a hope that anything in
his character or fortunes is reparable now. But, I am sure that he is capable
of good things, gentle things, even magnanimous things."
She looked so beautiful
in the purity of her faith in this lost man, that her husband could have looked
at her as she was for hours.
"And, O my dearest
Love!" she urged, clinging nearer to him, laying her head upon his breast,
and raising her eyes to his, "remember how strong we are in our happiness,
and how weak he is in his misery!"
The supplication
touched him home. "I will always remember it, dear Heart! I will remember
it as long as I live."
He bent over the golden
head, and put the rosy lips to his, and folded her in his arms. If one forlorn
wanderer then pacing the dark streets, could have heard her innocent
disclosure, and could have seen the drops of pity kissed away by her husband
from the soft blue eyes so loving of that husband, he might have cried to the
night -- and the words would not have parted from his lips for the first time
--
"God bless her for
her sweet compassion!"
A WONDERFUL CORNER for
echoes, it has been remarked, that corner where the Doctor lived. Ever busily
winding the golden thread which bound her husband, and her father, and herself,
and her old directress and companion, in a life of quiet bliss, Lucie sat in
the still house in the tranquilly resounding corner, listening to the echoing
footsteps of years.
At first, there were
times, though she was a perfectly happy young wife, when her work would slowly
fall from her hands, and her eyes would be dimmed. For, there was something
coming in the echoes, something light, afar off, and scarcely audible yet, that
stirred her heart too much. Fluttering hopes and doubts -- hopes, of a love as yet
unknown to her: doubts, of her remaining upon earth, to enjoy that new delight
-- divided her breast. Among the echoes then, there would arise the sound of
footsteps at her own early grave; and thoughts of the husband who would be left
so desolate, and who would mourn for her so much, swelled to her eyes, and
broke like waves.
That time passed, and
her little Lucie lay on her bosom. Then, among the advancing echoes, there was
the tread of her tiny feet and the sound of her prattling words. Let greater echoes
resound as they would, the young mother at the cradle side could always hear
those coming. They came, and the shady house was sunny with a child's laugh,
and the Divine friend of children, to whom in her trouble she had confided
hers, seemed to take her child in his arms, as He took the child of old, and
made it a sacred joy to her.
Ever busily winding the
golden thread that bound them all together, weaving the service of her happy
influence through the tissue of all their lives, and making it predominate
nowhere, Lucie heard in the echoes of years none but friendly and soothing
sounds. Her husband's step was strong and prosperous among them; her father's
firm and equal. Lo, Miss Pross, in harness of string, awakening the echoes, as
an unruly charger, whip-corrected, snorting and pawing the earth under the
plane-tree in the garden!
Even when there were
sounds of sorrow among the rest, they were not harsh nor cruel. Even when
golden hair, like her own, lay in a halo on a pillow round the worn face of a
little boy, and he said, with a radiant smile, "Dear papa and mamma, I am
very sorry to leave you both, and to leave my pretty sister; but I am called,
and I must go!" those were not tears all of agony that wetted his young
mother's cheek, as the spirit departed from her embrace that had been entrusted
to it. Suffer them and forbid them not. They see my Father's face. O Father,
blessed words!
Thus, the rustling of
an Angel's wings got blended with the other echoes, and they were not wholly of
earth, but had in them that breath of Heaven. Sighs of the winds that blew over
a little garden-tomb were mingled with them also, and both were audible to
Lucie, in a hushed murmur -- like the breathing of a summer sea asleep upon a
sandy shore -- as the little Lucie, comically studious at the task of the
morning, or dressing a doll at her mother's footstool, chattered in the tongues
of the Two Cities that were blended in her life.
The Echoes rarely
answered to the actual tread of Sydney Carton. Some half-dozen times a year, at
most, he claimed his privilege of coming in uninvited, and would sit among them
through the evening, as he had once done often. He never came there heated with
wine. And one other thing regarding him was whispered in the echoes, which has been
whispered by all true echoes for ages and ages.
No man ever really
loved a woman, lost her, and knew her with a blameless though an unchanged
mind, when she was a wife and a mother, but her children had a strange sympathy
with him -- an instinctive delicacy of pity for him. What fine hidden
sensibilities are touched in such a case, no echoes tell; but it is so, and it
was so here. Carton was the first stranger to whom little Lucie held out her
chubby arms, and he kept his place with her as she grew. The little boy had
spoken of him, almost at the last. "Poor Carton! Kiss him for me!"
Mr. Stryver shouldered
his way through the law, like some great engine forcing itself through turbid
water, and dragged his useful friend in his wake, like a boat towed astern. As
the boat so favoured is usually in a rough plight, and mostly under water, so,
Sydney had a swamped life of it. But, easy and strong custom, unhappily so much
easier and stronger in him than any stimulating sense of desert or disgrace,
made it the life he was to lead; and he no more thought of emerging from his
state of lion's jackal, than any real jackal may be supposed to think of rising
to be a lion. Stryver was rich; had married a florid widow with property and
three boys, who had nothing particularly shining about them but the straight
hair of their dumpling heads.
These three young
gentlemen, Mr. Stryver, exuding patronage of the most offensive quality from
every pore, had walked before him like three sheep to the quiet corner in Soho,
and had offered as pupils to Lucie's husband: delicately saying "Halloa!
here are three lumps of bread-and- cheese towards your matrimonial picnic,
Darnay!" The polite rejection of the three lumps of bread-and-cheese had
quite bloated Mr. Stryver with indignation, which he afterwards turned to
account in the training of the young gentlemen, by directing them to beware of
the pride of Beggars, like that tutor-fellow. He was also in the habit of
declaiming to Mrs. Stryver, over his full-bodied wine, on the arts Mrs. Darnay
had once put in practice to "catch" him, and on the
diamond-cut-diamond arts in himself, madam, which had rendered him "not to
be caught." Some of his King's Bench familiars, who were occasionally
parties to the full-bodied wine and the lie, excused him for the latter by
saying that he had told it so often, that he believed it himself -- which is
surely such an incorrigible aggravation of an originally bad offence, as to
justify any such offender's being carried off to some suitably retired spot,
and there hanged out of the way.
These were among the
echoes to which Lucie, sometimes pensive, sometimes amused and laughing,
listened in the echoing corner, until her little daughter was six years old.
How near to her heart the echoes of her child's tread came, and those of her
own dear father's, always active and self-possessed, and those of her dear
husband's, need not be told. Nor, how the lightest echo of their united home,
directed by herself with such a wise and elegant thrift that it was more abundant
than any waste, was music to her. Nor, how there were echoes all about her,
sweet in her ears, of the many times her father had told her that he found her
more devoted to him married (if that could be) than single, and of the many
times her husband had said to her that no cares and duties seemed to divide her
love for him or her help to him, and asked her "What is the magic secret,
my darling, of your being everything to all of us, as if there were only one of
us, yet never seeming to be hurried, or to have too much to do?"
But, there were other
echoes, from a distance, that rumbled menacingly in the corner all through this
space of time. And it was now, about little Lucie's sixth birthday, that they
began to have an awful sound, as of a great storm in France with a dreadful sea
rising.
On a night in mid-July,
one thousand seven hundred and eighty-nine, Mr. Lorry came in late, from
Tellson's, and sat himself down by Lucie and her husband in the dark window. It
was a hot, wild night, and they were all three reminded of the old Sunday night
when they had looked at the lightning from the same place.
"I began to
think," said Mr. Lorry, pushing his brown wig back, "that I should
have to pass the night at Tellson's. We have been so full of business all day,
that we have not known what to do first, or which way to turn. There is such an
uneasiness in Paris, that we have actually a run of confidence upon us! Our
customers over there, seem not to be able to confide their property to us fast
enough. There is positively a mania among some of them for sending it to
England."
"That has a bad
look," said Darnay --
"A bad look, you
say, my dear Darnay? Yes, but we don't know what reason there is in it. People
are so unreasonable! Some of us at Tellson's are getting old, and we really
can't be troubled out of the ordinary course without due occasion."
"Still," said
Darnay, "you know how gloomy and threatening the sky is."
"I know that, to
be sure," assented Mr. Lorry, trying to persuade himself that his sweet
temper was soured, and that he grumbled, "but I am determined to be
peevish after my long day's botheration. Where is Manette?"
"Here he is,"
said the Doctor, entering the dark room at the moment.
"I am quite glad
you are at home; for these hurries and forebodings by which I have been
surrounded all day long, have made me nervous without reason. You are not going
out, I hope?"
"No; I am going to
play backgammon with you, if you like," said the Doctor.
"I don't think I
do like, if I may speak my mind. I am not fit to be pitted against you
to-night. Is the teaboard still there, Lucie? I can't see."
"Of course, it has
been kept for you."
"Thank ye, my
dear. The precious child is safe in bed?"
"And sleeping
soundly."
"That's right; all
safe and well! I don't know why anything should be otherwise than safe and well
here, thank God; but I have been so put out all day, and I am not as young as I
was! My tea, my dear! Thank ye. Now, come and take your place in the circle,
and let us sit quiet, and hear the echoes about which you have your
theory."
"Not a theory; it
was a fancy."
"A fancy, then, my
wise pet," said Mr. Lorry, patting her hand. "They are very numerous
and very loud, though, are they not? Only hear them!"
Headlong, mad, and
dangerous footsteps to force their way into anybody's life, footsteps not
easily made clean again if once stained red, the footsteps raging in Saint
Antoine afar off, as the little circle sat in the dark London window.
Saint Antoine had been,
that morning, a vast dusky mass of scarecrows heaving to and fro, with frequent
gleams of light above the billowy heads, where steel blades and bayonets shone
in the sun. A tremendous roar arose from the throat of Saint Antoine, and a
forest of naked arms struggled in the air like shrivelled branches of trees in
a winter wind: all the fingers convulsively clutching at every weapon or
semblance of a weapon that was thrown up from the depths below, no matter how
far off.
Who gave them out,
whence they last came, where they began, through what agency they crookedly
quivered and jerked, scores at a time, over the heads of the crowd, like a kind
of lightning, no eye in the throng could have told; but, muskets were being
distributed -- so were cartridges, powder, and ball, bars of iron and wood,
knives, axes, pikes, every weapon that distracted ingenuity could discover or
devise. People who could lay hold of nothing else, set themselves with bleeding
hands to force stones and bricks out of their places in walls. Every pulse and
heart in Saint Antoine was on high-fever strain and at high-fever heat. Every
living creature there held life as of no account, and was demented with a
passionate readiness to sacrifice it.
As a whirlpool of
boiling waters has a centre point, so, all this raging circled round Defarge's
wine-shop, and every human drop in the caldron had a tendency to be sucked
towards the vortex where Defarge himself, already begrimed with gunpowder and
sweat, issued orders, issued arms, thrust this man back, dragged this man
forward, disarmed one to arm another, laboured and strove in the thickest of
the uproar.
"Keep near to me,
Jacques Three," cried Defarge; "and do you, Jacques One and Two,
separate and put yourselves at the head of as many of these patriots as you
can. Where is my wife?"
"Eh, well! Here
you see me!" said madame, composed as ever, but not knitting to-day.
Madame's resolute right hand was occupied with an axe, in place of the usual
softer implements, and in her girdle were a pistol and a cruel knife.
"Where do you go,
my wife?"
"I go," said
madame, "with you at present. You shall see me at the head of women,
by-and-bye."
"Come, then!"
cried Defarge, in a resounding voice. "Patriots and friends, we are ready!
The Bastille!"
With a roar that
sounded as if all the breath in France had been shaped into the detested word,
the living sea rose, wave on wave, depth on depth, and overflowed the city to
that point. Alarm-bells ringing, drums beating, the sea raging and thundering
on its new beach, the attack began.
Deep ditches, double
drawbridge, massive stone walls, eight great towers, cannon, muskets, fire and
smoke. Through the fire and through the smoke -- in the fire and in the smoke,
for the sea cast him up against a cannon, and on the instant he became a
cannonier -- Defarge of the wine- shop worked like a manful soldier, Two fierce
hours.
Deep ditch, single
drawbridge, massive stone walls, eight great towers, cannon, muskets, fire and
smoke. One drawbridge down! "Work, comrades all, work! Work, Jacques One,
Jacques Two, Jacques One Thousand, Jacques Two Thousand, Jacques
Five-and-Twenty Thousand; in the name of all the Angels or the Devils -- which
you prefer -- work!" Thus Defarge of the wine-shop, still at his gun,
which had long gown hot.
"To me,
women!" cried madame his wife. "What! We can kill as well as the men
when the place is taken!" And to her, with a shrill thirsty cry, trooping
women variously armed, but all armed age in hunger and revenge.
Cannon, muskets, fire
and smoke; but, still the deep ditch, the single drawbridge, the massive stone
wails, and the eight great towers. Slight displacements of the raging sea, made
by the falling wounded. Flashing weapons, blazing torches, smoking waggonloads
of wet straw, hard work at neighbouring barricades in all directions, shrieks,
volleys, execrations, bravery without stint, boom smash and rattle, and the
furious sounding of the living sea; but, still the deep ditch, and the single
drawbridge, and the massive stone walls, and the eight great towers, and still
Defarge of the wine-shop at his gun, grown doubly hot by the service of Four
fierce hours.
A white flag from
within the fortress, and a parley -- this dimly perceptible through the raging
storm, nothing audible in it -- suddenly the sea rose immeasurably wider and
higher, and swept Defarge of the wine-shop over the lowered drawbridge, past
the massive stone outer walls, in among the eight great towers surrendered!
So resistless was the
force of the ocean bearing him on, that even to draw his breath or turn his
head was as impracticable as if he had been struggling in the surf at the South
Sea, until he was landed in the outer courtyard of the Bastille. There, against
an angle of a wall, he made a struggle to look about him. Jacques Three was
nearly at his side; Madame Defarge, still heading some of her women, was
visible in the inner distance, and her knife was in her hand. Everywhere was
tumult, exultation, deafening and maniacal bewilderment, astounding noise, yet
furious dumb-show.
"The
Prisoners!"
"The
Records!"
"The secret
cells!"
"The instruments of
torture!"
"The
Prisoners!"
Of all these cries, and
ten thousand incoherences, "The Prisoners!" was the cry most taken up
by the sea that rushed in, as if there were an eternity of people, as well as
of time and space. When the foremost billows rolled past, bearing the prison
officers with them, and threatening them all with instant death if any secret
nook remained undisclosed, Defarge laid his strong hand on the breast of one of
these men -- a man with a grey head, who had a lighted torch in his hand --
separated him from the rest, and got him between himself and the wall.
"Show me the North
Tower!" said Defarge. "Quick!"
"I will
faithfully," replied the man, "if you will come with me. But there is
no one there."
"What is the
meaning of One Hundred and Five, North Tower?" asked Defarge.
"Quick!"
"The meaning,
monsieur?"
"Does it mean a
captive, or a place of captivity? Or do you mean that I shall strike you
dead?"
"Kill him!"
croaked Jacques Three, who had come close up.
"Monsieur, it is a
cell."
"Show it me!"
"Pass this way,
then."
Jacques Three, with his
usual craving on him, and evidently disappointed by the dialogue taking a turn
that did not seem to promise bloodshed, held by Defarge's arm as he held by the
turnkey's. Their three heads had been close together during this brief
discourse, and it had been as much as they could do to hear one another, even
then: so tremendous was the noise of the living ocean, in its irruption into
the Fortress, and its inundation of the courts and passages and staircases. All
around outside, too, it beat the walls with a deep, hoarse roar, from which,
occasionally, some partial shouts of tumult broke and leaped into the air like
spray.
Through gloomy vaults
where the light of day had never shone, past hideous doors of dark dens and
cages, down cavernous flights of steps, and again up steep rugged ascents of
stone and brick, more like dry waterfalls than staircases, Defarge, the
turnkey, and Jacques Three, linked hand and arm, went with all the speed they
could make. Here and there, especially at first, the inundation started on them
and swept by; but when they had done descending, and were winding and climbing
up a tower, they were alone. Hemmed in here by the massive thickness of walls
and arches, the storm within the fortress and without was only audible to them
in a dull, subdued way, as if the noise out of which they had come had almost
destroyed their sense of hearing.
The turnkey stopped at
a low door, put a key in a clashing lock, swung the door slowly open, and said,
as they all bent their heads and passed in:
"One hundred and
five, North Tower!"
There was a small,
heavily-grated, unglazed window high in the wall, with a stone screen before
it, so that the sky could be only seen by stooping low and looking up. There
was a small chimney, heavily barred across, a few feet within. There was a heap
of old feathery wood-ashes on the hearth. There was a stool, and table, and a
straw bed. There were the four blackened walls, and a rusted iron ring in one
of them.
"Pass that torch
slowly along these walls, that I may see them," said Defarge to the
turnkey.
The man obeyed, and
Defarge followed the light closely with his eyes.
"Stop! -- Look
here, Jacques!"
"A. M.!"
croaked Jacques Three, as he read greedily.
"Alexandre
Manette," said Defarge in his ear, following the letters with his swart
forefinger, deeply engrained with gunpowder. "And here he wrote 'a poor
physician.' And it was he, without doubt, who scratched a calendar on this
stone. What is that in your hand? A crowbar? Give it me!"
He had still the
linstock of his gun in his own hand. He made a sudden exchange of the two
instruments, and turning on the worm-eaten stool and table, beat them to pieces
in a few blows.
"Hold the light
higher!" he said, wrathfully, to the turnkey. "Look among those
fragments with care, Jacques. And see! Here is my knife," throwing it to
him; "rip open that bed, and search the straw. Hold the light higher,
you!"
With a menacing look at
the turnkey he crawled upon the hearth, and, peering up the chimney, struck and
prised at its sides with the crowbar, and worked at the iron grating across it.
In a few minutes, some mortar and dust came dropping down, which he averted his
face to avoid; and in it, and in the old wood-ashes, and in a crevice in the
chimney into which his weapon had slipped or wrought itself, he groped with a
cautious touch.
"Nothing in the
wood, and nothing in the straw, Jacques?"
"Nothing."
"Let us collect
them together, in the middle of the cell. So! Light them, you!"
The turnkey fired the
little pile, which blazed high and hot. Stooping again to come out at the
low-arched door, they left it burning, and retraced their way to the courtyard;
seeming to recover their sense of hearing as they came down, until they were in
the raging flood once more.
They found it surging
and tossing, in quest of Defarge himself. Saint Antoine was clamorous to have
its wine-shop keeper foremost in the guard upon the governor who had defended
the Bastille and shot the people. Otherwise, the governor would not be marched
to the Hotel de Ville for judgment. Otherwise, the governor would escape, and
the people's blood (suddenly of some value, after many years of worthlessness)
be unavenged.
In the howling universe
of passion and contention that seemed to encompass this grim old officer
conspicuous in his grey coat and red decoration, there was but one quite steady
figure, and that was a woman's. "See, there is my husband!" she
cried, pointing him out. "See Defarge!" She stood immovable close to
the grain old officer, and remained immovable close to him; remained immovable
close to him through the streets, as Defarge and the rest bore him along; remained
immovable close to him when he was got near his destination, and began to be
struck at from behind; remained immovable close to him when the long-gathering
rain of stabs and blows fell heavy; was so close to him when he dropped dead
under it, that, suddenly animated, she put her foot upon his neck, and with her
cruel knife -- long ready -- hewed off his head.
The hour was come, when
Saint Antoine was to execute his horrible idea of hoisting up men for lamps to
show what he could be and do. Saint Antoine's blood was up, and the blood of
tyranny and domination by the iron hand was down -- down on the steps of the
Hotel de Ville where the governor's body lay -- down on the sole of the shoe of
Madame Defarge where she had trodden on the body to steady it for mutilation.
"Lower the lamp yonder!" cried Saint Antoine, after glaring round for
a new means of death; "here is one of his soldiers to be left on
guard!" The swinging sentinel was posted, and the sea rushed on.
The sea of black and
threatening waters, and of destructive upheaving of wave against wave, whose
depths were yet unfathomed and whose forces were yet unknown. The remorseless
sea of turbulently swaying shapes, voices of vengeance, and faces hardened in
the furnaces of suffering until the touch of pity could make no mark on them.
But, in the ocean of
faces where every fierce and furious expression was in vivid life, there were
two groups of faces -- each seven in number -- so fixedly contrasting with the
rest, that never did sea roll which bore more memorable wrecks with it. Seven
faces of prisoners, suddenly released by the storm that had burst their tomb,
were carried high overhead: all scared, all lost, all wondering and amazed, as
if the Last Day were come, and those who rejoiced around them were lost spirits.
Other seven faces there were, carried higher, seven dead faces, whose drooping
eyelids and half-seen eyes awaited the Last Day. Impassive faces, yet with a
suspended -- not an abolished -- expression on them; faces, rather, in a
fearful pause, as having yet to raise the dropped lids of the eyes, and bear
witness with the bloodless lips, "THOU DIDST IT!"
Seven prisoners
released, seven gory heads on pikes, the keys of the accursed fortress of the
eight strong towers, some discovered letters and other memorials of prisoners
of old time, long dead of broken hearts, -- such, and such-like, the loudly
echoing footsteps of Saint Antoine escort through the Paris streets in
mid-July, one thousand seven hundred and eighty-nine. Now, Heaven defeat the
fancy of Lucie Darnay, and keep these feet far out of her life! For, they are
headlong, mad, and dangerous; and in the years so long after the breaking of
the cask at Defarge's wine-shop door, they are not easily purified when once
stained red.
HAGGARD SAINT ANTOINE
had had only one exultant week, in which to soften his modicum of hard and
bitter bread to such extent as he could, with the relish of fraternal embraces
and congratulations, when Madame Defarge sat at her counter, as usual, presiding
over the customers. Madame Defarge wore no rose in her head, for the great
brotherhood of Spies had become, even in one short week, extremely chary of
trusting themselves to the saint's mercies. The lamps across his streets had a
portentously elastic swing with them.
Madame Defarge, with
her arms folded, sat in the morning light and heat, contemplating the wine-shop
and the street. In both, there were several knots of loungers, squalid and
miserable, but now with a manifest sense of power enthroned on their distress.
The raggedest nightcap, awry on the wretchedest head, had this crooked
significance in it: "I know how hard it has grown for me, the wearer of
this, to support life in myself; but do you know how easy it has grown for me,
the wearer of this, to destroy life in you?" Every lean bare arm, that bad
been without work before, had this work always ready for it now, that it could
strike. The fingers of the knitting women were vicious, with the experience
that they could tear. There was a change in the appearance of Saint Antoine;
the image had been hammering into this for hundreds of years, and the last
finishing blows had told mightily on the expression.
Madame Defarge sat
observing it, with such suppressed approval as was to be desired in the leader
of the Saint Antoine women. One of her sisterhood knitted beside her. The
short, rather plump wife of a starved grocer, and the mother of two children
withal, this lieutenant had already earned the complimentary name of The
Vengeance.
"Hark!" said The
Vengeance. "Listen, then! Who comes?"
As if a train of powder
laid from the outermost bound of Saint Antoine Quarter to the wine-shop door,
had been suddenly fired, a fast-spreading murmur came rushing along.
"It is
Defarge," said madame. "Silence, patriots!"
Defarge came in
breathless, pulled off a red cap he wore, and looked around him! "Listen,
everywhere!" said madame again. "Listen to him!" Defarge stood,
panting, against a background of eager eyes and open mouths, formed outside the
door; all those within the wine-shop had sprung to their feet.
"Say then, my
husband. What is it?"
"News from the
other world!"
"How, then?"
cried madame, contemptuously. "The other world?"
"Does everybody
here recall old Foulon, who told the famished people that they might eat grass,
and who died, and went to Hell?"
"Everybody!"
from all throats.
"The news is of
him. He is among us!"
"Among us!"
from the universal throat again. "And dead?"
"Not dead! He
feared us so much -- and with reason -- that he caused himself to be
represented as dead, and had a grand mock-funeral. But they have found him
alive, hiding in the country, and have brought him in. I have seen him but now,
on his way to the Hotel de Ville, a prisoner. I have said that he had reason to
fear us. Say all! Had he reason?"
Wretched old sinner of
more than threescore years and ten, if he had never known it yet, he would have
known it in his heart of hearts if he could have heard the answering cry.
A moment of profound
silence followed. Defarge and his wife looked steadfastly at one another. The
Vengeance stooped, and the jar of a drum was heard as she moved it at her feet
behind the counter.
"Patriots!"
said Defarge, in a determined voice, "are we ready?"
Instantly Madame
Defarge's knife was in her girdle; the drum was beating in the streets, as if
it and a drummer had flown together by magic; and The Vengeance, uttering
terrific shrieks, and flinging her arms about her head like all the forty Furies
at once, was tearing from house to house, rousing the women.
The men were terrible,
in the bloody-minded anger with which they looked from windows, caught up what
arms they had, and came pouring down into the streets; but, the women were a
sight to chill the boldest. >From such household occupations as their bare
poverty yielded, from their children, from their aged and their sick crouching
on the bare ground famished and naked, they ran out with streaming hair, urging
one another, and themselves, to madness with the wildest cries and actions.
Villain Foulon taken, my sister! Old Foulon taken, my mother! Miscreant Foulon
taken, my daughter! Then, a score of others ran into the midst of these,
beating their breasts, tearing their hair, and screaming, Foulon alive! Foulon
who told the starving people they might eat grass! Foulon who told my old
father that he might eat grass, when I had no bread to give him! Foulon who
told my baby it might suck grass, when these breasts where dry with want! O
mother of God, this Foulon! O Heaven our suffering! Hear me, my dead baby and
my withered father: I swear on my knees, on these stones, to avenge you on
Foulon! Husbands, and brothers, and young men, Give us the blood of Foulon,
Give us the head of Foulon, Give us the heart of Foulon, Give us the body and
soul of Foulon, Rend Foulon to pieces, and dig him into the ground, that grass
may grow from him! With these cries, numbers of the women, lashed into blind
frenzy, whirled about, striking and tearing at their own friends until they
dropped into a passionate swoon, and were only saved by the men belonging to
them from being trampled under foot.
Nevertheless, not a
moment was lost; not a moment! This Foulon was at the Hotel de Ville, and might
be loosed. Never, if Saint Antoine knew his own sufferings, insults, and
wrongs! Armed men and women flocked out of the Quarter so fast, and drew even
these last dregs after them with such a force of suction, that within a quarter
of an hour there was not a human creature in Saint Antoine's bosom but a few
old crones and the wailing children.
No. They were all by
that time choking the Hall of Examination where this old man, ugly and wicked,
was, and overflowing into the adjacent open space and streets. The Defarges,
husband and wife, The Vengeance, and Jacques Three, were in the first press,
and at no great distance from him in the Hall.
"See!" cried
madame, pointing with her knife. "See the old villain bound with ropes.
That was well done to tie a bunch of grass upon his back. Ha, ha! That was well
done. Let him eat it now!" Madame put her knife under her arm, and clapped
her hands as at a play.
The people immediately
behind Madame Defarge, explaining the cause of her satisfaction to those behind
them, and those again explaining to others, and those to others, the
neighbouring streets resounded with the clapping of hands. Similarly, during
two or three hours of drawl, and the winnowing of many bushels of words, Madame
Defarge's frequent expressions of impatience were taken up, with marvellous
quickness, at a distance: the more readily, because certain men who had by some
wonderful exercise of agility climbed up the external architecture to look in
from the windows, knew Madame Defarge well, and acted as a telegraph between her
and the crowd outside the building.
At length the sun rose
so high that it struck a kindly ray as of hope or protection, directly down
upon the old prisoner's head. The favour was too much to bear; in an instant
the barrier of dust and chaff that had stood surprisingly long, went to the
winds, and Saint Antoine had got him!
It was known directly,
to the furthest confines of the crowd. Defarge had but sprung over a railing
and a table, and folded the miserable wretch in a deadly embrace -- Madame
Defarge had but followed and turned her hand in one of the ropes with which he
was tied -- The Vengeance and Jacques Three were not yet up with them, and the
men at the windows had not yet swooped into the Hall, like birds of prey from
their high perches -- when the cry seemed to go up, all over the city,
"Bring him out! Bring him to the lamp!"
Down, and up, and head
foremost on the steps of the building; now, on his knees; now, on his feet;
now, on his back; dragged, and struck at, and stifled by the bunches of grass
and straw that were thrust into his face by hundreds of hands; tom, bruised,
panting, bleeding, yet always entreating and beseeching for mercy; now full of
vehement agony of action, with a small clear space about him as the people drew
one another back that they might see; now, a log of dead wood drawn through a
forest of legs; he was hauled to the nearest street corner where one of the
fatal lamps swung, and there Madame Defarge let him go -- as a cat might have
done to a mouse -- and silently and composedly looked at him while they made
ready, and while he besought her: the women passionately screeching at him all
the time, and the men sternly calling out to have him killed with grass in his
mouth. Once, he went aloft, and the rope broke, and they caught him shrieking;
twice, he went aloft, and the rope broke, and they caught him shrieking; then,
the rope was merciful, and held him, and his head was soon upon a pike, with
grass enough in the mouth for all Saint Antoine to dance at the sight of.
Nor was this the end of
the day's bad work, for Saint Antoine so shouted and danced his angry blood up,
that it boiled again, on hearing when the day closed in that the son-in-law of
the despatched, another of the people's enemies and insulters, was coming into
Paris under a guard five hundred strong, in cavalry alone. Saint Antoine wrote
his crimes on flaring sheets of paper, seized him -- would have torn him out of
the breast of an army to bear Foulon company -- set his head and heart on
pikes, and carried the three spoils of the day, in Wolf-procession through the
streets.
Not before dark night
did the men and women come back to the children, wailing and breadless. Then,
the miserable bakers' shops were beset by long files of them, patiently waiting
to buy bad bread; and while they waited with stomachs faint and empty, they
beguiled the time by embracing one another on the triumphs of the day, and
achieving them again in gossip. Gradually, these strings of ragged people
shortened and frayed away; and then poor lights began to shine in high windows,
and slender fires were made in the streets, at which neighbours cooked in
common, afterwards supping at their doors.
Scanty and insufficient
suppers those, and innocent of meat, as of most other sauce to wretched bread.
Yet, human fellowship infused some nourishment into the flinty viands, and
struck some sparks of cheerfulness out of them. Fathers and mothers who had had
their full share in the worst of the day, played gently with their meagre
children; and lovers, with such a world around them and before them, loved and
hoped.
It was almost morning,
when Defarge's wine-shop parted with its last knot of customers, and Monsieur
Defarge said to madame his wife, in husky tones, while fastening the door:
"At last it is
come, my dear!"
"Eh well!"
returned madame. "Almost."
Saint Antoine slept,
the Defarges slept: even The Vengeance slept with her starved grocer, and the
drum was at rest. The drum's was the only voice in Saint Antoine that blood and
hurry had not changed. The Vengeance, as custodian of the drum, could have
wakened him up and had the same speech out of him as before the Bastille fell,
or old Foulon was seized; not so with the hoarse tones of the men and women in
Saint Antoine's bosom.
THERE WAS a change on
the village where the fountain fell, and where the mender of roads went forth
daily to hammer out of the stones on the highway such morsels of bread as might
serve for patches to hold his poor ignorant soul and his poor reduced body
together. The prison on the crag was not so dominant as of yore; there were
soldiers to guard it, but not many; there were officers to guard the soldiers,
but not one of them knew what his men would do -- beyond this: that it would
probably not be what he was ordered.
Far and wide lay a
ruined country, yielding nothing but desolation. Every green leaf, every blade
of grass and blade of grain, was as shrivelled and poor as the miserable
people. Everything was bowed down, dejected, oppressed, and broken. Habitations,
fences, domesticated animals, men, women, children, and the soil that bore them
-- all worn out.
Monseigneur (often a
most worthy individual gentleman) was a national blessing, gave a chivalrous
tone to things, was a polite example of luxurious and shining fife, and a great
deal more to equal purpose; nevertheless, Monseigneur as a class had, somehow
or other, brought things to this. Strange that Creation, designed expressly for
Monseigneur, should be so soon wrung dry and squeezed out! There must be
something short- sighted in the eternal arrangements, surely! Thus it was,
however; and the last drop of blood having been extracted from the flints, and
the last screw of the rack having been turned so often that its purchase
crumbled, and it now turned and turned with nothing to bite, Monseigneur began
to run away from a phenomenon so low and unaccountable.
But, this was not the
change on the village, and on many a village like it. For scores of years gone
by, Monseigneur had squeezed it and wrung it, and had seldom graced it with his
presence except for the pleasures of the chase -- now, found in hunting the
people; now, found in hunting the beasts, for whose preservation Monseigneur
made edifying spaces of barbarous and barren wilderness. No. The change
consisted in the appearance of strange faces of low caste, rather than in the
disappearance of the high caste, chiselled, and otherwise beautified and
beautifying features of Monseigneur.
For, in these times, as
the mender of roads worked, solitary, in the dust, not often troubling himself
to reflect that dust he was and to dust he must return, being for the most part
too much occupied in thinking how little he had for supper and how much more he
would eat if he bad it -- in these times, as he raised his eyes from his lonely
labour, and viewed the prospect, he would see some rough figure approaching on
foot, the like of which was once a rarity in those parts, but was now a
frequent presence. As it advanced, the mender of roads would discern without
surprise, that it was a shaggy-haired man, of almost barbarian aspect, tall, in
wooden shoes that were clumsy even to the eyes of a mender of roads, grim,
rough, swart, steeped in the mud and dust of many highways, dank with the
marshy moisture of many low grounds, sprinkled with the thorns and leaves and
moss of many byways through woods.
Such a man came upon
him, like a ghost, at noon in the July weather, as he sat on his heap of stones
under a bank, taking such shelter as he could get from a shower of had.
The man looked at him,
looked at the village in the hollow, at the mill, and at the prison on the
crag. When he had identified these objects in what benighted mind he had, he
said, in a dialect that was just intelligible:
"How goes it,
Jacques?"
"All well,
Jacques."
"Touch then!"
They joined hands, and
the man sat down on the heap of stones.
"No dinner?"
"Nothing but
supper now," said the mender of roads, with a hungry face.
"It is the
fashion," growled the man. "I meet no dinner anywhere."
He took out a blackened
pipe, filled it, lighted it with flint and steel, pulled at it until it was in
a bright glow: then, suddenly held it from him and dropped something into it
from between his finger and thumb, that blazed and went out in a puff of smoke.
"Touch then."
It was the turn of the mender of roads to say it this time, after observing
these operations. They again joined hands.
"To-night?"
said the mender of roads.
"To-night,"
said the man, putting the pipe in his mouth.
"Where?"
"Here."
He and the mender of
roads sat on the heap of stones looking silently at one another, with the hail
driving in between them like a pigmy charge of bayonets, until the sky began to
clear over the village.
"Show me!" said
the traveller then, moving to the brow of the hill.
"See!"
returned the mender of roads, with extended finger. "You go down here, and
straight through the street, and past the fountain --"
"To the Devil with
all that!" interrupted the other, rolling his eye over the landscape.
"I go through no streets and past no fountains. Well?"
"Well! About two
leagues beyond the summit of that hill above the village."
"Good. When do you
cease to work?"
"At sunset."
"Will you wake me,
before departing? I have walked two nights without resting. Let me finish my
pipe, and I shall sleep like a child. Will you wake me?"
"Surely."
The wayfarer smoked his
pipe out, put it in his breast, slipped off his great wooden shoes, and lay
down on his back on the heap of stones. He was fast asleep directly.
As the road-mender
plied his dusty labour, and the hail-clouds, rolling away, revealed bright bars
and streaks of sky which were responded to by silver gleams upon the landscape,
the little man (who wore a red cap now, in place of his blue one) seemed
fascinated by the figure on the heap of stones. His eyes were so often turned
towards it, that he used his tools mechanically, and, one would have said, to
very poor account. The bronze face, the shaggy black hair and beard, the coarse
woollen red cap, the rough medley dress of home-spun stuff and hairy skins of
beasts, the powerful frame attenuated by spare living, and the sullen and
desperate compression of the lips in sleep, inspired the mender of roads with
awe. The traveller had travelled far, and his feet were footsore, and his
ankles chafed and bleeding; his great shoes, stuffed with leaves and grass, had
been heavy to drag over the many long leagues, and his clothes were chafed into
holes, as he himself was into sores. Stooping down beside him, the road-mender
tried to get a peep at secret weapons in his breast or where not; but, in vain,
for he slept with his arms crossed upon him, and set as resolutely as his lips.
Fortified towns with their stockades, guard-houses, gates, trenches, and
drawbridges, seemed to the mender of roads, to be so much air as against this
figure. And when he lifted his eyes from it to the horizon and looked around,
he saw in his small fancy similar figures, stopped by no obstacle, tending to
centres all over France.
The man slept on,
indifferent to showers of hail and intervals of brightness, to sunshine on his
face and shadow, to the paltering lumps of dull ice on his body and the
diamonds into which the sun changed them, until the sun was low in the west,
and the sky was glowing. Then, the mender of roads having got his tools
together and all things ready to go down into the village, roused him.
"Good!" said
the sleeper, rising on his elbow. "Two leagues beyond the summit of the
hill?"
"About."
"About.
Good!"
The mender of roads
went home, with the dust going on before him according to the set of the wind,
and was soon at the fountain, squeezing himself in among the lean kine brought
there to drink, and appearing even to whisper to them in his whispering to all
the village. When the village had taken its poor supper, it did not creep to
bed, as it usually did, but came out of doors again, and remained there. A
curious contagion of whispering was upon it, and also, when it gathered
together at the fountain in the dark, another curious contagion of looking
expectantly at the sky in one direction only. Monsieur Gabelle, chief
functionary of the place, became uneasy; went out on his house-top alone, and
looked in that direction too; glanced down from behind his chimneys at the
darkening faces by the fountain below, and sent word to the sacristan who kept
the keys of the church, that there might be need to ring the tocsin by-and-bye.
The night deepened. The
trees environing the old chateau, keeping its solitary state apart, moved in a
rising wind, as though they threatened the pile of building massive and dark in
the gloom. Up the two terrace flights of steps the rain ran wildly, and beat at
the great door, like a swift messenger rousing those within; uneasy rushes of
wind went through the hall, among the old spears and knives, and passed
lamenting up the stairs, and shook the curtains of the bed where the last
Marquis had slept. East, West, North, and South, through the woods, four
heavy-treading, unkempt figures crushed the high grass and cracked the
branches, striding on cautiously to come together in the, courtyard. Four
lights broke out there, and moved away in different directions, and all was
black again.
But, not for long.
Presently, the chateau began to make itself strangely visible by some light of
its own, as though it were growing luminous. Then, a flickering streak played
behind the architecture of the front, picking out transparent places, and
showing where balustrades, arches, and windows were. Then it soared higher, and
grew broader and brighter. Soon, from a score of the great windows, flames
burst forth, and the stone faces awakened, stared out of fire.
A faint murmur arose
about the house from the few people who were left there, and there was a
saddling of a horse and riding away. There was spurring and splashing through
the darkness, and bridle was drawn in the space by the village fountain, and
the horse in a foam stood at Monsieur Gabelle's door. "Help, Gabelle!
Help, every one!" The tocsin rang impatiently, but other help (if that
were any) there was none. The mender of roads, and two hundred and fifty
particular friends, stood with folded arms at the fountain, looking at the
pillar of fire in the sky. "It must be forty feet high," said they,
grimly; and never moved.
The rider from the
chateau, and the horse in a foam, clattered away through the village, and
galloped up the stony steep, to the prison on the crag. At the gate, a group of
officers were looking at the fire; removed from them, a group of soldiers.
"Help, gentlemen-officers! The chateau is on fire; valuable objects may be
saved from the flames by timely aid! Help, help!" The officers looked towards
the soldiers who looked at the fire; gave no orders; and answered, with shrugs
and biting of lips, "It must burn."
As the rider rattled
down the hill again and through the street, the village was illuminating. The
mender of roads, and the two hundred and fifty particular friends, inspired as
one man and woman by the idea of lighting up, had darted into their houses, and
were putting candles in every dull little pane of glass. The general scarcity
of everything, occasioned candles to be borrowed in a rather peremptory manner
of Monsieur Gabelle; and in a moment of reluctance and hesitation on that
functionary's part, the mender of roads, once so submissive to authority, had
remarked that carriages were good to make bonfires with, and that post-horses
would roast.
The chateau was left to
itself to flame and burn. In the roaring and raging of the conflagration, a
red-hot wind, driving straight from the infernal regions, seemed to be blowing
the edifice away. With the rising and falling of the blaze, the stone faces
showed as if they were in torment. When great masses of stone and timber fell,
the face with the two dints in the nose became obscured: anon struggled out of
the smoke again, as if it were the face of the cruel Marquis, burning at the
stake and contending with the fire.
The chateau burned; the
nearest trees, laid hold of by the fire, scorched and shrivelled; trees at a
distance, fired by the four fierce figures, begin the blazing edifice with a
new forest of smoke. Molten lead and iron boiled in the marble basin of the
fountain; the water ran dry; the extinguisher tops of the towers vanished like
ice before the heat, and trickled down into four rugged wells of flame. Great
rents and splits branched out in the solid walls, like crystallisation; stupefied
birds wheeled about and dropped into the furnace; four fierce figures trudged
away, East, West, North, and South, along the night-enshrouded roads, guided by
the beacon they had lighted, towards their next destination. The illuminated
village had seized hold of the tocsin, and, abolishing the lawful ringer, rang
for joy.
Not only that; but the
village, light-headed with famine, fire, and bell- ringing, and bethinking
itself that Monsieur Gabelle had to do with the collection of rent and taxes --
though it was but a small instalment of taxes, and no rent at all, that Gabelle
had got in those latter days -- became impatient for an interview with him,
and, surrounding his house, summoned him to come forth for personal conference.
Whereupon, Monsieur Gabelle did heavily bar his door, and retire to hold
counsel with himself. The result of that conference was, that Gabelle again
withdrew himself to his housetop behind his stack of chimneys; this time
resolved, if his door were broken in (he was a small Southern man of
retaliative temperament), to pitch himself head foremost over the parapet, and
crush a man or two below.
Probably, Monsieur
Gabelle passed a long night up there, with the distant chateau for fire and
candle, and the beating at his door, combined with the joy-ringing, for music;
not to mention his having an ill- omened lamp slung across the road before his
posting-house gate, which the village showed a lively inclination to displace
in his favour. A trying suspense, to be passing a whole summer night on the
brink of the black ocean, ready to take that plunge into it upon which Monsieur
Gabelle had resolved! But, the friendly dawn appearing at last, and the rush-
candles of the village guttering out, the people happily dispersed, and
Monsieur Gabelle came down bringing his life with him for that while.
Within a hundred miles,
and in the light of other fires, there were other functionaries less fortunate,
that night and other nights, whom the rising sun found hanging across
once-peaceful streets, where they had been born and bred; also, there were
other villagers and townspeople less fortunate than the mender of roads and his
fellows, upon whom the functionaries and soldiery turned with success, and whom
they strung up in their turn. But, the fierce figures were steadily wending
East, West, North, and South, be that as it would; and whosoever hung, fire
burned. The altitude of the gallows that would turn to water and quench it, no
functionary, by any stretch of mathematics, was able to calculate successfully.
IN SUCH RISINGS of fire
and risings of sea -- the firm earth shaken by the rushes of an angry ocean
which had now no ebb, but was always on the flow, higher and higher, to the
terror and wonder of the beholders on the shore -- three years of tempest were
consumed. Three more birthdays of little Lucie had been woven by the golden
thread into the peaceful tissue of the life of her home.
Many a night and many a
day had its inmates listened to the echoes in the corner, with hearts that
failed them when they heard the thronging feet. For, the footsteps had become
to their minds as the footsteps of a people, tumultuous under a red flag and
with their country declared in danger, changed into wild beasts, by terrible
enchantment long persisted in.
Monseigneur, as a
class, had dissociated himself from the phenomenon of his not being
appreciated: of his being so little wanted in France, as to incur considerable
danger of receiving his dismissal from it, and this fife together. Like the
fabled rustic who raised the Devil with infinite pains, and was so terrified at
the sight of him that he could ask the Enemy no question, but immediately fled;
so, Monseigneur, after boldly reading the Lord's Prayer backwards for a great
number of years, and performing many other potent spells for compelling the
Evil One, no sooner beheld him in his terrors than he took to his noble heels.
The shining Bull's Eye
of the Court was gone, or it would have been the mark for a hurricane of
national bullets. It had never been a good eye to see with -- had long had the
mote in it of Lucifer's pride, Sardanapalus's luxury, and a mole's blindness --
but it had dropped out and was gone. The Court, from that exclusive inner
circle to its outermost rotten ring of intrigue, corruption, and dissimulation,
was an gone together. Royalty was gone; had been besieged in its Palace and
"suspended," when the last tidings came over.
The August of the year
one thousand seven hundred and ninety-two was come, and Monseigneur was by this
time scattered far and wide.
As was natural, the
head-quarters and great gathering-place of Monseigneur, in London, was
Tellson's Bank. Spirits are supposed to haunt the places where their bodies
most resorted, and Monseigneur without a guinea haunted the spot where his
guineas used to be. Moreover, it was the spot to which such French intelligence
as was most to be relied upon, came quickest. Again: Tellson's was a munificent
house, and extended great liberality to old customers who had fallen from their
high estate. Again: those nobles who had seen the coming storm in time, and
anticipating plunder or confiscation, had made provident remittances to
Tellson's, were always to be heard of there by their needy brethren. To which
it must be added that every new-comer from France reported himself and his
tidings at Tellson's, almost as a matter of course. For such variety of
reasons, Tellson's was at that time, as to French intelligence, a kind of High
Exchange; and this was so well known to the public, and the inquiries made
there were in consequence so numerous, that Tellson's sometimes wrote the
latest news out in a line or so and posted it in the Bank windows, for all who
ran through Temple Bar to read.
On a steaming, misty
afternoon, Mr. Lorry sat at his desk, and Charles Darnay stood leaning on it,
talking with him in a low voice. The penitential den once set apart for
interviews with the House, was now the news-Exchange, and was filled to
overflowing. It was within half an hour or so of the time of closing.
"But, although you
are the youngest man that ever lived," said Charles Darnay, rather
hesitating, "I must still suggest to you --"
"I understand.
That I am too old?" said Mr. Lorry.
"Unsettled
weather, a long journey, uncertain means of travelling, a disorganised country,
a city that may not be even safe for you."
"My dear
Charles," said Mr. Lorry, with cheerful confidence, "you touch some
of the reasons for my going: not for my staying away. It is safe enough for me;
nobody will care to interfere with an old fellow of hard upon fourscore when
there are so many people there much better worth interfering with. As to its
being a disorganised city, if it were not a disorganised city there would be no
occasion to send somebody from our House here to our House there, who knows the
city and the business, of old, and is in Tellson's confidence. As to the
uncertain travelling, the long journey, and the winter weather, if I were not
prepared to submit myself to a few inconveniences for the sake of Tellson's,
after all these years, who ought to be?"
"I wish I were
going myself," said Charles Darnay, somewhat restlessly, and like one
thinking aloud.
"Indeed! You are a
pretty fellow to object and advise!" exclaimed Mr. Lorry. "You wish
you were going yourself? And you a Frenchman born? You are a wise
counsellor."
"My dear Mr.
Lorry, it is because I am a Frenchman born, that the thought (which I did not
mean to utter here, however) has passed through my mind often. One cannot help
thinking, having had some sympathy for the miserable people, and having
abandoned something to them," he spoke here in his former thoughtful
manner, "that one might be listened to, and might have the power to
persuade to some restraint. Only last night, after you had left us, when I was
talking to Lucie --"
"When you were
talking to Lucie," Mr. Lorry repeated. "Yes. I wonder you are not
ashamed to mention the name of Lucie! Wishing you were going to France at this
time of day!"
"However, I am not
going," said Charles Darnay, with a smile. "It is more to the purpose
that you say you are."
"And I am, in
plain reality. The truth is, my dear Charles," Mr. Lorry glanced at the
distant House, and lowered his voice, "you can have no conception of the
difficulty with which our business is transacted, and of the peril in which our
books and papers over yonder are involved. The Lord above knows what the
compromising consequences would be to numbers of people, if some of our
documents were seized or destroyed; and they might be, at any time, you know,
for who can say that Paris is not set afire to-day, or sacked to-morrow! Now, a
judicious selection from these with the least possible delay, and the burying
of them, or otherwise getting of them out of harm's way, is within the power
(without loss of precious time) of scarcely any one but myself, if any one. And
shall I hang back, when Tellson's knows this and says this -- Tellson's, whose
bread I have eaten these sixty years -- because I am a little stiff about the
joints? Why, I am a boy, sir, to half a dozen old codgers here!"
"How I admire the
gallantry of your youthful spirit, Mr. Lorry."
"Tut! Nonsense,
sir! -- And, my dear Charles," said Mr. Lorry, glancing at the House
again, "you are to remember, that getting things out of Paris at this
present time, no matter what things, is next to an impossibility. Papers and
precious matters were this very day brought to us here (I speak in strict
confidence; it is not business-like to whisper it, even to you), by the
strangest bearers you can imagine, every one of whom had his head hanging on by
a single hair as he passed the Barriers. At another time, our parcels would
come and go, as easily as in business-like Old England; but now, everything is
stopped."
"And do you really
go to-night?"
"I really go
to-night, for the case has become too pressing to admit of delay."
"And do you take
no one with you?"
"All sorts of
people have been proposed to me, but I will have nothing to say to any of them.
I intend to take Jerry. Jerry has been my body- guard on Sunday nights for a
long time past and I am used to him. Nobody will suspect Jerry of being
anything but an English bull-dog, or of having any design in his head but to
fly at anybody who touches his master."
"I must say again
that I heartily admire your gallantry and youthfulness."
"I must say again,
nonsense, nonsense! When I have executed this little commission, I shall,
perhaps, accept Tellson's proposal to retire and live at my ease. Time enough,
then, to think about growing old."
This dialogue had taken
place at Mr. Lorry's usual desk, with Monseigneur swarming within a yard or two
of it, boastful of what he would do to avenge himself on the rascal-people
before long. It was too much the way of Monseigneur under his reverses as a
refugee, and it was much too much the way of native British orthodoxy, to talk
of this terrible Revolution as if it were the only harvest ever known under the
skies that had not been sown -- as if nothing had ever been done, or omitted to
be done, that had led to it -- as if observers of the wretched millions in
France, and of the misused and perverted resources that should have made them
prosperous, had not seen it inevitably coming, years before, and had not in
plain words recorded what they saw. Such vapouring, combined with the
extravagant plots of Monseigneur for the restoration of a state of things that
had utterly exhausted itself, and worn out Heaven and earth as well as itself,
was hard to be endured without some remonstrance by any sane man who knew the
truth. And it was such vapouring all about his ears, like a troublesome
confusion of blood in his own head, added to a latent uneasiness in his mind,
which had already made Charles Darnay restless, and which still kept him so.
Among the talkers, was
Stryver, of the King's Bench Bar, far on his way to state promotion, and,
therefore, loud on the theme: broaching to Monseigneur, his devices for blowing
the people up and exterminating them from the face of the earth, and doing
without them: and for accomplishing many similar objects akin in their nature
to the abolition of eagles by sprinkling salt on the tails of the race. Him,
Darnay heard with a particular feeling of objection; and Darnay stood divided
between going away that he might hear no more, and remaining to interpose his
word, when the thing that was to be, went on to shape itself out.
The House approached
Mr. Lorry, and laying a soiled and unopened letter before him, asked if he had
yet discovered any traces of the person to whom it was addressed? The House
laid the letter down so close to Darnay that he saw the direction -- the more
quickly because it was his own right name. The address, turned into English,
ran:
"Very pressing. To
Monsieur heretofore the Marquis St. Evrémonde, of France. Confided to the cares
of Messrs. Tellson and Co., Bankers, London, England."
On the marriage
morning, Doctor Manette bad made it his one urgent and express request to
Charles Darnay, that the secret of this name should be -- unless he, the
Doctor, dissolved the obligation -- kept inviolate between them. Nobody else knew
it to be his name; his own wife had no suspicion of the fact; Mr. Lorry could
have none.
"No," said
Mr. Lorry, in reply to the House; "I have referred it, I think, to
everybody now here, and no one can tell me where this gentleman is to be
found."
The hands of the clock
verging upon the hour of closing the Bank, there was a general set of the
current of talkers past Mr. Lorry's desk. He held the letter out inquiringly;
and Monseigneur looked at it, in the person of this plotting and indignant
refugee; and Monseigneur looked at it in the person of that plotting and
indignant refugee; and This, That, and The Other, all had something disparaging
to say, in French or in English, concerning the Marquis who was not to be
found.
"Nephew, I believe
-- but in any case degenerate successor -- of the polished Marquis who was
murdered," said one. "Happy to say, I never knew him."
"A craven who
abandoned his post," said another -- this Monseigneur had been got out of
Paris, legs uppermost and half suffocated, in a load of hay -- "some years
ago."
"Infected with the
new doctrines," said a third, eyeing the direction through his glass in
passing; "set himself in opposition to the last Marquis, abandoned the
estates when he inherited them, and left them to the ruffian herd. They will
recompense him now, I hope, as he deserves."
"Hey?" cried
the blatant Stryver. "Did he though? Is that the sort of fellow? Let us
look at his infamous name. D--n the fellow!"
Darnay, unable to
restrain himself any longer, touched Mr. Stryver on the shoulder, and said:
"I know the
fellow."
"Do you, by
Jupiter?" said Stryver. "I am sorry for it."
"Why?"
"Why, Mr. Darnay?
D'ye hear what he did? Don't ask, why, in these times."
"But I do ask
why?"
"Then I tell you
again, Mr. Darnay, I am sorry for it. I am sorry to hear you putting any such
extraordinary questions. Here is a fellow, who, infected by the most pestilent
and blasphemous code of devilry that ever was known, abandoned his property to
the vilest scum of the earth that ever did murder by wholesale, and you ask me
why I am sorry that a man who instructs youth knows him? Well, but I'll answer
you. I am sorry because I believe there is contamination in such a scoundrel.
That's why."
Mindful of the secret,
Darnay with great difficulty checked himself, and said: "You may not
understand the gentleman."
"I understand how
to put you in a corner, Mr. Darnay," said Bully Stryver, "and I'll do
it. If this fellow is a gentleman, I don't understand him. You may tell him so,
with my compliments. You may also tell him, from me, that after abandoning his
worldly goods and position to this butcherly mob, I wonder he is not at the
head of them. But, no, gentlemen," said Stryver, looking all round, and
snapping his fingers, "I know something of human nature, and I tell you
that you'll never find a fellow like this fellow, trusting himself to the
mercies of such precious proteges. No, gentlemen; he'll always show 'em a clean
pair of heels very early in the scuffle, and sneak away."
With those words, and a
final snap of his fingers, Mr. Stryver shouldered himself into Fleet-street,
amidst the general approbation of his hearers. Mr. Lorry and Charles Darnay
were left alone at the desk, in the general departure from the Bank.
"Will you take
charge of the letter?" said Mr. Lorry. "You know where to deliver
it?"
"I do."
"Will you
undertake to explain, that we suppose it to have been addressed here, on the
chance of our knowing where to forward it, and that it has been here some time?"
"I will do so. Do
you start for Paris from here?"
"From here, at
eight."
"I will come back,
to see you off."
Very ill at ease with
himself, and with Stryver and most other men, Darnay made the best of his way
into the quiet of the Temple, opened the letter, and read it. These were its
contents: "Prison of the Abbaye, Paris.
"June 21, 1792.
"MONSIEUR
HERETOFORE THE MARQUIS.
"After having long
been in danger of my life at the bands of the village, I have been seized, with
great violence and indignity, and brought a long journey on foot to Paris. On
the road I have suffered a great deal. Nor is that all; my house has been
destroyed -- razed to the ground.
"The crime for
which I am imprisoned, Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, and for which I shall
be summoned before the tribunal, and shall lose my life (without your so
generous help), is, they tell me, treason against the majesty of the people, in
that I have acted against them for an emigrant. It is in vain I represent that
I have acted for them, and not against, according to your commands. It is in
vain I represent that, before the sequestration of emigrant property, I had
remitted the imposts they had ceased to pay; that I had collected no rent; that
I had had recourse to no process. The only response is, that I have acted for
an emigrant, and where is that emigrant?
"Ah! most gracious
Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, where is that emigrant? I cry in my sleep
where is he? I demand of Heaven, will he not come to deliver me? No answer. Ah
Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, I send my desolate cry across the sea, hoping
it may perhaps reach your ears through the great bank of Tilson known at Paris!
"For the love of
Heaven, of justice, of generosity, of the honour of your noble name, I
supplicate you, Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, to succour and release me. My
fault is, that I have been true to you. Oh Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, I
pray you be you true to me!
"From this prison
here of horror, whence I every hour tend nearer and nearer to destruction, I
send you, Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, the assurance of my dolorous and
unhappy service. "Your afflicted,
"GABELLE."
The latent uneasiness
in Darnay's mind was roused to vigourous life by this letter. The peril of an
old servant and a good one, whose only crime was fidelity to himself and his
family, stared him so reproachfully in the face, that, as he walked to and fro
in the Temple considering what to do, he almost hid his face from the
passersby.
He knew very well, that
in his horror of the deed which had culminated the bad deeds and bad reputation
of the old family house, in his resentful suspicions of his uncle, and in the
aversion with which his conscience regarded the crumbling fabric that he was
supposed to uphold, he had acted imperfectly. He knew very well, that in his
love for Lucie, his renunciation of his social place, though by no means new to
his own mind, had been hurried and incomplete. He knew that he ought to have
systematically worked it out and supervised it, and that he had meant to do it,
and that it had never been done.
The happiness of his
own chosen English home, the necessity of being always actively employed, the
swift changes and troubles of the time which bad followed on one another so
fast, that the events of this week annihilated the immature plans of last week,
and the events of the week following made all new again; he knew very well,
that to the force of these circumstances he had yielded: -- not without
disquiet, but still without continuous and accumulating resistance. That he had
watched the times for a time of action, and that they had shifted and struggled
until the time had gone by, and the nobility were trooping from France by every
highway and byway, and their property was in course of confiscation and
destruction, and their very names were blotting out, was as well known to
himself as it could be to any new authority in France that might impeach him
for it.
But, he had oppressed
no man, he had imprisoned no man; he was so far from having harshly exacted
payment of his dues, that he had relinquished them of his own will, thrown
himself on a world with no favour in it, won his own private place there, and
earned his own bread. Monsieur Gabelle had held the impoverished and involved
estate on written instructions, to spare the people, to give them what little
there was to give -- such fuel as the heavy creditors would let them have in
the winter, and such produce as could be saved from the same grip in the summer
-- and no doubt he had put the fact in plea and proof, for his own safety, so
that it could not but appear now.
This favoured the
desperate resolution Charles Darnay had begun to make, that he would go to
Paris.
Yes. Like the mariner
in the old story, the winds and streams had driven him within the influence of
the Loadstone Rock, and it was drawing him to itself, and he must go.
Everything that arose before his mind drifted him on, faster and faster, more
and more steadily, to the terrible attraction. His latent uneasiness had been,
that bad aims were being worked out in his own unhappy land by bad instruments,
and that he who could not fail to know that he was better than they, was not
there, trying to do something to stay bloodshed, and assert the claims of mercy
and humanity. With this uneasiness half stifled, and half reproaching him, he
had been brought to the pointed comparison of himself with the brave old
gentleman in whom duty was so strong; upon that comparison (injurious to
himself) had instantly followed the sneers of Monseigneur, which had stung him
bitterly, and those of Stryver, which above all were coarse and galling, for
old reasons. Upon those, had followed Gabelle's letter: the appeal of an
innocent prisoner, in danger of death, to his justice, honour, and good name.
His resolution was
made. He must go to Paris.
Yes. The Loadstone Rock
was drawing him, and he must sail on, until he struck. He knew of no rock; he
saw hardly any danger. The intention with which he had done what he had done,
even although he had left it incomplete, presented it before him in an aspect
that would be gratefully acknowledged in France on his presenting himself to
assert it. Then, that glorious vision of doing good, which is so often the
sanguine mirage of so many good minds, arose before him, and he even saw
himself in the illusion with some influence to guide this raging Revolution
that was running so fearfully wild.
As he walked to and fro
with his resolution made, he considered that neither Lucie nor her father must
know of it until he was gone. Lucie should be spared the pain of separation;
and her father, always reluctant to turn his thoughts towards the dangerous
ground of old, should come to the knowledge of the step, as a step taken, and
not in the balance of suspense and doubt. How much of the incompleteness of his
situation was referable to her father, through the painful anxiety to avoid
reviving old associations of France in his mind, he did not discuss with
himself. But, that circumstance too, had had its influence in his course.
He walked to and fro,
with thoughts very busy, until it was time to return to Tellson's and take
leave of Mr. Lorry. As soon as he arrived in Paris he would present himself to
this old friend, but he must say nothing of his intention now.
A carriage with
post-horses was ready at the Bank door, and Jerry was booted and equipped.
"I have delivered
that letter," said Charles Darnay to Mr. Lorry. "I would not consent
to your being charged with any written answer, but perhaps you will take a
verbal one?"
"That I will, and
readily," said Mr. Lorry, "if it is not dangerous."
"Not at all.
Though it is to a prisoner in the Abbaye."
"What is his
name?" said Mr. Lorry, with his open pocket-book in his hand.
"Gabelle."
"Gabelle. And what
is the message to the unfortunate Gabelle in prison?"
"Simply, 'that he
has received the letter, and will come.'"
"Any time
mentioned?"
"He will start
upon his journey to-morrow night."
"Any person
mentioned?"
"No."
He helped Mr. Lorry to
wrap himself in a number of coats and cloaks, and went out with him from the
warm atmosphere of the old Bank, into the misty air of Fleet-street. "My
love to Lucie, and to little Lucie," said Mr. Lorry at parting, "and
take precious care of them till I come back." Charles Darnay shook his
head and doubtfully smiled, as the carriage rolled away.
That night -- it was
the fourteenth of August -- he sat up late, and wrote two fervent letters; one
was to Lucie, explaining the strong obligation he was under to go to Paris, and
showing her, at length, the reasons that he had, for feeling confident that he
could become involved in no personal danger there; the other was to the Doctor,
confiding Lucie and their dear child to his care, and dwelling on the same
topics with the strongest assurances. To both, he wrote that he would despatch
letters in proof of his safety, immediately after his arrival.
It was a hard day, that
day of being among them, with the first reservation of their joint lives on his
mind. It was a hard matter to preserve the innocent deceit of which they were
profoundly unsuspicious. But, an affectionate glance at his wife, so happy and
busy, made him resolute not to tell her what impended (he had been half moved
to do it, so strange it was to him to act in anything without her quiet aid),
and the day passed quickly. Early in the evening he embraced her, and her
scarcely less dear namesake, pretending that he would return by-and-bye (an
imaginary engagement took him out, and he had secreted a valise of clothes
ready), and so he emerged into the heavy mist of the heavy streets, with a
heavier heart.
The unseen force was
drawing him fast to itself, now, and an the tides and winds were setting
straight and strong towards it. He left his two letters with a trusty porter,
to be delivered half an hour before midnight, and no sooner; took horse for
Dover; and began his journey -- "For the love of Heaven, of justice, of
generosity, of the honour of your noble name!" was the poor prisoner's cry
with which he strengthened his sinking heart, as he left all that was dear on
earth behind him, and floated away for the Loadstone Rock. THE END OF THE
SECOND BOOK.
THE TRAVELLER fared
slowly on his way, who fared towards Paris from England in the autumn of the
year one thousand seven hundred and ninety-two. More than enough of bad roads,
bad equipages, and bad horses, he would have encountered to delay him, though
the fallen and unfortunate King of France had been upon his throne in all his
glory; but, the changed times were fraught with other obstacles than these.
Every town-gate and village taxing-house had its band of citizen-patriots, with
their national muskets in a most explosive state of readiness, who stopped all
comers and goers, cross-questioned them, inspected their papers, looked for
their names in lists of their own, turned them back, or sent them on, or
stopped them and laid them in hold, as their capricious judgment or fancy
deemed best for the dawning Republic One and Indivisible, of Liberty, Equality,
Fraternity, or Death.
A very few French
leagues of his journey were accomplished, when Charles Darnay began to perceive
that for him along these country roads there was no hope of return until he
should have been declared a good citizen at Paris. Whatever might befall now,
he must on to his journey's end. Not a mean village closed upon him, not a
common barrier dropped across the road behind him, but he knew it to be another
iron door in the series that was barred between him and England. The universal
watchfulness so encompassed him, that if he had been taken in a net, or were
being forwarded to his destination in a cage, he could not have felt his
freedom more completely gone.
This universal
watchfulness not only stopped him on the highway twenty times in a stage, but
retarded his progress twenty times in a day, by riding after him and taking him
back, riding before him and stopping him by anticipation, riding with him and
keeping him in charge. He had been days upon his journey in France alone, when
he went to bed tired out, in a little town on the high road, still a long way
from Paris.
Nothing but the
production of the afflicted Gabelle's letter from his prison of the Abbaye
would have got him on so far. Ms difficulty at the guard-house in this small
place had been such, that he felt his journey to have come to a crisis. And he
was, therefore, as little surprised as a man could be, to find himself awakened
at the small inn to which he had been remitted until morning, in the middle of
the night.
Awakened by a timid
local functionary and three armed patriots in rough red caps and with pipes in
their mouths, who sat down on the bed.
"Emigrant,"
said the functionary, "I am going to send you on to Paris, under an
escort."
"Citizen, I desire
nothing more than to get to Paris, though I could dispense with the
escort."
"Silence!"
growled a red-cap, striking at the coverlet with the butt-end of his musket.
"Peace, aristocrat!"
"It is as the good
patriot says," observed the timid functionary. "You are an
aristocrat, and must have an escort -- and must pay for it."
"I have no
choice," said Charles Darnay.
"Choice! Listen to
him!" cried the same scowling red-cap. "As if it was not a favour to
be protected from the lamp-iron!"
"It is always as
the good patriot says," observed the functionary. "Rise and dress
yourself, emigrant."
Darnay complied, and
was taken back to the guard-house, where other patriots in rough red caps were
smoking, drinking, and sleeping, by a watch-fire. Here he paid a heavy price
for his escort, and hence he started with it on the wet, wet roads at three o'clock
in the morning.
The escort were two
mounted patriots in red caps and tri-coloured cockades, armed with national
muskets and sabres, who rode one on either side of him.
The escorted governed
his own horse, but a loose line was attached to his bridle, the end of which
one of the patriots kept girded round his wrist. In this state they set forth
with the sharp rain driving in their faces: clattering at a heavy dragoon trot
over the uneven town pavement, and out upon the mire-deep roads. In this state they
traversed without change, except of horses and pace, all the mire-deep leagues
that lay between them and the capital.
They travelled in the
night, halting an hour or two after daybreak, and lying by until the twilight
fell. The escort were so wretchedly clothed, that they twisted straw round
their bare legs, and thatched their ragged shoulders to keep the wet off. Apart
from the personal discomfort of being so attended, and apart from such
considerations of present danger as arose from one of the patriots being
chronically drunk, and carrying his musket very recklessly, Charles Darnay did
not allow the restraint that was laid upon him to awaken any serious fears in
his breast; for, he reasoned with himself that it could have no reference to
the merits of an individual case that was not yet stated, and of
representations, confirmable by the prisoner in the Abbaye, that were not yet
made.
But when they came to
the town of Beauvais -- which they did at eventide, when the streets were
filled with people -- he could not conceal from himself that the aspect of
affairs was very alarming. An ominous crowd gathered to see him dismount of the
posting-yard, and many voices called out loudly, "Down with the
emigrant!"
He stopped in the act
of swinging himself out of his saddle, and, resuming it as his safest place,
said:
"Emigrant, my
friends! Do you not see me here, in France, of my own will?"
"You are a cursed
emigrant," cried a farrier, making at him in a furious manner through the
press, hammer in hand; "and you are a cursed aristocrat!"
The postmaster
interposed himself between this man and the rider's bridle (at which he was
evidently making), and soothingly said, "Let him be; let him be! He will
be judged at Paris."
"Judged!"
repeated the farrier, swinging his hammer. "Ay! and condemned as a
traitor." At this the crowd roared approval.
Checking the
postmaster, who was for turning his horse's head to the yard (the drunken
patriot sat composedly in his saddle looking on, with the line round his wrist),
Darnay said, as soon as he could make his voice heard:
"Friends, you
deceive yourselves, or you are deceived. I am not a traitor. "
"He lies!"
cried the smith. "He is a traitor since the decree. His life is forfeit to
the people. His cursed life is not his own!"
At the instant when
Darnay saw a rush in the eyes of the crowd, which another instant would have
brought upon him, the postmaster turned his horse into the yard, the escort
rode in close upon his horse's flanks, and the postmaster shut and barred the
crazy double gates. The farrier struck a blow upon them with his hammer, and
the crowd groaned; but, no more was done.
"What is this
decree that the smith spoke of?" Darnay asked the postmaster, when he had
thanked him, and stood beside him in the yard.
"Truly, a decree
for selling the property of emigrants."
"When
passed?"
"On the
fourteenth."
"The day I left
England!"
"Everybody says it
is but one of several, and that there will be others -- if there are not
already -- banishing all emigrants, and condemning all to death who return.
That is what he meant when he said your life was not your own."
"But there are no
such decrees yet?"
"What do I
know!" said the postmaster, shrugging his shoulders; "there may be,
or there will be. It is all the same. What would you have?"
They rested on some
straw in a loft until the middle of the night, and then rode forward again when
all the town was asleep. Among the many wild changes observable on familiar
things which made this wild ride unreal, not the least was the seeming rarity
of sleep. After long and lonely spurring over dreary roads, they would come to
a cluster of poor cottages, not steeped in darkness, but all glittering with
lights, and would find the people, in a ghostly manner in the dead of the
night, circling hand in hand round a shrivelled tree of Liberty, or all drawn
up together singing a Liberty song. Happily, however, there was sleep in
Beauvais that night to help them out of it and they passed on once more into
solitude and loneliness: jingling through the untimely cold and wet, among
impoverished fields that had yielded no fruits of the earth that year,
diversified by the blackened remains of burnt houses, and by the sudden
emergence from ambuscade, and sharp reining up across their way, of patriot
patrols on the watch on all the roads.
Daylight at last found
them before the wall of Paris. The barrier was closed and strongly guarded when
they rode up to it.
"Where are the
papers of this prisoner?" demanded a resolute-looking man in authority,
who was summoned out by the guard.
Naturally struck by the
disagreeable word, Charles Darnay requested the speaker to take notice that he
was a free traveller and French citizen, in charge of an escort which the
disturbed state of the country had imposed upon him, and which he had paid for.
"Where,"
repeated the same personage, without taking any heed of him whatever, "are
the papers of this prisoner?"
The drunken patriot had
them in his cap, and produced them. Casting his eyes over Gabelle's letter, the
same personage in authority showed some disorder and surprise, and looked at
Darnay with a close attention.
He left escort and
escorted without saying a word, however, and went into the guard-room;
meanwhile, they sat upon their horses outside the gate. Looking about him while
in this state of suspense, Charles Darnay observed that the gate was held by a
mixed guard of soldiers and patriots, the latter far outnumbering the former;
and that while ingress into the city for peasants' carts bringing in supplies,
and for similar traffic and traffickers, was easy enough, egress, even for the
homeliest people, was very difficult. A numerous medley of men and women, not
to mention beasts and vehicles of various sorts, was waiting to issue forth;
but, the previous identification was so strict, that they filtered through the
barrier very slowly. Some of these people knew their turn for examination to be
so far off, that they lay down on the ground to sleep or smoke, while others
talked together, or loitered about. The red cap and tricolour cockade were
universal, both among men and women.
When he had sat in his
saddle some half-hour, taking note of these things, Darnay found himself
confronted by the same man in authority, who directed the guard to open the
barrier. Then he delivered to the escort, drunk and sober, a receipt for the
escorted, and requested him to dismount. He did so, and the two patriots,
leading his tired horse, turned and rode away without entering the city.
He accompanied his
conductor into a guard-room, smelling of common wine and tobacco, where certain
soldiers and patriots, asleep and awake, drunk and sober, and in various
neutral states between sleeping and waking, drunkenness and sobriety, were
standing and lying about. The light in the guard-house, half derived from the
waning oil-lamps of the night, and half from the overcast day, was in a
correspondingly uncertain condition. Some registers were lying open on a desk,
and an officer of a coarse, dark aspect, presided over these.
"Citizen
Defarge," said he to Darnay's conductor, as he took a slip of paper to
write on. "Is this the emigrant Evrémonde?"
"This is the
man."
"Your age, Evrémonde?"
"Thirty-seven."
"Married, Evrémonde?"
"Yes."
"Where
married?"
"In England."
"Without doubt.
Where is your wife, Evrémonde?"
"In England."
"Without doubt. Your
are consigned, Evrémonde, to the prison of La Force."
"Just
Heaven!" exclaimed Darnay. "Under what law, and for what
offence?"
The officer looked up
from his slip of paper for a moment.
"We have new laws,
Evré, and new offences, since you were here." He said it with a hard
smile, and went on writing.
"I entreat you to
observe that I have come here voluntarily, in response to that written appeal
of a fellow-countryman which lies before you. I demand no more than the
opportunity to do so without delay. Is not that my right?"
"Emigrants have no
rights, Evrémonde," was the stolid reply. The officer wrote until he had
finished, read over to himself what he had written, sanded it, and handed it to
Defarge, with the words "In secret."
Defarge motioned with
the paper to the prisoner that he must accompany him. The prisoner obeyed, and
a guard of two armed patriots attended them.
"Is it you,"
said Defarge, in a low voice, as they went down the guard- house steps and
turned into Paris, "who married the daughter of Doctor Manette, once a
prisoner in the Bastille that is no more?"
"Yes,"
replied Darnay, looking at him with surprise.
"My name is
Defarge, and I keep a wine-shop in the Quarter Saint Antoine. Possibly you have
heard of me."
"My wife came to
your house to reclaim her father? Yes!"
The word
"wife" seemed to serve as a gloomy reminder to Defarge, to say with
sudden impatience, "In the name of that sharp female newly- born, and
called La Guillotine, why did you come to France?"
"You heard me say
why, a minute ago. Do you not believe it is the truth?"
"A bad truth for
you," said Defarge, speaking with knitted brows, and looking straight
before him.
"Indeed I am lost
here. All here is so unprecedented, so changed, so sudden and unfair, that I am
absolutely lost. Will you render me a little help?"
"None."
Defarge spoke, always looking straight before him.
"Will you answer
me a single question?"
"Perhaps.
According to its nature. You can say what it is."
"In this prison
that I am going to so unjustly, shall I have some free communication with the
world outside?"
"You will
see."
"I am not to be
buried there, prejudged, and without any means of presenting my case?"
"You will see.
But, what then? Other people have been similarly buried in worse prisons,
before now."
"But never by me,
Citizen Defarge."
Defarge glanced darkly
at him for answer, and walked on in a steady and set silence. The deeper he
sank into this silence, the fainter hope there was -- or so Darnay thought --
of his softening in any slight degree. He, therefore, made haste to say:
"It is of the
utmost importance to me (you know, Citizen, even better than I, of how much
importance), that I should be able to communicate to Mr. Lorry of Tellson's
Bank, an English gentleman who is now in Paris, the simple fact, without
comment, that I have been thrown into the prison of La Force. Will you cause
that to be done for me?"
"I will do,"
Defarge doggedly rejoined, "nothing for you. My duty is to my country and
the People. I am the sworn servant of both, against you. I will do nothing for
you."
Charles Darnay felt it
hopeless to entreat him further, and his pride was touched besides. As they
walked on in silence, he could not but see how used the people were to the
spectacle of prisoners passing along the streets. The very children scarcely
noticed him. A few passers turned their heads, and a few shook their fingers at
him as an aristocrat; otherwise, that a man in good clothes should be going to
prison, was no more remarkable than that a labourer in working clothes should
be going to work. In one narrow, dark, and dirty street through which they
passed, an excited orator, mounted on a stool, was addressing an excited
audience on the cranes against the people, of the king and the royal family.
The few words that he caught from this man's lips, first made it known to
Charles Darnay that the king was in prison, and that the foreign ambassadors
had one and all left Paris. On the road (except at Beauvais) he had heard
absolutely nothing. The escort and the universal watchfulness had completely
isolated him.
That he had fallen
among far greater dangers than those which had developed themselves when he
left England, he of course knew now. That perils had thickened about him fast,
and might thicken faster and faster yet, he of course knew now. He could not
but admit to himself that he might not have made this journey, if he could have
foreseen the events of a few days. And yet his misgivings were not so dark as,
imagined by the light of this later time, they would appear. Troubled as the
future was, it was the unknown future, and in its obscurity there was ignorant
hope. The horrible massacre, days and nights long, which, within a few rounds
of the clock, was to set a great mark of blood upon the blessed garnering time
of harvest, was as far out of his knowledge as if it had been a hundred
thousand years away. The "sharp female newly-born, and called La
Guillotine," was hardly known to him, or to the generality of people, by
name. The frightful deeds that were to be soon done, were probably unimagined
at that time in the brains of the doers. How could they have a place in the
shadowy conceptions of a gentle mind?
Of unjust treatment in
detention and hardship, and in cruel separation from his wife and child, he
foreshadowed the likelihood, or the certainty; but, beyond this, he dreaded
nothing distinctly. With this on his mind, which was enough to carry into a
dreary prison courtyard, he arrived at the prison of La Force.
A man with a bloated
face opened the strong wicket, to whom Defarge presented "The Emigrant Evrémonde."
"What the Devil!
How many more of them!" exclaimed the man with the bloated face.
Defarge took his
receipt without noticing the exclamation, and withdrew, with his two
fellow-patriots.
"What the Devil, I
say again!" exclaimed the gaoler, left with his wife. "How many
more!"
The gaoler's wife,
being provided with no answer to the question, merely replied, "One must
have patience, my dear!" Three turnkeys who entered responsive to a bell
she rang, echoed the sentiment, and one added, "For the love of
Liberty;" which sounded in that place like an inappropriate conclusion.
The prison of La Force
was a gloomy prison, dark and filthy, and with a horrible smell of foul sleep
in it. Extraordinary how soon the noisome flavour of imprisoned sleep, becomes
manifest in all such places that are ill cared for!
"In secret,
too," grumbled the gaoler, looking at the written paper. "As if I was
not already full to bursting!"
He stuck the paper on a
file, in an ill-humour, and Charles Darnay awaited his further pleasure for
half an hour: sometimes, pacing to and fro in the strong arched room:
sometimes, resting on a stone seat: in either case detained to be imprinted on
the memory of the chief and his subordinates.
"Come!" said
the chief, at length taking up his keys, "come with me, emigrant."
Through the dismal
prison twilight, his new charge accompanied him by corridor and staircase, many
doors clanging and locking behind them, until they came into a large, low,
vaulted chamber, crowded with prisoners of both sexes. The women were seated at
a long table, reading and writing, knitting, sewing, and embroidering; the men
were for the most part standing behind their chairs, or lingering up and down
the room.
In the instinctive
association of prisoners with shameful crime and disgrace, the new-comer
recoiled from this company. But the crowning unreality of his long unreal ride,
was, their all at once rising to receive him, with every refinement of manner
known to the time, and with all the engaging graces and courtesies of life.
So strangely clouded
were these refinements by the prison manners and gloom, so spectral did they
become in the inappropriate squalor and misery through which they were seen,
that Charles Darnay seemed to stand in a company of the dead. Ghosts all! The
ghost of beauty, the ghost of stateliness, the ghost of elegance, the ghost of
pride, the ghost of frivolity, the ghost of wit, the ghost of youth, the ghost
of age, all waiting their dismissal from the desolate shore, all turning on him
eyes that were changed by the death they had died in coming there.
It struck him
motionless. The gaoler standing at his side, and the other gaolers moving
about, who would have been well enough as to appearance in the ordinary
exercise of their functions, looked so extravagantly coarse contrasted with
sorrowing mothers and blooming daughters who were there -- with the apparitions
of the coquette, the young beauty, and the mature woman delicately bred -- that
the inversion of all experience and likelihood which the scene of shadows
presented, was heightened to its utmost. Surely, ghosts all. Surely, the long
unreal ride some progress of disease that had brought him to these gloomy
shades!
"In the name of
the assembled companions in misfortune," said a gentleman of courtly
appearance and address, coming forward, "I have the honour of giving you
welcome to La Force, and of condoling with you on the calamity that has brought
you among us. May it soon terminate happily! It would be an impertinence
elsewhere, but it is not so here, to ask your name and condition?"
Charles Darnay roused
himself, and gave the required information, in words as suitable as he could
find.
"But I hope,"
said the gentleman, following the chief gaoler with his eyes, who moved across
the room, "that you are not in secret?"
"I do not
understand the meaning of the term, but I have heard them say so."
"Ah, what a pity!
We so much regret it! But take courage; several members of our society have
been in secret, at first, and it has lasted but a short time." Then he
added, raising his voice, "I grieve to inform the society -- in secret."
There was a murmur of
commiseration as Charles Darnay crossed the room to a grated door where the
gaoler awaited him, and many voices -- among which, the soft and compassionate
voices of women were conspicuous -- gave him good wishes and encouragement. He
turned at the grated door, to render the thanks of his heart; it closed under
the gaoler's hand; and the apparitions vanished from his sight for ever.
The wicket opened on a
stone staircase, leading upward. When they bad ascended forty steps (the
prisoner of half an hour already counted them), the gaoler opened a low black
door, and they passed into a solitary cell. It struck cold and damp, but was
not dark.
"Yours," said
the gaoler.
"Why am I confined
alone?"
"How do I
know!"
"I can buy pen,
ink, and paper?"
"Such are not my
orders. You will be visited, and can ask then. At present, you may buy your
food, and nothing more."
There were in the cell,
a chair, a table, and a straw mattress. As the gaoler made a general inspection
of these objects, and of the four walls, before going out, a wandering fancy
wandered through the mind of the prisoner leaning against the wall opposite to
him, that this gaoler was so unwholesomely bloated, both in face and person, as
to look like a man who had been drowned and filled with water. When the gaoler
was gone, he thought in the same wandering way, "Now am I left, as if I
were dead." Stopping then, to look down at the mattress, he turned from it
with a sick feeling, and thought, "And here in these crawling creatures is
the first condition of the body after death."
"Five paces by
four and a half, five paces by four and a half, five paces by four and a
half." The prisoner walked to and fro in his cell, counting its
measurement, and the roar of the city arose like muffled drums with a wild
swell of voices added to them. "He made shoes, he made shoes, he made
shoes." The prisoner counted the measurement again, and paced faster, to
draw his mind with him from that latter repetition. "The ghosts that
vanished when the wicket closed. There was one among them, the appearance of a
lady dressed in black, who was leaning in the embrasure of a window, and she
had a light shining upon her golden hair, and she looked like * * * * Let us
ride on again, for God's sake, through the illuminated villages with the people
all awake! * * * * He made shoes, he made shoes, he made shoes. * * * * Five
paces by four and a half." With such scraps tossing and rolling upward
from the depths of his mind, the prisoner walked faster and faster, obstinately
counting and counting; and the roar of the city changed to this extent -- that
it still rolled in like muffled drums, but with the wail of voices that he
knew, in the swell that rose above them.
TELLSON'S BANK,
established in the Saint Germain Quarter of Paris, was in a wing of a large
house, approached by a courtyard and shut off from the street by a high wall
and a strong gate. The house belonged to a great nobleman who had lived in it
until he made a flight from the troubles, in his own cook's dress, and got
across the borders. A mere beast of the chase flying from hunters, he was still
in his metempsychosis no other than the same Monseigneur, the preparation of
whose chocolate for whose lips had once occupied three strong men besides the cook
in question.
Monseigneur gone, and
the three strong men absolving themselves from the sin of having drawn his high
wages, by being more than ready and willing to cut his throat on the altar of
the dawning Republic one and indivisible of Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or
Death, Monseigneur's house had been first sequestrated, and then confiscated.
For, all things moved so fast, and decree followed decree with that fierce
precipitation, that now upon the third night of the autumn month of September,
patriot emissaries of the law were in possession of Monseigneur's house, and
had marked it with the tricolour, and were drinking brandy in its state
apartments.
A place of business in
London like Tellson's place of business in Paris, would soon have driven the
House out of its mind and into the Gazette. For, what would staid British
responsibility and respectability have said to orange-trees in boxes in a Bank
courtyard, and even to a Cupid over the counter? Yet such things were.
Tellson's had whitewashed the Cupid, but he was still to be seen on the
ceiling, in the coolest linen, aiming (as he very often does) at money from
morning to night. Bankruptcy must inevitably have come of this young Pagan, in
Lombard-street, London, and also of a curtained alcove in the rear of the
immortal boy, and also of a looking-glass let into the wall, and also of clerks
not at all old, who danced in public on the slightest provocation. Yet, a
French Tellson's could get on with these things exceedingly well, and, as long
as the times held together, no man had taken fright at them, and drawn out his
money.
What money would be
drawn out of Tellson's henceforth, and what would lie there, lost and
forgotten; what plate and jewels would tarnish in Tellson's hiding-places,
while the depositors rusted in prisons, and when they should have violently
perished; how many accounts with Tellson's never to be balanced in this world,
must be carried over into the next; no man could have said, that night, any
more than Mr. Jarvis Lorry could, though he thought heavily of these questions.
He sat by a newly-lighted wood fire (the blighted and unfruitful year was
prematurely cold), and on his honest and courageous face there was a deeper
shade than the pendent lamp could throw, or any object in the room distortedly
reflect -- a shade of horror.
He occupied rooms in
the Bank, in his fidelity to the House of which he had grown to be a part, lie
strong root-ivy. it chanced that they derived a kind of security from the
patriotic occupation of the main building, but the true-hearted old gentleman
never calculated about that. All such circumstances were indifferent to him, so
that he did his duty. On the opposite side of the courtyard, under a colonnade,
was extensive standing for carriages -- where, indeed, some carriages of
Monseigneur yet stood. Against two of the pillars were fastened two great
flaring flambeaux, and in the light of these, standing out in the open air, was
a large grindstone: a roughly mounted thing which appeared to have hurriedly been
brought there from some neighbouring smithy, or other workshop. Rising and
looking out of window at these harmless objects, Mr. Lorry shivered, and
retired to his seat by the fire. He had opened, not only the glass window, but
the lattice blind outside it, and he had closed both again, and he shivered
through his frame.
From the streets beyond
the high wall and the strong gate, there came the usual night hum of the city,
with now and then an indescribable ring in it, weird and unearthly, as if some
unwonted sounds of a terrible nature were going up to Heaven.
"Thank God,"
said Mr. Lorry, clasping his hands, "that no one near and dear to me is in
this dreadful town to-night. May He have mercy on all who are in danger!"
Soon afterwards, the
bell at the great gate sounded, and he thought, "They have come
back!" and sat listening. But, there was no loud irruption into the
courtyard, as he had expected, and he heard the gate clash again, and all was
quiet.
The nervousness and
dread that were upon him inspired that vague uneasiness respecting the Bank,
which a great change would naturally awaken, with such feelings roused. It was
well guarded, and he got up to go among the trusty people who were watching it,
when his door suddenly opened, and two figures rushed in, at sight of which he
fell back in amazement.
Lucie and her father!
Lucie with her arms stretched out to him, and with that old look of earnestness
so concentrated and intensified, that it seemed as though it had been stamped
upon her face expressly to give force and power to it in this one passage of
her life.
"What is
this?" cried Mr. Lorry, breathless and confused. "What is the matter?
Lucie! Manette! What has happened? What has brought you here? What is it?"
With the look fixed
upon him, in her paleness and wildness, she panted out in his arms,
imploringly, "O my dear friend! My husband!"
"Your husband,
Lucie?"
"Charles."
"What of
Charles?"
"Here.
"Here, in
Paris?"
"Has been here
some days -- three or four -- I don't know how many -- I can't collect my
thoughts. An errand of generosity brought him here unknown to us; he was
stopped at the barrier, and sent to prison."
The old man uttered an
irrepressible cry. Almost at the same moment, the beg of the great gate rang
again, and a loud noise of feet and voices came pouring into the courtyard.
"What is that
noise?" said the Doctor, turning towards the window.
"Don't look!"
cried Mr. Lorry. "Don't look out! Manette, for your life, don't touch the
blind!"
The Doctor turned, with
his hand upon the fastening of the window, and said, with a cool, bold smile:
"My dear friend, I
have a charmed life in this city. I have been a Bastille prisoner. There is no
patriot in Paris -- in Paris? In France -- who, knowing me to have been a
prisoner in the Bastille, would touch me, except to overwhelm me with embraces,
or carry me in triumph. My old pain has given me a power that has brought us
through the barrier, and gained us news of Charles there, and brought us here.
I knew it would be so; I knew I could help Charles out of all danger; I told
Lucie so. -- What is that noise?" His hand was again upon the window.
"Don't look!"
cried Mr. Lorry, absolutely desperate. "No, Lucie, my dear, nor you!"
He got his arm round her, and held her. "Don't be so terrified, my love. I
solemnly swear to you that I know of no harm having happened to Charles; that I
had no suspicion even of his being in this fatal place. What prison is he
in?"
"La Force!"
"La Force! Lucie,
my child, if ever you were brave and serviceable in your life -- and you were
always both -- you will compose yourself now, to do exactly as I bid you; for
more depends upon it than you can think, or I can say. There is no help for you
in any action on your part to-night; you cannot possibly stir out. I say this,
because what I must bid you to do for Charles's sake, is the hardest thing to
do of all. You must instantly be obedient, still, and quiet. You must let me
put you in a room at the back here. You must leave your father and me alone for
two minutes, and as there are Life and Death in the world you must not
delay."
"I will be
submissive to you. I see in your face that you know I can do nothing else than
this. I know you are true."
The old man kissed her,
and hurried her into his room, and turned the key; then, came hurrying back to
the Doctor, and opened the window and partly opened the blind, and put his hand
upon the Doctor's arm, and looked out with him into the courtyard.
Looked out upon a
throng of men and women: not enough in number, or near enough, to fill the
courtyard: not more than forty or fifty in all. The people in possession of the
house had let them in at the gate, and they had rushed in to work at the grindstone;
it had evidently been set up there for their purpose, as in a convenient and
retired spot.
But, such awful
workers, and such awful work!
The grindstone had a
double handle, and, turning at it madly were two men, whose faces, as their
long hair Rapped back when the whirlings of the grindstone brought their faces
up, were more horrible and cruel than the visages of the wildest savages in
their most barbarous disguise. False eyebrows and false moustaches were stuck
upon them, and their hideous countenances were all bloody and sweaty, and all
awry with howling, and all staring and glaring with beastly excitement and want
of sleep. As these ruffians turned and turned, their matted locks now flung
forward over their eyes, now flung backward over their necks, some women held
wine to their mouths that they might drink; and what with dropping blood, and
what with dropping wine, and what with the stream of sparks struck out of the
stone, all their wicked atmosphere seemed gore and fire. The eye could not
detect one creature in the group free from the smear of blood. Shouldering one
another to get next at the sharpening-stone, were men stripped to the waist,
with the stain all over their limbs and bodies; men in all sorts of rags, with
the stain upon those rags; men devilishly set off with spoils of women's lace
and silk and ribbon, with the stain dyeing those trifles through and through.
Hatchets, knives, bayonets, swords, all brought to be sharpened, were all red
with it. Some of the hacked swords were tied to the wrists of those who carried
them, with strips of linen and fragments of dress: ligatures various in kind,
but all deep of the one colour. And as the frantic wielders of these weapons
snatched them from the stream of sparks and tore away into the streets, the
same red hue was red in their frenzied eyes; -- eyes which any unbrutalised
beholder would have given twenty years of life, to petrify with a well-directed
gun.
All this was seen in a
moment, as the vision of a drowning man, or of any human creature at any very
great pass, could see a world if it were there. They drew back from the window,
and the Doctor looked for explanation in his friend's ashy face.
"They are,"
Mr. Lorry whispered the words, glancing fearfully round at the locked room,
"murdering the prisoners. If you are sure of what you say; if you really
have the power you think you have -- as I believe you have -- make yourself
known to these devils, and get taken to La Force. It may be too late, I don't
know, but let it not be a minute later!"
Doctor Manette pressed
his hand, hastened bareheaded out of the room, and was in the courtyard when
Mr. Lorry regained the blind.
His streaming white
hair, his remarkable face, and the impetuous confidence of his manner, as he
put the weapons aside like water, carried him in an instant to the heart of the
concourse at the stone. For a few moments there was a pause, and a hurry, and a
murmur, and the unintelligible sound of his voice; and then Mr. Lorry saw him,
surrounded by all, and in the midst of a line of twenty men long, all linked
shoulder to shoulder, and hand to shoulder, hurried out with cries of --
"Live the Bastille prisoner! Help for the Bastille prisoner's kindred in
La Force! Room for the Bastille prisoner in front there! Save the prisoner Evrémonde
at La Force!" and a thousand answering shouts.
He closed the lattice
again with a fluttering heart, closed the window and the curtain, hastened to
Lucie, and told her that her father was assisted by the people, and gone in
search of her husband. He found her child and Miss Pross with her; but, it
never occurred to him to be surprised by their appearance until a long time
afterwards, when he sat watching them in such quiet as the night knew.
Lucie had, by that
time, fallen into a stupor on the floor at his feet, clinging to his hand. Miss
Pross had laid the child down on his own bed, and her head had gradually fallen
on the pillow beside her pretty charge. O the long, long night, with the moans
of the poor wife! And O the long, long night, with no return of her father and
no tidings!
Twice more in the
darkness the bell at the great gate sounded, and the irruption was repeated,
and the grindstone whirled and spluttered. "What is it?" cried Lucie,
affrighted. "Hush! The soldiers' swords are sharpened there," said
Mr. Lorry. "The place is national property now, and used as a kind of
armoury, my love."
Twice more in all; but,
the last spell of work was feeble and fitful. Soon afterwards the day began to
dawn, and he softly detached himself from the clasping hand, and cautiously
looked out again. A man, so besmeared that he might have been a sorely wounded
soldier creeping back to consciousness on a field of slain, was rising from the
pavement by the side of the grindstone, and looking about him with a vacant
air. Shortly, this worn-out murderer descried in the imperfect light one of the
carriages of Monseigneur, and, staggering to that gorgeous vehicle, climbed in
at the door, and shut himself up to take his rest on its dainty cushions.
The great grindstone,
Earth, had turned when Mr. Lorry looked out again, and the sun was red on the
courtyard. But, the lesser grindstone stood alone there in the calm morning
air, with a red upon it that the sun had never given, and would never take away.
ONE of the first
considerations which arose in the business mind of Mr. Lorry when business
hours came round, was this: -- that he had no right to imperil Tellson's by
sheltering the wife of an emigrant prisoner under the Bank roof, His own
possessions, safety, life, he would have hazarded for Lucie and her child,
without a moment's demur; but the great trust he held was not his own, and as
to that business charge he was a strict man of business.
At first, his mind
reverted to Defarge, and he thought of finding out the wine-shop again and
taking counsel with its master in reference to the safest dwelling-place in the
distracted state of the city. But, the same consideration that suggested him,
repudiated him; he lived in the most violent Quarter, and doubtless was
influential there, and deep in its dangerous workings.
Noon coming, and the
Doctor not returning, and every minute's delay tending to compromise Tellson's,
Mr. Lorry advised with Lucie. She said that her father had spoken of hiring a
lodging for a short term, in that Quarter, near the Banking-house. As there was
no business objection to this, and as he foresaw that even if it were all well
with Charles, and he were to be released, he could not hope to leave the city,
Mr. Lorry went out in quest of such a lodging, and found a suitable one, high
up in a removed by-street where the closed blinds in all the other windows of a
high melancholy square of buildings marked deserted homes.
To this lodging he at
once removed Lucie and her child, and Miss Pross: giving them what comfort he
could, and much more than he had himself. He left Jerry with them, as a figure
to fill a doorway that would bear considerable knocking on the head, and
retained to his own occupations. A disturbed and doleful mind he brought to
bear upon them, and slowly and heavily the day lagged on with him.
It wore itself out, and
wore him out with it, until the Bank closed. He was again alone in his room of
the previous night, considering what to do next, when he heard a foot upon the
stair. In a few moments, a man stood in his presence, who, with a keenly
observant look at him, addressed him by his name.
"Your
servant," said Mr. Lorry. "Do you know me?"
He was a strongly made
man with dark curling hair, from forty-five to fifty years of age. For answer
he repeated, without any change of emphasis, the words:
"Do you know
me?"
"I have seen you
somewhere."
"Perhaps at my
wine-shop?"
Much interested and
agitated, Mr. Lorry said: "You come from Doctor Manette?"
"Yes. I come from
Doctor Manette."
"And what says he?
What does he send me?"
Defarge gave into his
anxious hand, an open scrap of paper. It bore the words in the Doctor's
writing:
"Charles is safe,
but I cannot safely leave this place yet. I have
obtained the favour
that the bearer has a short note from Charles to
his wife. Let the
bearer see his wife."
It was dated from La
Force, within an hour.
"Will you
accompany me," said Mr. Lorry, joyfully relieved after reading this note
aloud, "to where his wife resides?"
"Yes,"
returned Defarge.
Scarcely noticing as
yet, in what a curiously reserved and mechanical way Defarge spoke, Mr. Lorry
put on his hat and they went down into the courtyard. There, they found two
women; one, knitting.
"Madame Defarge,
surely!" said Mr. Lorry, who had left her in exactly the same attitude some
seventeen years ago.
"It is she,"
observed her husband.
"Does Madame go
with us?" inquired Mr. Lorry, seeing that she moved as they moved.
"Yes. That she may
be able to recognise the faces and know the persons. It is for their
safety."
Beginning to be struck
by Defarge's manner, Mr. Lorry looked dubiously at him, and led the way. Both
the women followed; the second woman being The Vengeance.
They passed through the
intervening streets as quickly as they might, ascended the staircase of the new
domicile, were admitted by Jerry, and found Lucie weeping, alone. She was
thrown into a transport by the tidings Mr. Lorry gave her of her husband, and
clasped the hand that delivered his note -- little thinking what it had been
doing near him in the night, and might, but for a chance, have done to him.
"DEAREST, -- Take
courage. I am well, and your father has influence around me. You cannot answer
this. Kiss our child for me."
That was all the
writing. It was so much, however, to her who received it, that she turned from
Defarge to his wife, and kissed one of the hands that knitted. It was a
passionate, loving, thankful, womanly action, but the hand made no response --
dropped cold and heavy, and took to its knitting again.
There was something in
its touch that gave Lucie a check. She stopped in the act of putting the note
in her bosom, and, with her hands yet at her neck, looked terrified at Madame
Defarge. Madame Defarge met the lifted eyebrows and forehead with a cold,
impassive stare.
"My dear,"
said Mr. Lorry, striking in to explain; "there are frequent risings in the
streets; and, although it is not likely they will ever trouble you, Madame
Defarge wishes to see those whom she has the power to protect at such times, to
the end that she may know them -- that she may identify them. I believe,"
said Mr. Lorry, rather halting in his reassuring words, as the stony manner of
all the three impressed itself upon him more and more, "I state the case,
Citizen Defarge?"
Defarge looked gloomily
at his wife, and gave no other answer than a gruff sound of acquiescence.
"You had better,
Lucie," said Mr. Lorry, doing all he could to propitiate, by tone and
manner, "have the dear child here, and our good Pross. Our good Pross,
Defarge, is an English lady, and knows no French."
The lady in question,
whose rooted conviction that she was more than a match for any foreigner, was
not to be shaken by distress and, danger, appeared with folded arms, and
observed in English to The Vengeance, whom her eyes first encountered,
"Well, I am sure, Boldface! I hope you are pretty well!" She also
bestowed a British cough on Madame Defarge; but, neither of the two took much
heed of her.
"Is that his
child?" said Madame Defarge, stopping in her work for the first time, and
pointing her knitting-needle at little Lucie as if it were the finger of Fate.
"Yes,
madame," answered Mr. Lorry; "this is our poor prisoner's darling
daughter, and only child."
The shadow attendant on
Madame Defarge and her party seemed to fall so threatening and dark on the
child, that her mother instinctively kneeled on the ground beside her, and held
her to her breast. The shadow attendant on Madame Defarge and her party seemed
then to fall, threatening and dark, on both the mother and the child.
"It is enough, my
husband," said Madame Defarge. "I have seen them. We may go."
But, the suppressed
manner had enough of menace in it -- not visible and presented, but indistinct
and withheld -- to alarm Lucie into saying, as she laid her appealing hand on
Madame Defarge's dress:
"You will be good
to my poor husband. You will do him no harm. You will help me to see him if you
can?"
"Your husband is
not my business here," returned Madame Defarge, looking down at her with
perfect composure. "It is the daughter of your father who is my business
here."
"For my sake,
then, be merciful to my husband. For my child's sake! She will put her hands
together and pray you to be merciful. We are more afraid of you than of these
others."
Madame Defarge received
it as a compliment, and looked at her husband. Defarge, who had been uneasily
biting his thumb-nail and looking at her, collected his face into a sterner
expression.
"What is it that
your husband says in that little letter?" asked Madame Defarge, with a
lowering smile. "Influence; he says something touching influence?"
"That my
father," said Lucie, hurriedly taking the paper from her breast, but with
her alarmed eyes on her questioner and not on it, "has much influence around
him."
"Surely it will
release him!" said Madame Defarge. "Let it do so."
"As a wife and
mother," cried Lucie, most earnestly, "I implore you to have pity on
me and not to exercise any power that you possess, against my innocent husband,
but to use it in his behalf. O sister-woman, think of me. As a wife and
mother!"
Madame Defarge looked,
coldly as ever, at the suppliant, and said, turning to her friend The
Vengeance:
"The wives and
mothers we have been used to see, since we were as little as this child, and
much less, have not been greatly considered? We have known their husbands and
fathers laid in prison and kept from them, often enough? All our lives, we have
seen our sister-women suffer, in themselves and in their children, poverty,
nakedness, hunger, thirst, sickness, misery, oppression and neglect of all
kinds?"
"We have seen
nothing else," returned The Vengeance.
"We have borne
this a long time," said Madame Defarge, turning her eyes again upon Lucie.
"Judge you! Is it likely that the trouble of one wife and mother would be
much to us now?"
She resumed her
knitting and went out. The Vengeance followed. Defarge went last, and closed
the door.
"Courage, my dear
Lucie," said Mr. Lorry, as he raised her. "Courage, courage! So far
all goes well with us -- much, much better than it has of late gone with many
poor souls. Cheer up, and have a thankful heart."
"I am not
thankless, I hope, but that dreadful woman seems to throw a shadow on me and on
all my hopes."
"Tut, tut!"
said Mr. Lorry; "what is this despondency in the brave little breast? A
shadow indeed! No substance in it, Lucie."
But the shadow of the
manner of these Defarges was dark upon himself, for all that, and in his secret
mind it troubled him greatly.
DOCTOR MANETTE did not
return until the morning of the fourth day of his absence. So much of what had
happened in that dreadful time as could be kept from the knowledge of Lucie was
so well concealed from her, that not until long afterwards, when France and she
were far apart, did she know that eleven hundred defenceless prisoners of both
sexes and all ages had been killed by the populace; that four days and nights
had been darkened by this deed of horror; and that the air around her had been
tainted by the slain. She only knew that there had been an attack upon the
prisons, that all political prisoners had been in danger, and that some had
been dragged out by the crowd and murdered.
To Mr. Lorry, the
Doctor communicated under an injunction of secrecy on which he had no need to
dwell, that the crowd had taken him through a scene of carnage to the prison of
La Force. That, in the prison he had found a self-appointed Tribunal sitting, before
which the prisoners were brought singly, and by which they were rapidly ordered
to be put forth to be massacred, or to be released, or (in a few cases) to be
sent back to their cells. That, presented by his conductors to this Tribunal,
he had announced himself by name and profession as having been for eighteen
years a secret and unaccused prisoner in the Bastille; that, one of the body so
sitting in judgment had risen and identified him, and that this man was
Defarge.
That, hereupon he had
ascertained, through the registers on the table, that his son-in-law was among
the living prisoners, and had pleaded hard to the Tribunal -- of whom some
members were asleep and some awake, some dirty with murder and some clean, some
sober and some not -- for his life and liberty. That, in the first frantic
greetings lavished on himself as a notable sufferer under the overthrown
system, it had been accorded to him to have Charles Darnay brought before the
lawless Court, and examined. That, he seemed on the point of being at once
released, when the tide in his favour met with some unexplained check (not
intelligible to the Doctor), which led to a few words of secret conference.
That, the man sitting as President had then informed Doctor Manette that the
prisoner must remain in custody, but should, for his sake, be held inviolate in
safe custody. That, immediately, on a signal, the prisoner was removed to the
interior of the prison again; but, that he, the Doctor, had then so strongly
pleaded for permission to remain and assure himself that his son-in-law was,
through no malice or mischance, delivered to the concourse whose murderous
yells outside the gate had often drowned the proceedings, that he had obtained
the permission, and had remained in that Hall of Blood until the danger was
over.
The sights he had seen
there, with brief snatches of food and sleep by intervals, shall remain untold.
The mad joy over the prisoners who were saved, had astounded him scarcely less
than the mad ferocity against those who were cut to pieces. One prisoner there
was, he said, who had been discharged into the street free, but at whom a
mistaken savage had thrust a pike as he passed out. Being besought to go to him
and dress the wound, the Doctor had passed out at the same gate, and had found
him in the arms of a company of Samaritans, who were seated on the bodies of
their victims. With an inconsistency as monstrous as anything in this awful
nightmare, they had helped the healer, and tended the wounded man with the
gentlest solicitude -- had made a litter for him and escorted him carefully
from the spot -- had then caught up their weapons and plunged anew into a
butchery so dreadful, that the Doctor had covered his eyes with his hands, and
swooned away in the midst of it.
As Mr. Lorry received
these confidences, and as he watched the face of his friend now sixty-two years
of age, a misgiving arose within him that such dread experiences would revive
the old danger. But, he had never seen his friend in his present aspect: he had
never at all known him in his present character. For the first time the Doctor
felt, now, that his suffering was strength and power. For the first time he
felt that in that sharp fire, he had slowly forged the iron which could break
the prison door of his daughter's husband, and deliver him. "It all tended
to a good end, my friend; it was not mere waste and ruin. As my beloved child
was helpful in restoring me to myself, I will be helpful now in restoring the
dearest part of herself to her; by the aid of Heaven I will do it!" Thus,
Doctor Manette. And when Jarvis Lorry saw the kindled eyes, the resolute face,
the calm strong look and bearing of the man whose life always seemed to him to
have been stopped, like a clock, for so many years, and then set going again
with an energy which had lain dormant during the cessation of its usefulness,
he believed.
Greater things than the
Doctor had at that time to contend with, would have yielded before his
persevering purpose. While he kept himself in his place, as a physician, whose
business was with all degrees of mankind, bond and free, rich and poor, bad and
good, he used his personal influence so wisely, that he was soon the inspecting
physician of three prisons, and among them of La Force. He could now assure
Lucie that her husband was no longer confined alone, but was mixed with the
general body of prisoners; he saw her husband weekly, and brought sweet
messages to her, straight from his lips; sometimes her husband himself sent a
letter to her (though never by the Doctor's hand), but she was not permitted to
write to him: for, among the many wild suspicions of plots in the prisons, the
wildest of all pointed at emigrants who were known to have made friends or
permanent connections abroad.
This new life of the
Doctor's was an anxious life, no doubt; still, the sagacious Mr. Lorry saw that
there was a new sustaining pride in it. Nothing unbecoming tinged the pride; it
was a natural and worthy one; but he observed it as a curiosity. The Doctor
knew, that up to that time, his imprisonment had been associated in the minds
of his daughter and his friend, with his personal affliction, deprivation, and
weakness. Now that this was changed, and he knew himself to be invested through
that old trial with forces to which they both looked for Charles's ultimate
safety and deliverance, he became so far exalted by the change, that he took
the lead and direction, and required them as the weak, to trust to him as the
strong. The preceding relative positions of himself and Lucie were reversed, yet
only as the liveliest gratitude and affection could reverse them, for he could
have had no pride but in rendering some service to her who had rendered so much
to him. "All curious to see," thought Mr. Lorry, in his amiably
shrewd way, "but all natural and right; so, take the lead, my dear friend,
and keep it; it couldn't be in better hands."
But, though the Doctor
tried hard, and never ceased trying, to get Charles Darnay set at liberty, or
at least to get him brought to trial, the public current of the time set too
strong and fast for him. The new era began; the king was tried, doomed, and
beheaded; the Republic of Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or Death, declared for
victory or death against the world in arms; the black flag waved night and day
from the great towers of Notre Dame; three hundred thousand men, summoned to
rise against the tyrants of the earth, rose from all the varying soils of
France, as if the dragon's teeth had been sown broadcast, and had yielded fruit
equally on hill and plain, on rock, in gravel, and alluvial mud, under the
bright sky of the South and under the clouds of the North, in fell and forest,
in the vineyards and the olive-grounds and among the cropped grass and the
stubble of the com, along the fruitful banks of the broad rivers, and in the
sand of the sea-shore. What private solicitude could rear itself against the
deluge of the Year One of Liberty -- the deluge rising from below, not falling
from above, and with the windows of Heaven shut, not opened!
There was no pause, no
pity, no peace, no interval of relenting rest, no measurement of time. Though
days and nights circled as regularly as when time was young, and the evening
and morning were the first day, other count of time there was none. Hold of it
was lost in the raging fever of a nation, as it is in the fever of one patient.
Now, breaking the unnatural silence of a whole city, the executioner showed the
people the head of the king -- and now, it seemed almost in the same breath,
the bead of his fair wife which had had eight weary months of imprisoned
widowhood and misery, to turn it grey.
And yet, observing the
strange law of contradiction which obtains in all such cases, the time was
long, while it flamed by so fast. A revolutionary tribunal in the capital, and
forty or fifty thousand revolutionary committees all over the land; a law of
the Suspected, which struck away all security for liberty or life, and
delivered over any good and innocent person to any bad and guilty one; prisons
gorged with people who had committed no offence, and could obtain no hearing;
these things became the established order and nature of appointed things, and
seemed to be ancient usage before they were many weeks old. Above all, one
hideous figure grew as familiar as if it had been before the general gaze from
the foundations of the world -- the figure of the sharp female called La
Guillotine.
It was the popular
theme for jests; it was the best cure for headache, it infallibly prevented the
hair from turning grey, it imparted a peculiar delicacy to the complexion, it
was the National Razor which shaved close: who kissed La Guillotine, looked
through the little window and sneezed into the sack. It was the sign of the
regeneration of the human race. It superseded the Cross. Models of it were worn
on breasts from which the Cross was discarded, and it was bowed down to and
believed in where the Cross was denied.
It sheared off heads so
many, that it, and the ground it most polluted, were a rotten red. It was taken
to pieces, like a toy-puzzle for a young Devil, and was put together again when
the occasion wanted it. It hushed the eloquent, struck down the powerful,
abolished the beautiful and good. Twenty-two friends of high public mark,
twenty-one living and one dead, it had lopped the heads off, in one morning, in
as many minutes. The name of the strong man of Old Scripture had descended to
the chief functionary who worked it; but, so armed, he was stronger than his
namesake, and blinder, and tore away the gates of God's own Temple every day.
Among these terrors,
and the brood belonging to them, the Doctor walked with a steady head:
confident in his power, cautiously persistent in his end, never doubting that
he would save Lucie's husband at last. Yet the current of the time swept by, so
strong and deep, and carried the time away so fiercely, that Charles had lain
in prison one year and three months when the Doctor was thus steady and
confident. So much more wicked and distracted had the Revolution grown in that
December month, that the rivers of the South were encumbered with the bodies of
the violently drowned by night, and prisoners were shot in lines and squares
under the southern wintry sun. Still, the Doctor walked among the terrors with
a steady head. No man better known than he, in Paris at that day; no man in a
stranger situation. Silent, humane, indispensable in hospital and prison, using
his art equally among assassins and victims, he was a man apart. In the
exercise of his skill, the appearance and the story of the Bastille Captive
removed him from all other men. He was not suspected or brought in question,
any more than if he bad indeed been recalled to life some eighteen years
before, or were a Spirit moving among mortals.
ONE YEAR and three
months. During all that time Lucie was never sure, from hour to hour, but that
the Guillotine would strike off her husband's head next day. Every day, through
the stony streets, the tumbrels now jolted heavily, filled with Condemned.
Lovely girls; bright women, brown-haired, black-haired, and grey; youths;
stalwart men and old; gentle born and peasant born; all red wine for La
Guillotine, all daily brought into light from the dark cellars of the loathsome
prisons, and carried to her through the streets to slake her devouring thirst.
Liberty, equality, fraternity, or death; -- the last, much the easiest to
bestow, O Guillotine!
If the suddenness of
her calamity, and the whirling wheels of the time, had stunned the Doctor's
daughter into awaiting the result in idle despair, it would but have been with
her as it was with many. But, from the hour when she had taken the white head
to her fresh young bosom in the garret of Saint Antoine, she had been true to
her duties. She was truest to them in the season of trial, as all the quietly
loyal and good will always be.
As soon as they were
established in their new residence, and her father had entered on the routine
of his avocations, she arranged the little household as exactly as if her
husband had been there. Everything had its appointed place and its appointed
time. Little Lucie she taught, as regularly, as if they had all been united in
their English home. The slight devices with which she cheated herself into the
show of a belief that they would soon be reunited -- the little preparations
for his speedy return, the setting aside of his chair and his books -- these,
and the solemn prayer at night for one dear prisoner especially, among the many
unhappy souls in prison and the shadow of death -- were almost the only
outspoken reliefs of her heavy mind.
She did not greatly
alter in appearance. The plain dark dresses, akin to mourning dresses, which
she and her child wore, were as neat and as well attended to as the brighter
clothes of happy days. She lost her colour, and the old and intent expression
was a constant, not an occasional, thing; otherwise, she remained very pretty
and comely. Sometimes, at night on kissing her father, she would burst into the
grief she had repressed all day, and would say that her sole reliance, under Heaven,
was on him. He always resolutely answered: "Nothing can happen to him
without my knowledge, and I know that I can save him, Lucie."
They had not made the
round of their changed life many weeks, when her father said to her, on coming
home one evening:
"My dear, there is
an upper window in the prison, to which Charles can sometimes gain access at
three in the afternoon. When he can get to it -- which depends on many
uncertainties and incidents -- he might see you in the street, he thinks, if
you stood in a certain place that I can show you. But you will not be able to
see him, my poor child, and even if you could, it would be unsafe for you to
make a sign of recognition."
"O show me the
place, my father, and I will go there every day."
From that time, in all
weathers, she waited there two hours. As the clock struck two, she was there,
and at four she turned resignedly away. When it was not too wet or inclement
for her child to be with her, they went together; at other times she was alone;
but, she never missed a single day.
It was the dark and
dirty corner of a small winding street. The hovel of a cutter of wood into
lengths for burning, was the only house at that end; all else was wall. On the
third day of her being there, he noticed her.
"Good day,
citizeness."
"Good day,
citizen."
This mode of address
was now prescribed by decree. It had been established voluntarily some time
ago, among the more thorough patriots; but, was now law for everybody.
"Walking here
again, citizeness?"
"You see me,
citizen!"
The wood-sawyer, who
was a little man with a redundancy of gesture (he had once been a mender of
roads), cast a glance at the prison, pointed at the prison, and putting his ten
fingers before his face to represent bars, peeped through them jocosely.
"But it's not my
business," said he. And went on sawing his wood.
Next day he was looking
out for her, and accosted her the moment she appeared.
"What? Walking
here again, citizeness?"
"Yes,
citizen."
"Ah! A child too!
Your mother, is it not, my little citizeness?"
"Do I say yes,
mamma?" whispered little Lucie, drawing close to her.
"Yes,
dearest."
"Yes,
citizen."
"Ah! But it's not
my business. My work is my business. See my saw! I call it my Little
Guillotine. La, la, la; La, la, la! And off his head comes!"
The billet fell as he
spoke, and he threw it into a basket.
"I call myself the
Samson of the firewood guillotine. See here again! Loo, loo, loo; Loo, loo,
loo! And off her head comes! Now, a child. Tickle, tickle; Pickle, pickle! And
off its head comes. all the family!"
Lucie shuddered as he
threw two more billets into his basket, but it was impossible to be there while
the wood-sawyer was at work, and not be in his sight. Thenceforth, to secure
his good will, she always spoke to him first, and often gave him drink-money,
which he readily received.
He was an inquisitive
fellow, and sometimes when she had quite forgotten him in gazing at the prison
roof and grates, and in lifting her heart up to her husband, she would come to
herself to find him looking at her, with his knee on his bench and his saw
stopped in its work. "But it's not my business!" he would generally
say at those times, and would briskly fall to his sawing again.
In all weathers, in the
snow and frost of winter, in the bitter winds of spring, in the hot sunshine of
summer, in the rains of autumn, and again in the snow and frost of winter,
Lucie passed two hours of every day at this place; and every day on leaving it,
she kissed the prison wall. Her husband saw her (so she learned from her
father) it might be once in five or six times: it might be twice or thrice
running: it might be, not for a week or a fortnight together. It was enough
that he could and did see her when the chances served, and on that possibility
she would have waited out the day, seven days a week.
These occupations
brought her round to the December month, wherein her father walked among the
terrors with a steady head. On a lightly-snowing afternoon she arrived at the
usual corner. It was a day of some wild rejoicing, and a festival. She had seen
the houses, as she came along, decorated with little pikes, and with little red
caps stuck upon them; also, with tricoloured ribbons; also, with the standard
inscription (tricoloured letters were the favourite), Republic One and
Indivisible. Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or Death!
The miserable shop of
the wood-sawyer was so small, that its whole surface furnished very indifferent
space for this legend. He had got somebody to scrawl it up for him, however,
who had squeezed Death in with most inappropriate difficulty. On his house-top,
he displayed pike and cap, as a good citizen must, and in a window he had stationed
his saw inscribed as his "Little Sainte Guillotine" -- for the great
sharp female was by that time popularly canonised. His shop was shut and he was
not there, which was a relief to Lucie, and left her quite alone.
But, he was not far
off, for presently she heard a troubled movement and a shouting coming along,
which filled her with fear. A moment afterwards, and a throng of people came
pouring round the corner by the prison wall, in the midst of whom was the
wood-sawyer hand in hand with The Vengeance. There could not be fewer than five
hundred people, and they were dancing like five thousand demons. There was no
other music than their own singing. They danced to the popular Revolution song,
keeping a ferocious time that was like a gnashing of teeth in unison. Men and
women danced together, women danced together, men danced together, as hazard
had brought them together. At first, they were a mere storm of coarse red caps
and coarse woollen rags; but, as they filled the place, and stopped to dance
about Lucie, some ghastly apparition of a dance-figure gone raving mad arose
among them. They advanced, retreated, struck at one another's hands, clutched
at one another's heads, spun round alone, caught one another and spun round in
pairs, until many of them dropped. While those were down, the rest linked hand
in hand, and all spun round together: then the ring broke, and in separate
rings of two and four they turned and turned until they all stopped at once,
began again, struck, clutched, and tore, and then reversed the spin, and all
spun round another way. Suddenly they stopped again, paused, struck out the
time afresh, formed into lines the width of the public way, and, with their
heads low down and their hands high up, swooped screaming off. No fight could have
been half so terrible as this dance. It was so emphatically a fallen sport -- a
something, once innocent, delivered over to all devilry -- a healthy pastime
changed into a means of angering the blood, bewildering the senses, and
steeling the heart. Such grace as was visible in it, made it the uglier,
showing how warped and perverted all things good by nature were become. The
maidenly bosom bared to this, the pretty almost-child's head thus distracted,
the delicate foot mincing in this slough of blood and dirt, were types of the
disjointed time.
This was the
Carmagnole. As it passed, leaving Lucie frightened and bewildered in the
doorway of the wood-sawyer's house, the feathery snow fell as quietly and lay
as white and soft, as if it had never been.
"O my
father!" for he stood before her when she lifted up the eyes she had
momentarily darkened with her hand; "such a cruel, bad sight."
"I know, my dear,
I know. I have seen it many times. Don't be frightened! Not one of them would
harm you."
"I am not
frightened for myself, my father. But when I think of my husband, and the
mercies of these people --"
"We will set him
above their mercies very soon. I left him climbing to the window, and I came to
tell you. There is no one here to see. You may kiss your hand towards that
highest shelving roof."
"I do so, father,
and I send him my Soul with it!"
"You cannot see
him, my poor dear?"
"No, father,"
said Lucie, yearning and weeping as she kissed her hand, "no."
A footstep in the snow.
Madame Defarge. "I salute you, citizeness," from the Doctor. "I
salute you, citizen." This in passing. Nothing more. Madame Defarge gone,
like a shadow over the white road.
"Give me your arm,
my love. Pass from here with an air of cheerfulness and courage, for his sake.
That was well done;" they had left the spot; "it shall not be in
vain. Charles is summoned for to-morrow."
"For to-morrow!
"
"There is no time
to lose. I am well prepared, but there are precautions to be taken, that could
not be taken until he was actually summoned before the Tribunal. He has not
received the notice yet, but I know that he will presently be summoned for to-morrow,
and removed to the Conciergerie; I have timely information. You are not
afraid?"
She could scarcely
answer, "I trust in you."
"Do so,
implicitly. Your suspense is nearly ended, my darling; he shall be restored to
you within a few hours; I have encompassed him with every protection. I must
see Lorry."
He stopped. There was a
heavy lumbering of wheels within hearing. They both knew too well what it
meant. One. Two. Three. Three tumbrils faring away with their dread loads over
the hushing snow.
"I must see
Lorry," the Doctor repeated, turning her another way.
The staunch old
gentleman was still in his trust; had never left it. He and his books were in
frequent requisition as to property confiscated and made national. What he
could save for the owners, he saved. No better man living to hold fast by what
Tellson's had in keeping, and to hold his peace.
A murky red and yellow
sky, and a rising mist from the Seine, denoted the approach of darkness. It was
almost dark when they arrived at the Bank. The stately residence of Monseigneur
was altogether blighted and deserted. Above a heap of dust and ashes in the
court, ran the letters: National Property. Republic One and Indivisible.
Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or Death!
Who could that be with
Mr. Lorry -- the owner of the riding-coat upon the chair -- who must not be
seen? From whom newly arrived, did he come out, agitated and surprised, to take
his favourite in his arms? To whom did he appear to repeat her faltering words,
when, raising his voice and turning his head towards the door of the room from
which he had issued, he said: "Removed to the Conciergerie, and summoned
for to-morrow?"
THE DREAD TRIBUNAL of
five Judges, Public Prosecutor, and determined Jury, sat every day. Their lists
went forth every evening, and were read out by the gaolers of the various
prisons to their prisoners. The standard gaoler-joke was, "Come out and
listen to the Evening Paper, you inside there!"
"Charles Evrémonde,
called Darnay!"
So at last began the
Evening Paper at La Force.
When a name was called,
its owner stepped apart into a spot reserved for those who were announced as
being thus fatally recorded. Charles Evrémonde, called Darnay, had reason to
know the usage; he had seen hundreds pass away so.
His bloated gaoler, who
wore spectacles to read with, glanced over them to assure himself that he had
taken his place, and went through the list, making a similar short pause at
each name. There were twenty-three names, but only twenty were responded to; for
one of the prisoners so summoned had died in gaol and been forgotten, and two
had already been guillotined and forgotten. The list was read, in the vaulted
chamber where Darnay had seen the associated prisoners on the night of his
arrival. Every one of those had perished in the massacre; every human creature
he had since cared for and parted with, had died on the scaffold.
There were hurried
words of farewell and kindness, but the parting was soon over. It was the
incident of every day, and the society of La Force were engaged in the
preparation of some games of forfeits and a little concert, for that evening.
They crowded to the grates and shed tears there; but, twenty places in the
projected entertainments had to be refilled, and the time was, at best, short
to the lock-up hour, when the common rooms and corridors would be delivered
over to the great dogs who kept watch there through the night. The prisoners
were far from insensible or unfeeling; their ways arose out of the condition of
the time. Similarly, though with a subtle difference, a species of fervour or
intoxication, known, without doubt, to have led some persons to brave the
guillotine unnecessarily, and to die by it, was not mere boastfulness, but a
wild infection of the wildly shaken public mind. In seasons of pestilence, some
of us will have a secret attraction to the disease -- a terrible passing
inclination to die of it. And all of us have like wonders hidden in our
breasts, only needing circumstances to evoke them.
The passage to the Conciergerie
was short and dark; the night in its vermin-haunted cells was long and cold.
Next day, fifteen prisoners were put to the bar before Charles Darnay's name
was called. All the fifteen were condemned, and the trials of the whole
occupied an hour and a half.
"Charles Evrémonde,
called Darnay," was at length arraigned.
His judges sat upon the
Bench in feathered hats; but the rough red cap and tricoloured cockade was the
head-dress otherwise prevailing. Looking at the Jury and the turbulent audience,
he might have thought that the usual order of things was reversed, and that the
felons were trying the honest men. The lowest, cruelest, and worst populace of
a city, never without its quantity of low, cruel, and bad, were the directing
spirits of the scene: noisily commenting, applauding, disapproving,
anticipating, and precipitating the result, without a check. Of the men, the
greater part were armed in various ways; of the women, some wore knives, some
daggers, some ate and drank as they looked on, many knitted. Among these last,
was one, with a spare piece of knitting under her arm as she worked. She was in
a front row, by the side of a man whom he had never seen since his arrival at
the Barrier, but whom he directly remembered as Defarge. He noticed that she
once or twice whispered in his ear, and that she seemed to be his wife; but,
what he most noticed in the two figures was, that although they were posted as
close to himself as they could be, they never looked towards him. They seemed
to be waiting for something with a dogged determination, and they looked at the
Jury, but at nothing else. Under the President sat Doctor Manette, in his usual
quiet dress. As well as the prisoner could see, he and Mr. Lorry were the only
men there, unconnected with the Tribunal, who wore their usual clothes, and had
not assumed the coarse garb of the Carmagnole.
Charles Evrémonde,
called Darnay, was accused by the public prosecutor as an emigrant, whose life
was forfeit to the Republic, under the decree which banished all emigrants on
pain of Death. It was nothing that the decree bore date since his return to
France. There he was, and there was the decree; he had been taken in France,
and his head was demanded.
"Take off his
head!" cried the audience. "An enemy to the Republic!"
The President rang his
bell to silence those cries, and asked the prisoner whether it was not true
that he had lived many years in England?
Undoubtedly it was.
Was he not an emigrant
then? What did he call himself?
Not an emigrant, he
hoped, within the sense and spirit of the law.
Why not? the President
desired to know.
Because he had
voluntarily relinquished a title that was distasteful to him, and a station
that was distasteful to him, and had left his country -- he submitted before
the word emigrant in the present acceptation by the Tribunal was in use -- to
live by his own industry in England, rather than on the industry of the
overladen people of France.
What proof had he of
this?
He handed in the names
of two witnesses; Theophile Gabelle, and Alexandre Manette.
But he had married in
England? the President reminded him.
True, but not an
English woman.
A citizeness of France?
Yes. By birth.
Her name and family?
"Lucie Manette,
only daughter of Doctor Manette, the good physician who sits there."
This answer had a happy
effect upon the audience. Cries in exaltation of the well-known good physician
rent the hall. So capriciously were the people moved, that tears immediately
rolled down several ferocious countenances which had been glaring at the
prisoner a moment before, as if with impatience to pluck him out into the
streets and kill him.
On these few steps of
his dangerous way, Charles Darnay had set his foot according to Doctor
Manette's reiterated instructions. The same cautious counsel directed every
step that lay before him, and had prepared every inch of his road.
The President asked,
why had he returned to France when he did, and not sooner?
He had not returned sooner,
he replied, simply because he had no means of living in France, save those he
had resigned; whereas, in England, he lived by giving instruction in the French
language and literature. He had returned when he did, on the pressing and
written entreaty of a French citizen, who represented that his life was
endangered by his absence. He had come back, to save a citizen's life, and to
bear his testimony, at whatever personal hazard, to the truth. Was that
criminal in the eyes of the Republic?
The populace cried
enthusiastically, "No!" and the President rang his bell to quiet
them. Which it did not, for they continued to cry "No!" until they
left off, of their own will.
The President required
the name of that citizen. The accused explained that the citizen was his first
witness. He also referred with confidence to the citizen's letter, which had
been taken from him at the Barrier, but which he did not doubt would be found
among the papers then before the President.
The Doctor had taken
care that it should be there -- had assured him that it would be there -- and
at this stage of the proceedings it was produced and read. Citizen Gabelle was
called to confirm it, and did so. Citizen Gabelle hinted, with infinite
delicacy and politeness, that in the pressure of business imposed on the
Tribunal by the multitude of enemies of the Republic with which it had to deal,
he had been slightly overlooked in his prison of the Abbaye -- in fact, had
rather passed out of the Tribunal's patriotic remembrance -- until three days
ago; when he had been summoned before it, and had been set at liberty on the
Jury's declaring themselves satisfied that the accusation against him was
answered, as to himself, by the surrender of the citizen Evrémonde, called
Darnay.
Doctor Manette was next
questioned. His high personal popularity, and the clearness of his answers,
made a great impression; but, as he proceeded, as he showed that the Accused
was his first friend on his release from his long imprisonment; that, the
accused had remained in England, always faithful and devoted to his daughter
and himself in their exile; that, so far from being in favour with the
Aristocrat government there, he had actually been tried for his life by it, as
the foe of England and friend of the United States -- as he brought these
circumstances into view, with the greatest discretion and with the
straightforward force of truth and earnestness, the Jury and the populace
became one. At last, when he appealed by name to Monsieur Lorry, an English
gentleman then and there present, who, like himself, had been a witness on that
English trial and could corroborate his account of it, the Jury declared that
they had heard enough, and that they were ready with their votes if the
President were content to receive them.
At every vote (the
Jurymen voted aloud and individually), the populace set up a shout of applause.
All the voices were in the prisoner's favour, and the President declared him
free.
Then, began one of
those extraordinary scenes with which the populace sometimes gratified their
fickleness, or their better impulses towards generosity and mercy, or which
they regarded as some set-off against their swollen account of cruel rage. No
man can decide now to which of these motives such extraordinary scenes were
referable; it is probable, to a blending of all the three, with the second
predominating. No sooner was the acquittal pronounced, than tears were shed as
freely as blood at another time, and such fraternal embraces were bestowed upon
the prisoner by as many of both sexes as could rush at him, that after his long
and unwholesome confinement he was in danger of fainting from exhaustion; none
the less because he knew very well, that the very same people, carried by
another current, would have rushed at him with the very same intensity, to rend
him to pieces and strew him over the streets.
His removal, to make
way for other accused persons who were to be tried, rescued him from these
caresses for the moment. Five were to be tried together, next, as enemies of
the Republic, forasmuch as they had not assisted it by word or deed. So quick
was the Tribunal to compensate itself and the nation for a chance lost, that
these five came down to him before he left the place, condemned to die within
twenty-four hours. The first of them told him so, with the customary prison
sign of Death -- a raised finger -- and they all added in words, "Long
live the Republic!"
The five had had, it is
true, no audience to lengthen their proceedings, for when he and Doctor Manette
emerged from the gate, there was a great crowd about it, in which there seemed
to be every face he had seen in Court -- except two, for which he looked in
vain. On his coming out, the concourse made at him anew, weeping, embracing,
and shouting, all by turns and all together, until the very tide of the river
on the bank of which the mad scene was acted, seemed to run mad, like the
people on the shore.
They put him into a
great chair they had among them, and which they had taken either out of the
Court itself, or one of its rooms or passages. Over the chair they had thrown a
red flag, and to the back of it they had bound a pike with a red cap on its
top. In this car of triumph, not even the Doctor's entreaties could prevent his
being carried to his home on men's shoulders, with a confused sea of red caps
heaving about him, and casting up to sight from the stormy deep such wrecks of
faces, that he more than once misdoubted his mind being in confusion, and that
he was in the tumbrel on his way to the Guillotine.
In wild dreamlike
procession, embracing whom they met and pointing him out, they carried him on.
Reddening the snowy streets with the prevailing Republican colour, in winding
and tramping through them, as they had reddened them below the snow with a deeper
dye, they carried him thus into the courtyard of the building where he lived.
Her father had gone on before, to prepare her, and when her husband stood upon
his feet, she dropped insensible in his arms.
As he held her to his
heart and turned her beautiful head between his face and the brawling crowd, so
that his tears and her lips might come together unseen, a few of the people
fell to dancing. Instantly, all the rest fell to dancing, and the courtyard
overflowed with the Carmagnole. Then, they elevated into the vacant chair a
young woman from the crowd to be carried as the Goddess of Liberty, and then
swelling and overflowing out into the adjacent streets, and along the river's
bank, and over the bridge, the Carmagnole absorbed them every one and whirled
them away.
After grasping the
Doctor's hand, as he stood victorious and proud before him; after grasping the
hand of Mr. Lorry, who came panting in breathless from his struggle against the
waterspout of the Carmagnole; after kissing little Lucie, who was lifted up to
clasp her arms round his neck; and after embracing the ever zealous and
faithful Pross who lifted her; he took his wife in his arms, and carried her up
to their rooms.
"Lucie! My own! I
am safe."
"O dearest
Charles, let me thank God for this on my knees as I have prayed to Him."
They all reverently
bowed their heads and hearts. When she was again in his arms, he said to her:
"And now speak to
your father, dearest. No other man in all this France could have done what he
has done for me."
She laid her head upon
her father's breast, as she had laid his poor head on her own breast, long,
long ago. He was happy in the return he had made her, he was recompensed for
his suffering, be was proud of his strength. "You must not be weak, my darling,"
he remonstrated; "don't tremble so. I have saved him."
"I HAVE SAVED
HIM." It was not another of the dreams in which he had often come back; he
was really here. And yet his wife trembled, and a vague but heavy fear was upon
her.
All the air round was
so thick and dark, the people were so passionately revengeful and fitful, the
innocent were so constantly put to death on vague suspicion and black malice,
it was so impossible to forget that many as blameless as her husband and as
dear to others as he was to her, every day shared the fate from which he had
been clutched, that her heart could not be as lightened of its load as she felt
it ought to be. The shadows of the wintry afternoon were beginning to fall, and
even now the dreadful carts were rolling through the streets. Her mind pursued
them, looking for him among the Condemned; and then she clung closer to his
real presence and trembled more.
Her father, cheering
her, showed a compassionate superiority to this woman's weakness, which was
wonderful to see. No garret, no shoemaking, no One Hundred and Five, North
Tower, now! He had accomplished the task he had set himself, his promise was
redeemed, he had saved Charles. Let them all lean upon him.
Their housekeeping was
of a very frugal kind: not only because that was the safest way of life,
involving the least offence to the people, but because they were not rich, and
Charles, throughout his imprisonment, had had to pay heavily for his bad food,
and for his guard, and towards the living of the poorer prisoners. Partly on
this account, and partly to avoid a domestic spy, they kept no servant; the
citizen and citizeness who acted as porters at the courtyard gate, rendered
them occasional service; and Jerry (almost wholly transferred to them by Mr.
Lorry) had become their daily retainer, and had his bed there every night.
It was an ordinance of
the Republic One and Indivisible of Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or Death,
that on the door or doorpost of every house, the name of every inmate must be
legibly inscribed in letters of a certain size, at a certain convenient height
from the ground. Mr. Jerry Cruncher's name, therefore, duly embellished the
doorpost down below; and, as the afternoon shadows deepened, the owner of that
name himself appeared, from overlooking a painter whom Doctor Manette had
employed to add to the list the name of Charles Evrémonde, called Darnay.
In the universal fear
and distrust that darkened the time, all the usual harmless ways of life were
changed. In the Doctor's little household, as in very many others, the articles
of daily consumption that were wanted were purchased every evening, in small
quantities and at various small shops. To avoid attracting notice, and to give
as little occasion as possible for talk and envy, was the general desire.
For some months past,
Miss Pross and Mr. Cruncher had discharged the office of purveyors; the former
carrying the money; the latter, the basket. Every afternoon at about the time
when the public lamps were lighted, they fared forth on this duty, and made and
brought home such purchases as were needful. Although Miss Pross, through her
long association with a French family, might have known as much of their
language as of her own, if she had had a mind, she had no mind in that
direction; consequently she knew no more of that "nonsense" (as she was
pleased to call it) than Mr. Cruncher did. So her manner of marketing was to
plump a noun-substantive at the head of a shopkeeper without any introduction
in the nature of an article, and, if it happened not to be the name of the
thing she wanted, to look round for that thing, lay hold of it, and hold on by
it until the bargain was concluded. She always made a bargain for it, by
holding up, as a statement of its just price, one finger less than the merchant
held up, whatever his number might be.
"Now, Mr.
Cruncher," said Miss Pross, whose eyes were red with felicity; "if
you are ready, I am."
Jerry hoarsely
professed himself at Miss Pross's service. He had worn all his rust off long
ago, but nothing would file his spiky head down.
"There's all manner
of things wanted," said Miss Pross, "and we shall have a precious
time of it. We want wine, among the rest. Nice toasts these Redheads will be
drinking, wherever we buy it."
"It will be much
the same to your knowledge, miss, I should think," retorted Jerry,
"whether they drink your health or the Old Un's."
"Who's he?"
said Miss Pross.
Mr. Cruncher, with some
diffidence, explained himself as meaning "Old Nick's."
"Ha!" said
Miss Pross, "it doesn't need an interpreter to explain the meaning of these
creatures. They have but one, and it's Midnight Murder, and Mischief."
"Hush, dear! Pray,
pray, be cautious!" cried Lucie.
"Yes, yes, yes,
I'll be cautious," said Miss Pross; "but I may say among ourselves,
that I do hope there will be no oniony and tobaccoey smotherings in the form of
embracings all round, going on in the streets. Now, Ladybird, never you stir
from that fire till I come back! Take care of the dear husband you have
recovered, and don't move your pretty head from his shoulder as you have it
now, till you see me again! May I ask a question, Doctor Manette, before I
go?"
"I think you may
take that liberty," the Doctor answered, smiling.
"For gracious
sake, don't talk about Liberty; we have quite enough of that," said Miss
Pross.
"Hush, dear!
Again?" Lucie remonstrated.
"Well, my
sweet," said Miss Pross, nodding her head emphatically, "the short
and the long of it is, that I am a subject of His Most Gracious Majesty King
George the Third;" Miss Pross curtseyed at the name; "and as such, my
maxim is, Confound their politics, Frustrate their knavish tricks, On him our
hopes we fix, God save the King!"
Mr. Cruncher, in an
access of loyalty, growlingly repeated the words after Miss Pross, Re somebody
at church.
"I am glad you
have so much of the Englishman in you, though I wish you had never taken that
cold in your voice," said Miss Pross, approvingly. "But the question,
Doctor Manette. Is there" -- it was the good creature's way to affect to
make light of anything that was a great anxiety with them all, and to come at
it in this chance manner -- "is there any prospect yet, of our getting out
of this place?"
"I fear not yet.
It would be dangerous for Charles yet."
"Heigh-ho-hum!"
said Miss Pross, cheerfully repressing a sigh as she glanced at her darling's
golden hair in the light of the fire, "then we must have patience and
wait: that's all. We must hold up our heads and fight low, as my brother
Solomon used to say. Now, Mr. Cruncher! -- Don't you move, Ladybird!"
They went out, leaving
Lucie, and her husband, her father, and the child, by a bright fire. Mr. Lorry
was expected back presently from the Banking House. Miss Pross had lighted the
lamp, but had put it aside in a corner, that they might enjoy the fire-light
undisturbed. Little Lucie sat by her grandfather with her hands clasped through
his arm: and he, in a tone not rising much above a whisper, began to ten her a
story of a great and powerful Fairy who had opened a prison-wall and let out a
captive who had once done the Fairy a service. All was subdued and quiet, and
Lucie was more at ease than she had been.
"What is
that?" she cried, all at once.
"My dear!"
said her father, stopping in his story, and laying his hand on hers,
"command yourself. What a disordered state you are in! The least thing --
nothing -- startles you! You, your father's daughter!"
"I thought, my
father," said Lucie, excusing herself, with a pale face and in a faltering
voice, "that I heard strange feet upon the stairs."
"My love, the
staircase is as still as Death."
As he said the word, a
blow was struck upon the door.
"Oh father,
father. What can this be! Hide Charles. Save him!"
"My child,"
said the Doctor, rising, and laying his hand upon her shoulder, "I have saved
him. What weakness is this, my dear! Let me go to the door."
He took the lamp in his
hand, crossed the two intervening outer rooms, and opened it. A rude clattering
of feet over the floor, and four rough men in red caps, armed with sabres and
pistols, entered the room.
"The Citizen Evrémonde,
called Darnay," said the first.
"Who seeks
him?" answered Darnay.
"I seek him. We
seek him. I know you, Evrémonde; I saw you before the Tribunal to-day. You are
again the prisoner of the Republic."
The four surrounded
him, where he stood with his wife and child clinging to him.
"Tell me how and
why am I again a prisoner?"
"It is enough that
you return straight to the Conciergerie, and will know to-morrow. You are
summoned for to-morrow."
Doctor Manette, whom
this visitation had so turned into stone, that be stood with the lamp in his
band, as if be woe a statue made to hold it, moved after these words were
spoken, put the lamp down, and confronting the speaker, and taking him, not
ungently, by the loose front of his red woollen shirt, said:
"You know him, you
have said. Do you know me?"
"Yes, I know you,
Citizen Doctor."
"We all know you,
Citizen Doctor," said the other three.
He looked abstractedly
from one to another, and said, in a lower voice, after a pause:
"Will you answer
his question to me then? How does this happen?"
"Citizen
Doctor," said the first, reluctantly, "he has been denounced to the
Section of Saint Antoine. This citizen," pointing out the second who had
entered, "is from Saint Antoine."
The citizen here
indicated nodded his head, and added:
"He is accused by
Saint Antoine."
"Of what?"
asked the Doctor.
"Citizen
Doctor," said the first, with his former reluctance, "ask no more. If
the Republic demands sacrifices from you, without doubt you as a good patriot
will be happy to make them. The Republic goes before all. The People is
supreme. Evrémonde, we are pressed."
"One word,"
the Doctor entreated. "Will you tell me who denounced him?"
"It is against
rule," answered the first; "but you can ask Him of Saint Antoine
here."
The Doctor turned his
eyes upon that man. Who moved uneasily on his feet, rubbed his beard a little,
and at length said:
"Well! Truly it is
against rule. But he is denounced -- and gravely -- by the Citizen and
Citizeness Defarge. And by one other."
"What other?"
"Do you ask,
Citizen Doctor?"
"Yes."
"Then," said
he of Saint Antoine, with a strange look, "you will be answered to-morrow.
Now, I am dumb!"
HAPPILY UNCONSCIOUS of
the new calamity at home, Miss Pross threaded her way along the narrow streets
and crossed the river by the bridge of the Pont-Neuf, reckoning in her mind the
number of indispensable purchases she had to make. Mr. Cruncher, with the basket,
walked at her side. They both looked to the right and to the left into most of
the shops they passed, had a wary eye for all gregarious assemblages of people,
and turned out of their road to avoid any very excited group of talkers. It was
a raw evening, and the misty river, blurred to the eye with blazing lights and
to the ear with harsh noises, showed where the barges were stationed in which
the smiths worked, making guns for the Army of the Republic. Woe to the man who
played tricks with that Army, or got undeserved promotion in it! Better for him
that his beard had never grown, for the National Razor shaved him close.
Having purchased a few
small articles of grocery, and a measure of oil for the lamp, Miss Pross
bethought herself of the wine they wanted. After peeping into several
wine-shops, she stopped at the sign of the Good Republican Brutus of Antiquity,
not far from the National Palace, once (and twice) the Tuileries, where the
aspect of things rather took her fancy. It had a quieter look than any other
place of the same description they had passed, and, though red with patriotic
caps, was not so red as the rest. Sounding Mr. Cruncher, and finding him of her
opinion, Miss Pross resorted to the Good Republican Brutus of Antiquity,
attended by her cavalier.
Slightly observant of
the smoky lights; of the people, pipe in mouth, playing with limp cards and
yellow dominoes; of the one bare-breasted, bare-armed, soot-begrimed workman
reading a journal aloud, and of the others listening to him; of the weapons
worn, or laid aside to be resumed; of the two or three customers fallen forward
asleep, who in the popular high-shouldered shaggy black spencer looked, in that
attitude, like slumbering bears or dogs; the two outlandish customers
approached the counter, and showed what they wanted.
As their wine was
measuring out, a man parted from another man in a corner, and rose to depart.
In going, he had to face Miss Pross. No sooner did he face her, than Miss Pross
uttered a scream, and clapped her hands.
In a moment, the whole
company were on their feet. That somebody was assassinated by somebody
vindicating a difference of opinion was the likeliest occurrence. Everybody
looked to see somebody fall, but only saw a man and a woman standing staring at
each other; the man with all the outward aspect of a Frenchman and a thorough
Republican; the woman, evidently English.
What was said in this
disappointing anti-climax, by the disciples of the Good Republican Brutus of
Antiquity, except that it was something very voluble and loud, would have been
as so much Hebrew or Chaldean to Miss Pross and her protector, though they had
been all ears. But, they bad no ears for anything in their surprise. For, it
must be recorded, that not only was Miss Pross lost in amazement and agitation,
but, Mr. Cruncher -- though it seemed on his own separate and individual
account -- was in a state of the greatest wonder.
"What is the
matter?" said the man who had caused Miss Pross to scream; speaking in a
vexed, abrupt voice (though in a low tone), and in English.
"Oh, Solomon, dear
Solomon!" cried Miss Pross, clapping her hands again. "After not
setting eyes upon you or hearing of you for so long a time, do I find you
here!"
"Don't call me
Solomon. Do you want to be the death of me?" asked the man, in a furtive,
frightened way.
"Brother,
brother!" cried Miss Pross, bursting into tears. "Have I ever been so
hard with you that you ask me such a cruel question?"
"Then hold your
meddlesome tongue," said Solomon, "and come out, if you want to speak
to me. Pay for your wine, and come out. Who's this man?"
Miss Pross, shaking her
loving and dejected head at her by no means affectionate brother, said through
her tears, "Mr. Cruncher."
"Let him come out
too," said Solomon. "Does he think me a ghost?"
Apparently, Mr.
Cruncher did, to judge from his looks. He said not a word, however, and Miss
Pross, exploring the depths of her reticule through her tears with great
difficulty paid for her wine. As she did so, Solomon turned to the followers of
the Good Republican Brutus of Antiquity, and offered a few words of explanation
in the French language, which caused them all to relapse into their former
places and pursuits.
"Now," said
Solomon, stopping at the dark street corner, "what do you want?"
"How dreadfully
unkind in a brother nothing has ever turned my love away from!" cried Miss
Pross, "to give me such a greeting, and show me no affection."
"There. Con-found
it! There," said Solomon, making a dab at Miss Pross's lips with his own.
"Now are you content?"
Miss Pross only shook
her head and wept in silence.
"If you expect me
to be surprised," said her brother Solomon, "I am not surprised; I
knew you were here; I know of most people who are here. If you really don't
want to endanger my existence -- which I half believe you do -- go your ways as
soon as possible, and let me go mine. I am busy. I am an official."
"My English
brother Solomon," mourned Miss Pross, casting up her tear-fraught eyes,
"that had the makings in him of one of the best and greatest of men in his
native country, an official among foreigners, and such foreigners! I would
almost sooner have seen the dear boy lying in his --"
"I said so!"
cried her brother, interrupting. "I knew it. You want to be the death of
me. I shall be rendered Suspected, by my own sister. Just as I am getting
on!"
"The gracious and
merciful Heavens forbid!" cried Miss Pross. "Far rather would I never
see you again, dear Solomon, though I have ever loved you truly, and ever
shall. Say but one affectionate word to me, and tell me there is nothing angry
or estranged between us, and I will detain you no longer."
Good Miss Pross! As if
the estrangement between them had come of any culpability of hers. As if Mr.
Lorry had not known it for a fact, years ago, in the quiet corner in Soho, that
this precious brother had spent her money and left her!
He was saying the
affectionate word, however, with a far more grudging condescension and
patronage than he could have shown if their relative merits and positions had
been reversed (which is invariably the case, all the world over), when Mr.
Cruncher, touching him on the shoulder, hoarsely and unexpectedly interposed
with the following singular question:
"I say! Might I
ask the favour? As to whether your name is John Solomon, or Solomon John?"
The official turned
towards him with sudden distrust. He had not previously uttered a word.
"Come!" said
Mr. Cruncher. "Speak out, you know." (Which, by the way, was more
than he could do himself.) "John Solomon, or Solomon John? She calls you
Solomon, and she must know, being your sister. And I know you're John, you
know. Which of the two goes first? And regarding that name of Pross, likewise.
That warn't your name over the water."
"What do you
mean?"
"Well, I don't
know all I mean, for I can't call to mind what your name was, over the
water."
"No?"
"No. But I'll
swear it was a name of two syllables."
"Indeed?"
"Yes. T'other
one's was one syllable. I know you. You was a spy- witness at the Bailey. What,
in the name of the Father of Lies, own father to yourself, was you called at
that time?"
"Barsad,"
said another voice, striking in.
"That's the name
for a thousand pound!" cried Jerry.
The speaker who struck
in, was Sydney Carton. He had his hands behind him under the skirts of his
riding-coat, and he stood at Mr. Cruncher's elbow as negligently as he might
have stood at the Old Bailey itself.
"Don't be alarmed,
my dear Miss Pross. I arrived at Mr. Lorry's, to his surprise, yesterday
evening; we agreed that I would not present myself elsewhere until all was
well, or unless I could be useful; I present myself here, to beg a little talk
with your brother. I wish you had a better employed brother than Mr. Barsad. I
wish for your sake Mr. Barsad was not a Sheep of the Prisons."
Sheep was a cant word
of the time for a spy, under the gaolers. The spy, who was pale, turned paler,
and asked him how he dared --
"I'll tell
you," said Sydney. "I lighted on you, Mr. Barsad, coming out of the
prison of the Conciergerie while I was contemplating the walls, an hour or more
ago. You have a face to be remembered, and I remember faces well. Made curious
by seeing you in that connection, and having a reason, to which you are no
stranger, for associating you with the misfortunes of a friend now very
unfortunate, I walked in your direction. I walked into the wine-shop here,
close after you, and sat near you. I had no difficulty in deducing from your
unreserved conversation, and the rumour openly going about among your admirers,
the nature of your calling. And gradually, what I had done at random, seemed to
shape itself into a purpose, Mr. Barsad."
"What
purpose?" the spy asked.
"It would be
troublesome, and might be dangerous, to explain in the street. Could you favour
me, in confidence, with some minutes of your company -- at the office of
Tellson's Bank, for instance?"
"Under a
threat?"
"Oh! Did I say
that?"
"Then, why should
I go there?"
"Really, Mr. Barsad,
I can't say, if you can't."
"Do you mean that
you won't say, sir?" the spy irresolutely asked.
"You apprehend me
very clearly, Mr. Barsad. I won't."
Carton's negligent
recklessness of manner came powerfully in aid of his quickness and skill, in such
a business as be had in his secret mind, and with such a man as he had to do
with. His practised eye saw it, and made the most of it.
"Now, I told you
so," said the spy, casting a reproachful look at his sister; "if any
trouble comes of this, it's your doing."
"Come, come, Mr.
Barsad!" exclaimed Sydney. "Don't be ungrateful. But for my great
respect for your sister, I might not have led up so pleasantly to a little
proposal that I wish to make for our mutual satisfaction. Do you go with me to
the Bank?"
"I'll hear what
you have got to say. Yes, I'll go with you."
"I propose that we
first conduct your sister safely to the corner of her own street. Let me take
your arm, Miss Pross. This is not a good city, at this time, for you to be out
in, unprotected; and as your escort knows Mr. Barsad, I will invite him to Mr.
Lorry's with us. Are we ready? Come then! "
Miss Pross recalled
soon afterwards, and to the end of her life remembered, that as she pressed her
hands on Sydney's arm and looked up in his face, imploring him to do no hurt to
Solomon, there was a braced purpose in the arm and a kind of inspiration in the
eyes, which not only contradicted his light manner, but changed and raised the
man. She was too much occupied then with fears for the brother who so little
deserved her affection, and with Sydney's friendly reassurances, adequately to
heed what she observed.
They left her at the
corner of the street, and Carton led the way to Mr. Lorry's, which was within a
few minutes' walk. John Barsad, or Solomon Pross, walked at his side.
Mr. Lorry had just
finished his dinner, and was sitting before a cheery little log or two of fire
-- perhaps looking into their blaze for the picture of that younger elderly
gentleman from Tellson's, who had looked into the red coals at the Royal George
at Dover, now a good many years ago. He turned his head as they entered, and
showed the surprise with which he saw a stranger.
"Miss Pross's
brother, sir," said Sydney. "Mr. Barsad."
"Barsad?"
repeated the old gentleman, "Barsad? I have an association with the name
-- and with the face."
"I told you you
had a remarkable face, Mr. Barsad," observed Carton, coolly. "Pray
sit down."
As he took a chair himself,
he supplied the link that Mr. Lorry wanted, by saying to him with a frown,
"Witness at that trial." Mr. Lorry immediately remembered, and
regarded his new visitor with an undisguised look of abhorrence.
"Mr. Barsad has
been recognised by Miss Pross as the affectionate brother you have heard
of," said Sydney, "and has acknowledged the relationship. I pass to
worse news. Darnay has been arrested again."
Struck with
consternation, the old gentleman exclaimed, "What do you tell me! I left
him safe and free within these two hours, and am about to return to him!"
"Arrested for all
that. When was it done, Mr. Barsad?"
"Just now, if at
all."
"Mr. Barsad is the
best authority possible, sir," said Sydney, "and I have it from Mr.
Barsad's communication to a friend and brother Sheep over a bottle of wine,
that the arrest has taken place. He left the messengers at the gate, and saw
them admitted by the porter. There is no earthly doubt that he is
retaken."
Mr. Lorry's business
eye read in the speaker's face that it was loss of time to dwell upon the
point. Confused, but sensible that something might depend on his presence of
mind, he commanded himself, and was silently attentive.
"Now, I
trust," said Sydney to him, "that the name and influence of Doctor
Manette may stand him in as good stead to-morrow -- you said he would be before
the Tribunal again to-morrow, Mr. Barsad? --"
"Yes; I believe
so."
"-- In as good
stead to-morrow as to-day. But it may not be so. I own to you, I am shaken, Mr.
Lorry, by Doctor Manette's not having had the power to prevent this
arrest."
"He may not have
known of it beforehand," said Mr. Lorry.
"But that very
circumstance would be alarming, when we remember how identified he is with his
son-in-law."
"That's
true," Mr. Lorry acknowledged, with his troubled hand at his chin, and his
troubled eyes on Carton.
"In short,"
said Sydney, "this is a desperate time, when desperate games are played
for desperate stakes. Let the Doctor play the winning game; I will play the losing
one. No man's life here is worth purchase. Any one carried home by the people
to-day, may be condemned to- morrow. Now, the stake I have resolved to play
for, in case of the worst, is a friend in the Conciergerie. And the friend I
purpose to myself to win, is Mr. Barsad."
"You need have
good cards, sir," said the spy.
"I'll run them
over. I'll see what I hold, -- Mr. Lorry, you know what a brute I am; I wish
you'd give me a little brandy."
It was put before him,
and he drank off a glassful -- drank off another glassful -- pushed the bottle
thoughtfully away.
"Mr. Barsad,"
he went on, in the tone of one who really was looking over a hand at cards:
"Sheep of the prisons, emissary of Republican committees, now turnkey, now
prisoner, always spy and secret informer, so much the more valuable here for
being English that an Englishman is less open to suspicion of subornation in
those characters than a Frenchman, represents himself to his employers under a
false name. That's a very good card. Mr. Barsad, now in the employ of the
republican French government, was formerly in the employ of the aristocratic
English government, the enemy of France and freedom. That's an excellent card.
Inference clear as day in this region of suspicion, that Mr. Barsad, still in
the pay of the aristocratic English government, is the spy of Pitt, the
treacherous foe of the Republic crouching in its bosom, the English traitor and
agent of all mischief so much spoken of and so difficult to find. That's a card
not to be beaten. Have you followed my hand, Mr. Barsad?"
"Not to understand
your play," returned the spy, somewhat uneasily.
"I play my Ace,
Denunciation of Mr. Barsad to the nearest Section Committee. Look over your
hand, Mr. Barsad, and see what you have. Don't hurry."
He drew the bottle
near, poured out another glassful of brandy, and drank it off. He saw that the
spy was fearful of his drinking himself into a fit state for the immediate
denunciation of him. Seeing it, he poured out and drank another glassful.
"Look over your
hand carefully, Mr. Barsad. Take time."
It was a poorer hand
than he suspected. Mr. Barsad saw losing cards in it that Sydney Carton knew
nothing of. Thrown out of his honourable employment in England, through too
much unsuccessful hard swearing there -- not because he was not wanted there;
our English reasons for vaunting our superiority to secrecy and spies are of
very modern date -- he knew that he had crossed the Channel, and accepted
service in France: first, as a tempter and an eavesdropper among his own
countrymen there: gradually, as a tempter and an eavesdropper among the
natives. He knew that under the overthrown government he had been a spy upon
Saint Antoine and Defarge's wine-shop; had received from the watchful police
such heads of information concerning Doctor Manette's imprisonment, release,
and history, as should serve him for an introduction to familiar conversation
with the Defarges; and tried them on Madame Defarge, and had broken down with
them signally. He always remembered with fear and trembling, that that terrible
woman had knitted when he talked with her, and had looked ominously at him as
her fingers moved. He had since seen her, in the Section of Saint Antoine, over
and over again produce her knitted registers, and denounce people whose lives
the guillotine then surely swallowed up. He knew, as every one employed as he
was did, that he was never safe; that flight was impossible; that he was tied
fast under the shadow of the axe; and that in spite of his utmost tergiversation
and treachery in furtherance of the reigning terror, a word might bring it down
upon him. Once denounced, and on such grave grounds as had just now been
suggested to his mind, he foresaw that the dreadful woman of whose unrelenting
character he had seen many proofs, would produce against him that fatal
register, and would quash his last chance of life. Besides that all secret men
are men soon terrified, here were surely cards enough of one black suit, to
justify the holder in growing rather livid as he turned them over.
"You scarcely seem
to like your hand," said Sydney, with the greatest composure. "Do you
play?"
"I think,
sir," said the spy, in the meanest manner, as he turned to Mr. Lorry,
"I may appeal to a gentleman of your years and benevolence, to put it to
this other gentleman, so much your junior, whether he can under any
circumstances reconcile it to his station to play that Ace of which he has
spoken. I admit that I am a spy, and that it is considered a discreditable
station -- though it must be filled by somebody; but this gentleman is no spy,
and why should he so demean himself as to make himself one?"
"I play my Ace,
Mr. Barsad," said Carton, taking the answer on himself, and looking at his
watch, "without any scruple, in a very few minutes."
"I should have
hoped, gentlemen both," said the spy, always striving to hook Mr. Lorry
into the discussion, "that your respect for my sister --"
"I could not
better testify my respect for your sister than by finally relieving her of her
brother," said Sydney Carton.
"You think not,
sir?"
"I have thoroughly
made up my mind about it."
The smooth manner of the
spy, curiously in dissonance with his ostentatiously rough dress, and probably
with his usual demeanour, received such a check from the inscrutability of
Carton, -- who was a mystery to wiser and honester men than he, -- that it
faltered here and failed him. While he was at a loss, Carton said, resuming his
former air of contemplating cards:
"And indeed, now I
think again, I have a strong impression that I have another good card here, not
yet enumerated. That friend and fellow-Sheep, who spoke of himself as pasturing
in the country prisons; who was he?"
"French. You don't
know him," said the spy, quickly.
"French, eh?"
repeated Carton, musing, and not appearing to notice him at all, though he
echoed his word. "Well; he may be."
"Is, I assure
you," said the spy; "though it's not important."
"Though it's not
important," repeated Carton, in the same mechanical way -- "though
it's not important -- No, it's not important. No. Yet I know the face."
"I think not. I am
sure not. It can't be," said the spy.
"It -- can't --
be," muttered Sydney Carton, retrospectively, and idling his glass (which
fortunately was a small one) again. "Can't -- be. Spoke good French. Yet
like a foreigner, I thought?"
"Provincial,"
said the spy.
"No.
Foreign!" cried Carton, striking his open hand on the table, as a light
broke clearly on his mind. "Cly! Disguised, but the same man. We had that
man before us at the Old Bailey."
"Now, there you
are hasty, sir," said Barsad, with a smile that gave his aquiline nose an
extra inclination to one side; "there you really give me an advantage over
you. Cly (who I will unreservedly admit, at this distance of time, was a
partner of mine) has been dead several years. I attended him in his last
illness. He was buried in London, at the church of Saint Pancras-in-the-Fields.
His unpopularity with the blackguard multitude at the moment prevented my
following his remains, but I helped to lay him in his coffin."
Here, Mr. Lorry became
aware, from where he sat, of a most remarkable goblin shadow on the wall.
Tracing it to its source, he discovered it to be caused by a sudden
extraordinary rising and stiffening of all the risen and stiff hair on Mr.
Cruncher's head.
"Let us be
reasonable," said the spy, "and let us be fair. To show you how
mistaken you are, and what an unfounded assumption yours is, I will lay before
you a certificate of Cly's burial, which I happened to have carried in my
pocket-book," with a hurried hand he produced and opened it, "ever
since. There it is. Oh, look at it, look at it! You may take it in your hand;
it's no forgery."
Here, Mr. Lorry
perceived the reflection on the wall to elongate, and Mr. Cruncher rose and
stepped forward. His hair could not have been more violently on end, if it had
been that moment dressed by the Cow with the crumpled horn in the house that
Jack built.
Unseen by the spy, Mr.
Cruncher stood at his side, and touched him on the shoulder like a ghostly
bailiff.
"That there Roger
Cly, master," said Mr. Cruncher, with a taciturn and iron-bound visage.
"So you put him in his coffin?"
"I did."
"Who took him out
of it?"
Barsad leaned back in
his chair, and stammered, "What do you mean?"
"I mean,"
said Mr. Cruncher, "that he warn't never in it. No! Not he! I'll have my
head took off, if he was ever in it."
The spy looked round at
the two gentlemen; they both looked in unspeakable astonishment at Jerry.
"I tell you,"
said Jerry, "that you buried paving-stones and earth in that there coffin.
Don't go and tell me that you buried Cly. It was a take in. Me and two more
knows it."
"How do you know
it?"
"What's that to
you? Ecod!" growled Mr. Cruncher, "it's you I have got a old grudge
again, is it, with your shameful impositions upon tradesmen! I'd catch hold of
your throat and choke you for half a guinea."
Sydney Carton, who,
with Mr. Lorry, had been lost in amazement at this turn of the business, here
requested Mr. Cruncher to moderate and explain himself.
"At another time,
sir," he returned, evasively, "the present time is ill- conwenient
for explainin'. What I stand to, is, that he knows well wot that there Cly was
never in that there coffin. Let him say he was, in so much as a word of one
syllable, and I'll either catch hold of his throat and choke him for half a
guinea;" Mr. Cruncher dwelt upon this as quite a liberal offer; "or
I'll out and announce him."
"Humph! I see one
thing," said Carton. "I hold another card, Mr. Barsad. Impossible,
here in raging Paris, with Suspicion filling the air, for you to outlive
denunciation, when you are in communication with another aristocratic spy of
the same antecedents as yourself, who, moreover, has the mystery about him of
having feigned death and come to life again! A plot in the prisons, of the
foreigner against the Republic. A strong card -- a certain Guillotine card! Do
you play?"
"No!"
returned the spy. "I throw up. I confess that we were so unpopular with
the outrageous mob, that I only got away from England at the risk of being
ducked to death, and that Cly was so ferreted up and down, that he never would
have got away at all but for that sham. Though how this man knows it was a
sham, is a wonder of wonders to me."
"Never you trouble
your head about this man," retorted the contentious Mr. Cruncher;
"you'll have trouble enough with giving your attention to that gentleman.
And look here! Once more!" -- Mr. Cruncher could not be restrained from
making rather an ostentatious parade of his liberality -- "I'd catch hold
of your throat and choke you for half a guinea."
The Sheep of the
prisons turned from him to Sydney Carton, and said, with more decision,
"It has come to a point. I go on duty soon, and can't overstay my time.
You told me you had a proposal; what is it? Now, it is of no use asking too much
of me. Ask me to do anything in my office, putting my head in great extra
danger, and I had better trust my life to the chances of a refusal than the
chances of consent. In short, I should make that choice. You talk of
desperation. We are all desperate here. Remember! I may denounce you if I think
proper, and I can swear my way through stone walls, and so can others. Now,
what do you want with me?"
"Not very much.
You are a turnkey at the Conciergerie?"
"I tell you once
for all, there is no such thing as an escape possible," said the spy,
firmly.
"Why need you tell
me what I have not asked? You are a turnkey at the Conciergerie?"
"I am
sometimes."
"You can be when
you choose?"
"I can pass in and
out when I choose."
Sydney Carton filled
another glass with brandy, poured it slowly out upon the hearth, and watched it
as it dropped. It being all spent, he said, rising:
"So far, we have
spoken before these two, because it was as well that the merits of the cards
should not rest solely between you and me. Come into the dark room here, and
let us have one final word alone."
WHILE SYDNEY CARTON and
the Sheep of the prisons were in the adjoining dark room, speaking so low that
not a sound was heard, Mr. Lorry looked at Jerry in considerable doubt and
mistrust. That honest tradesman's manner of receiving the look, did not inspire
confidence; he changed the leg on which he rested, as often as if he had fifty
of those limbs, and were trying them all; he examined his finger-nails with a
very questionable closeness of attention; and whenever Mr. Lorry's eye caught
his, he was taken with that peculiar kind of short cough requiring the hollow
of a hand before it, which is seldom, if ever, known to be an infirmity
attendant on perfect openness of character.
"Jerry," said
Mr. Lorry. "Come here."
Mr. Cruncher came
forward sideways, with one of his shoulders in advance of him.
"What have you
been, besides a messenger?"
After some cogitation,
accompanied with an intent look at his patron, Mr. Cruncher conceived the
luminous idea of replying, "Agicultooral character."
"My mind misgives
me much," said Mr. Lorry, angrily shaking a forefinger at him, "that
you have used the respectable and great house of Tellson's as a blind, and that
you have had an unlawful occupation of an infamous description. If you have,
don't expect me to befriend you when you get back to England. If you have,
don't expect me to keep your secret. Tellson's shall not be imposed upon."
"I hope,
sir," pleaded the abashed Mr. Cruncher, "that a gentleman like
yourself wot I've had the honour of odd jobbing till I'm grey at it, would
think twice about harming of me, even if it wos so -- I don't say it is, but
even if it wos. And which it is to be took into account that if it wos, it
wouldn't, even then, be all o' one side. There'd be two sides to it. There
might be medical doctors at the present hour, a picking up their guineas where
a honest tradesman don't pick up his fardens -- fardens! no, nor yet his half
fardens -- half fardens! no, nor yet his quarter -- a banking away like smoke
at Tellson's, and a cocking their medical eyes at that tradesman on the sly, a
going in and going out to their own carriages -- ah! equally like smoke, if not
more so. Well, that 'ud be imposing, too, on Tellson's. For you cannot sarse
the goose and not the gander. And here's Mrs. Cruncher, or leastways wos in the
Old England times, and would be to-morrow, if cause given, a floppin' again the
business to that degree as is ruinating -- stark ruinating! Whereas them
medical doctors' wives don't flop -- catch 'em at it! Or, if they flop, their
toppings goes in favour of more patients, and how can you rightly have one
without t'other? Then, wot with undertakers, and wot with parish clerks, and
wot with sextons, and wot with private watchmen (all awaricious and all in it),
a man wouldn't get much by it, even if it wos so. And wot little a man did get,
would never prosper with him, Mr. Lorry. He'd never have no good of it; he'd
want all along to be out of the line, if he, could see his way out, being once
in -- even if it wos so."
"Ugh!" cried
Mr. Lorry, rather relenting, nevertheless, "I am shocked at the sight of
you."
"Now, what I would
humbly offer to you, sir," pursued Mr. Cruncher, "even if it wos so,
which I don't say it is --"
"Don't
prevaricate," said Mr. Lorry.
"No, I will not,
sir," returned Mr. Crunches as if nothing were further from his thoughts
or practice -- "which I don't say it is -- wot I would humbly offer to
you, sir, would be this. Upon that there stool, at that there Bar, sets that
there boy of mine, brought up and growed up to be a man, wot will errand you,
message you, general-light-job you, till your heels is where your head is, if
such should be your wishes. If it wos so, which I still don't say it is (for I
will not prewaricate to you, sir), let that there boy keep his father's place,
and take care of his mother; don't blow upon that boy's father -- do not do it,
sir -- and let that father go into the line of the reg'lar diggin', and make
amends for what he would have undug -- if it wos so -- by diggin' of 'em in
with a will, and with conwictions respectin' the futur' keepin' of 'em safe.
That, Mr. Lorry," said Mr. Cruncher, wiping his forehead with his arm, as
an announcement that he had arrived at the peroration of his discourse,
"is wot I would respectfully offer to you, sir. A man don't see all this
here a goin' on dreadful round him, in the way of Subjects without heads, dear
me, plentiful enough fur to bring the price down to porterage and hardly that,
without havin' his serious thoughts of things. And these here would be mine, if
it wos so, entreatin' of you fur to bear in mind that wot I said just now, I up
and said in the good cause when I might have kep' it back."
"That at least is
true, said Mr. Lorry. "Say no more now. It may be that I shall yet stand
your friend, if you deserve it, and repent in action -- not in words. I want no
more words."
Mr. Cruncher knuckled
his forehead, as Sydney Carton and the spy returned from the dark room.
"Adieu, Mr. Barsad," said the former; "our arrangement thus
made, you have nothing to fear from me.')
He sat down in a chair
on the hearth, over against Mr. Lorry. When they were alone, Mr. Lorry asked
him what he had done?
"Not much. If it
should go ill with the prisoner, I have ensured access to him, once."
Mr. Lorry's countenance
fell.
"It is all I could
do," said Carton. "To propose too much, would be to put this man's
head under the axe, and, as he himself said, nothing worse could happen to him
if he were denounced. It was obviously the weakness of the position. There is
no help for it."
"But access to
him," said Mr. Lorry, "if it should go ill before the Tribunal, will
not save him."
"I never said it
would."
Mr. Lorry's eyes
gradually sought the fire; his sympathy with his darling, and the heavy
disappointment of his second arrest, gradually weakened them; he was an old man
now, overborne with anxiety of late, and his tears fell.
"You are a good
man and a true friend," said Carton, in an altered voice. "Forgive me
if I notice that you are affected. I could not see my father weep, and sit by,
careless. And I could not respect your sorrow more, if you were my father. You
are free from that misfortune, however."
Though he said the last
words, with a slip into his usual manner, there was a true feeling and respect
both in his tone and in his touch, that Mr. Lorry, who had never seen the
better side of him, was wholly unprepared for. He gave him his band, and Carton
gently pressed it.
"To return to poor
Darnay," said Carton. "Don't tell Her of this interview, or this
arrangement. It would not enable Her to go to see him. She might think it was
contrived, in case of the worse, to convey to him the means of anticipating the
sentence."
Mr. Lorry had not
thought of that, and he looked quickly at Carton to see if it were in his mind.
It seemed to be; he returned the look, and evidently understood it.
"She might think a
thousand things," Carton said, "and any of them would only add to her
trouble. Don't speak of me to her. As I said to you when I first came, I had
better not see her. I can put my hand out, to do any little helpful work for
her that my hand can find to do, without that. You are going to her, I hope?
She must be very desolate to-night."
"I am going now,
directly."
"I am glad of
that. She has such a strong attachment to you and reliance on you. How does she
look?"
"Anxious and
unhappy, but very beautiful."
"Ah!"
It was a long, grieving
sound, like a sigh -- almost like a sob. It attracted Mr. Lorry's eyes to
Carton's face, which was turned to the fire. A light, or a shade (the old
gentleman could not have said which), passed from it as swiftly as a change
will sweep over a hill-side on a wild bright day, and he lifted his foot to put
back one of the little flaming logs, which was tumbling forward. He wore the
white riding-coat and top-boots, then in vogue, and the light of the fire
touching their light surfaces made him look very pale, with his long brown
hair, all untrimmed, hanging loose about him. His indifference to fire was
sufficiently remarkable to elicit a word of remonstrance from Mr. Lorry; his
boot was still upon the hot embers of the flaming log, when it had broken under
the weight of Ms foot.
"I forgot
it," he said.
Mr. Lorry's eyes were
again attracted to his face. Taking note of the wasted air which clouded the
naturally handsome features, and having the expression of prisoners' faces
fresh in his mind, he was strongly reminded of that expression.
"And your duties
here have drawn to an end, sir?" said Carton, turning to him.
"Yes. As I was
telling you last night when Lucie came in so unexpectedly, I have at length
done all that I can do here. I hoped to have left them in perfect safety, and
then to have quitted Paris. I have my Leave to Pass. I was ready to go."
They were both silent.
"Yours is a long
life to look back upon, sir?" said Carton, wistfully.
"I am in my
seventy-eighth year."
"You have been
useful all your life; steadily and constantly occupied; trusted, respected, and
looked up to?"
"I have been a man
of business, ever since I have been a man. indeed, I may say that I was a man
of business when a boy."
"See what a place
you fill at seventy-eight. How many people will miss you when you leave it
empty!"
"A solitary old
bachelor," answered Mr. Lorry, shaking his head. "There is nobody to
weep for me."
"How can you say
that? Wouldn't She weep for you? Wouldn't her child?"
"Yes, yes, thank
God. I didn't quite mean what I said."
"It is a thing to
thank God for; is it not?"
"Surely,
surely."
"If you could say,
with truth, to your own solitary heart, to-night, 'I have secured to myself the
love and attachment, the gratitude or respect, of no human creature; I have won
myself a tender place in no regard; I have done nothing good or serviceable to
be remembered by!' your seventy- eight years would be seventy-eight heavy
curses; would they not?"
"You say truly,
Mr. Carton; I think they would be."
Sydney turned his eyes
again upon the fire, and, after a silence of a few moments, said:
"I should like to
ask you: -- Does your childhood seem far off? Do the days when you sat at your
mother's knee, seem days of very long ago?"
Responding to his
softened manner, Mr. Lorry answered:
"Twenty years
back, yes; at this time of my life, no. For, as I draw closer and closer to the
end, I travel in the circle, nearer and nearer to the beginning. It seems to be
one of the kind smoothings and preparings of the way. My heart is touched now,
by many remembrances that had long fallen asleep, of my pretty young mother
(and I so old!), and by many associations of the days when what we call the
World was not so real with me, and my faults were not confirmed in me."
"I understand the
feeling!" exclaimed Carton, with a bright flush. "And you are the
better for it?"
"I hope so."
Carton terminated the
conversation here, by rising to help him on with his outer coat; "But
you," said Mr. Lorry, reverting to the theme, "you are young."
"Yes," said
Carton. "I am not old, but my young way was never the way to age. Enough
of me."
"And of me, I am
sure," said Mr. Lorry. "Are you going out?"
"I'll walk with
you to her gate. You know my vagabond and restless habits. If I should prowl
about the streets a long time, don't be uneasy; I shall reappear in the
morning. You go to the Court to-morrow?"
"Yes,
unhappily."
"I shall be there,
but only as one of the crowd. My Spy will find a place for me. Take my arm,
sir."
Mr. Lorry did so, and
they went down-stairs and out in the streets. A few minutes brought them to Mr.
Lorry's destination. Carton left him there; but lingered at a little distance,
and turned back to the gate again when it was shut, and touched it. He had
heard of her going to the prison every day. "She came out here," he
said, looking about him, "turned this way, must have trod on these stones
often. Let me follow in her steps."
It was ten o'clock at
night when he stood before the prison of La Force, where she had stood hundreds
of times. A little wood-sawyer, having closed his shop, was smoking his pipe at
his shop-door.
"Good night,
citizen," said Sydney Carton, pausing in going by; for, the man eyed him
inquisitively.
"Good night,
citizen."
"How goes the
Republic?"
"You mean the
Guillotine. Not ill. Sixty-three to-day. We shall mount to a hundred soon.
Samson and his men complain sometimes, of being exhausted. Ha, ha, ha! He is so
droll, that Samson. Such a Barber!"
"Do you often go
to see him --"
"Shave? Always.
Every day. What a barber! You have seen him at work?"
"Never."
"Go and see him
when he has a good batch. Figure this to yourself, citizen; he shaved the
sixty-three to-day, in less than two pipes! Less than two pipes. Word of
honour!"
As the grinning little
man held out the pipe he was smoking, to explain how he timed the executioner,
Carton was so sensible of a rising desire to strike the life out of him, that
he turned away.
"But you are not
English," said the wood-sawyer, "though you wear English dress?"
"Yes," said
Carton, pausing again, and answering over his shoulder.
"You speak like a
Frenchman."
"I am an old student
here."
"Aha, a perfect
Frenchman! Good night, Englishman."
"Good night,
citizen."
"But go and see
that droll dog," the little man persisted, calling after him. "And
take a pipe with you!"
Sydney had not gone far
out of sight, when he stopped in the middle of the street under a glimmering
lamp, and wrote with his pencil on a scrap of paper. Then, traversing with the
decided step of one who remembered the way well, several dark and dirty streets
-- much dirtier than usual, for the best public thoroughfares remained
uncleansed in those times of terror -- he stopped at a chemist's shop, which
the owner was closing with his own hands. A small, dim, crooked shop, kept in a
tortuous, up-hill thoroughfare, by a small, dim, crooked man.
Giving this citizen,
too, good night, as he confronted him at his counter, he laid the scrap of
paper before him. "Whew!" the chemist whistled softly, as he read it.
"Hi! hi! hi!"
Sydney Carton took no
heed, and the chemist said:
"For you,
citizen?"
"For me."
"You will be
careful to keep them separate, citizen? You know the consequences of mixing
them?"
"Perfectly."
Certain small packets
were made and given to him. He put them, one by one, in the breast of his inner
coat, counted out the money for them, and deliberately left the shop.
"There is nothing more to do," said he, glancing upward at the moon,
"until to-morrow. I can't sleep."
It was not a reckless
manner, the manner in which he said these words aloud under the fast-sailing
clouds, nor was it more expressive of negligence than defiance. It was the
settled manner of a tired man, who had wandered and struggled and got lost, but
who at length struck into his road and saw its end.
Long ago, when he had
been famous among his earliest competitors as a youth of great promise, be had
followed his father to the grave. His mother had died, years before. These
solemn words, which had been read at his father's grave, arose in his mind as
he went down the dark streets, among the heavy shadows, with the moon and the
clouds sailing on high above him. "I am the resurrection and the life,
saith the Lord: he that believeth in me, though he were dead, yet shall he
live: and whosoever liveth and believeth in me, shall never die."
In a city dominated by
the axe, alone at night, with natural sorrow rising in him for the sixty-three
who had been that day put to death, and for to-morrow's victims then awaiting
their doom in the prisons, and still of to-morrow's and to-morrow's, the chain
of association that brought the words home, like a rusty old ship's anchor from
the deep, might have been easily found. He did not seek it, but repeated them
and went on.
With a solemn interest
in the lighted windows where the people were going to rest, forgetful through a
few calm hours of the horrors surrounding them; in the towers of the churches,
where no prayers were said, for the popular revulsion had even travelled that
length of self- destruction from years of priestly impostors, plunderers, and
profligates; in the distant burial-places, reserved, as they wrote upon the
gates, for Eternal Sleep; in the abounding gaols; and in the streets along
which the sixties rolled to a death which had become so common and material,
that no sorrowful story of a haunting Spirit ever arose among the people out of
all the working of the Guillotine; with a solemn interest in the whole life and
death of the city settling down to its short nightly pause in fury; Sydney
Carton crossed the Seine again for the lighter streets.
Few coaches were
abroad, for riders in coaches were liable to be suspected, and gentility hid
its head in red nightcaps, and put on heavy shoes, and trudged. But, the
theatres were all well filled, and the people poured cheerfully out as he
passed, and went chatting home. At one of the theatre doors, there was a little
girl with a mother, looking for a way across the street through the mud. He
carried the child over, and before, the timid arm was loosed from his neck
asked her for a kiss.
"I am the
resurrection and the life, saith the Lord: he that believeth in me, though he
were dead, yet shall he live: and whosoever liveth and believeth in me, shall
never die."
Now, that the streets
were quiet, and the night wore on, the words were in the echoes of his feet,
and were in the air. Perfectly calm and steady, he sometimes repeated them to
himself as he walked; but, he heard them always.
The night wore out,
and, as he stood upon the bridge listening to the water as it splashed the
river-walls of the Island of Paris, where the picturesque confusion of houses
and cathedral shone bright in the light of the moon, the day came coldly,
looking like a dead face out of the sky. Then, the night, with the moon and the
stars, turned pale and died, and for a little while it seemed as if Creation
were delivered over to Death's dominion.
But, the glorious sun,
rising, seemed to strike those words, that burden of the night, straight and
warm to his heart in its long bright rays. And looking along them, with
reverently shaded eyes, a bridge of light appeared to span the air between him
and the sun, while the river sparkled under it.
The strong tide, so
swift, so deep, and certain, was like a congenial friend, in the morning
stillness. He walked by the stream, far from the houses, and in the light and
warmth of the sun fell asleep on the bank. When he awoke and was afoot again,
he lingered there yet a little longer, watching an eddy that turned and turned
purposeless, until the stream absorbed it, and carried it on to the sea. --
"Like me!"
A trading-boat, with a
sail of the softened colour of a dead leaf, then glided into his view, floated
by him, and died away. As its silent track in the water disappeared, the prayer
that had broken up out of his heart for a merciful consideration of all his poor
blindnesses and errors, ended in the words, "I am the resurrection and the
life."
Mr. Lorry was already
out when he got back, and it was easy to surmise where the good old man was
gone. Sydney Carton drank nothing but a tittle coffee, ate some bread, and,
having washed and changed to refresh himself, went out to the place of trial.
The court was all astir
and a-buzz, when the black sheep -- whom many fell away from in dread --
pressed him into an obscure corner among the crowd. Mr. Lorry was there, and
Doctor Manette was there. She was there, sitting beside her father.
When her husband was
brought in, she turned a look upon him, so sustaining, so encouraging, so full
of admiring love and pitying tenderness, yet so courageous for his sake, that
it called the healthy blood into his face, brightened his glance, and animated
his heart. If there had been any eyes to notice the influence of her look, on
Sydney Carton, it would have been seen to be the same influence exactly.
Before that unjust
Tribunal, there was little or no order of procedure, ensuring to any accused
person any reasonable hearing. There could have been no such Revolution, if all
laws, forms, and ceremonies, had not first been so monstrously abused, that the
suicidal vengeance of the Revolution was to scatter them all to the winds.
Every eye was turned to
the jury. The same determined patriots and good republicans as yesterday and
the day before, and to-morrow and the day after. Eager and prominent among
them, one man with a craving face, and his fingers perpetually hovering about
his lips, whose appearance gave great satisfaction to the spectators. A
life-thirsting, cannibal- looking, bloody-minded juryman, the Jacques Three of
St. Antoine. The whole jury, as a jury of dogs empannelled to try the deer.
Every eye then turned
to the five judges and the public prosecutor. No favourable leaning in that
quarter to-day. A fell, uncompromising, murderous business-meaning there. Every
eye then sought some other eye in the crowd, and gleamed at it approvingly; and
heads nodded at one another, before bending forward with a strained attention.
Charles Evrémonde,
called Darnay. Released yesterday. Reaccused and retaken yesterday. Indictment
delivered to him last night. Suspected and Denounced enemy of the Republic,
Aristocrat, one of a family of tyrants, one of a race proscribed, for that they
had used their abolished privileges to the infamous oppression of the people.
Charles Evrémonde, called Darnay, in right of such proscription, absolutely
Dead in Law.
To this effect, in as
few or fewer words, the Public Prosecutor.
The President asked,
was the Accused openly denounced or secretly?
"Openly,
President."
"By whom?"
"Three voices.
Ernest Defarge, wine-vendor of St. Antoine."
"Good."
"Therese Defarge,
his wife."
"Good."
"Alexandre
Manette, physician."
A great uproar took
place in the court, and in the midst of it, Doctor Manette was seen, pale and
trembling, standing where he had been seated.
"President, I
indignantly protest to you that this is a forgery and a fraud. You know the
accused to be the husband of my daughter. My daughter, and those dear to her,
are far dearer to me than my life. Who and where is the false conspirator who
says that I denounce the husband of my child!"
"Citizen Manette,
be tranquil. To fail in submission to the authority of the Tribunal would be to
put yourself out of Law. As to what is dearer to you than life, nothing can be
so dear to a good citizen as the Republic."
Loud acclamations
hailed this rebuke. The President rang his bell, and with warmth resumed.
"If the Republic
should demand of you the sacrifice of your child herself, you would have no
duty but to sacrifice her. Listen to what is to follow. In the meanwhile, be
silent!"
Frantic acclamations
were again raised. Doctor Manette sat down, with his eyes looking around, and
his lips trembling; his daughter drew closer to him. The craving man on the
jury rubbed his hands together, and restored the usual hand to his mouth.
Defarge was produced,
when the court was quiet enough to admit of his being heard, and rapidly
expounded the story of the imprisonment, and of his having been a mere boy in
the Doctor's service, and of the release, and of the state of the prisoner when
released and delivered to him. This short examination followed, for the court
was quick with its work.
"You did good
service at the taking of the Bastille, citizen?"
"I believe
so."
Here, an excited woman
screeched from the crowd: "You were one of the best patriots there. Why
not say so? You were a cannoneer that day there, and you were among the first
to enter the accursed fortress when it fell. Patriots, I speak the truth!"
It was The Vengeance
who, amidst the warm commendations of the audience, thus assisted the
proceedings. The President rang his bell; but, The Vengeance, warming with
encouragement, shrieked, "I defy that bell!" wherein she was likewise
much commended.
"Inform the
Tribunal of what you did that day within the Bastille, citizen."
"I knew,"
said Defarge, looking down at his wife, who stood at the bottom of the steps on
which he was raised, looking steadily up at him; "I knew that this
prisoner, of whom I speak, had been confined in a cell known as One Hundred and
Five, North Tower. I knew it from himself. He knew himself by no other name
than One Hundred and Five, North Tower, when he made shoes under my care. As I
serve my gun that day, I resolve, when the place shall fall, to examine that
cell. It falls. I mount to the cell, with a fellow-citizen who is one of the
Jury, directed by a gaoler. I examine it, very closely. In a hole in the
chimney, where a stone has been worked out and replaced, I find a written
paper. This is that written paper. I have made it my business to examine some
specimens of the writing of Doctor Manette. This is the writing of Doctor
Manette. I confide this paper, in the writing of Doctor Manette, to the hands
of the President."
"Let it be
read."
In a dead silence and
stillness -- the prisoner under trial looking lovingly at his wife, his wife
only looking from him to look with solicitude at her father, Doctor Manette
keeping his eyes fixed on the reader, Madame Defarge never taking hers from the
prisoner, Defarge never taking his from his feasting wife, and all the other
eyes there intent upon the Doctor, who saw none of them -- the paper was read,
as follows.
"I, ALEXANDRE
MANETTE, unfortunate physician, native of Beauvais, and afterwards resident in
Paris, write this melancholy paper in my doleful cell in the Bastille, during
the last month of the year, 1767. I write it at stolen intervals, under every
difficulty. I design to secrete it in the wall of the chimney, where I have
slowly and laboriously made a place of concealment for it. Some pitying hand may
find it there, when I and my sorrows are dust.
"These words are
formed by the rusty iron point with which I write with difficulty in scrapings
of soot and charcoal from the chimney, mixed with blood, in the last month of
the tenth year of my captivity. Hope has quite departed from my breast. I know
from terrible warnings I have noted in myself that my reason will not long
remain unimpaired, but I solemnly declare that I am at this time in the
possession of my right mind -- that my memory is exact and circumstantial --
and that I write the truth as I shall answer for these my last recorded words,
whether they be ever read by men or not, at the Eternal Judgment-seat.
"One cloudy
moonlight night, in the third week of December (I think the twenty-second of
the month) in the year 1757, I was walking on a retired part of the quay by the
Seine for the refreshment of the frosty air, at an hour's distance from my
place of residence in the Street of the School of Medicine, when a carriage
came along behind me, driven very fast. As I stood aside to let that carriage
pass, apprehensive that it might otherwise run me down, a head was put out at
the window, and a voice called to the driver to stop.
"The carriage
stopped as soon as the driver could rein in his horses, and the same voice
called to me by my name. I answered. The carriage was then so far in advance of
me that two gentlemen had time to open the door and alight before I came up
with it. I observed that they were both wrapped in cloaks, and appeared to conceal
themselves. As they stood side by side near the carriage door, I also observed
that they both looked of about my own age, or rather younger, and that they
were greatly alike, in stature, manner, voice, and (as far as I could see) face
too.
"'You are Doctor
Manette?' said one.
"I am."
"'Doctor Manette,
formerly of Beauvais,' said the other; 'the young physician, originally an
expert surgeon, who within the last year or two has made a rising reputation in
Paris?'
"'Gentlemen,' I
returned, 'I am that Doctor Manette of whom you speak so graciously.'
"'We have been to
your residence,' said the first, 'and not being so fortunate as to find you
there, and being informed that you were probably walking in this direction, we
followed, in the hope of overtaking you. Will you please to enter the
carriage?'
"The manner of
both was imperious, and they both moved, as these words were spoken, so as to
place me between themselves and the carriage door. They were armed. I was not.
"'Gentlemen,' said
I, 'pardon me; but I usually inquire who does me the honour to seek my
assistance, and what is the nature of the case to which I am summoned.'
"The reply to this
was made by him who had spoken second. 'Doctor, your clients are people of
condition. As to the nature of the case, our confidence in your skill assures
us that you will ascertain it for yourself better than we can describe it.
Enough. Will you please to enter the carriage?'
"I could do
nothing but comply, and I entered it in silence. They both entered after me --
the last springing in, after putting up the steps. The carriage turned about,
and drove on at its former speed.
"I repeat this
conversation exactly as it occurred. I have no doubt that it is, word for word,
the same. I describe everything exactly as it took place, constraining my mind
not to wander from the task. Where I make the broken marks that follow here, I
leave off for the time, and put my paper in its hiding-place. * * * *
"The carriage left
the streets behind, passed the North Barrier, and emerged upon the country
road. At two-thirds of a league from the Barrier -- I did not estimate the
distance at that time, but afterwards when I traversed it -- it struck out of
the main avenue, and presently stopped at a solitary house, We all three
alighted, and walked, by a damp soft foot- path in a garden where a neglected
fountain had overflowed, to the door of the house. It was not opened
immediately, in answer to the ringing of the bell, and one of my two conductors
struck the man who opened it, with his heavy riding glove, across the face.
"There was nothing
in this action to attract my particular attention, for I had seen common people
struck more commonly than dogs. But, the other of the two, being angry
likewise, struck the man in like manner with his arm; the look and bearing of
the brothers were then so exactly alike, that I then first perceived them to be
twin brothers.
"From the time of
our alighting at the outer gate (which we found locked, and which one of the
brothers had opened to admit us, and had relocked), I had heard cries
proceeding from an upper chamber. I was conducted to this chamber straight, the
cries growing louder as we ascended the stairs, and I found a patient in a high
fever of the brain, lying on a bed.
"The patient was a
woman of great beauty, and young; assuredly not much past twenty. Her hair was
torn and ragged, and her arms were bound to her sides with sashes and
handkerchiefs. I noticed that these bonds were all portions of a gentleman's
dress. On one of them, which was a fringed scarf for a dress of ceremony, I saw
the armorial bearings of a Noble, and the letter E.
"I saw this,
within the first minute of my contemplation of the patient; for, in her
restless strivings she had turned over on her face on the edge of the bed, had
drawn the end of the scarf into her mouth, and was in danger of suffocation. My
first act was to put out my hand to relieve her breathing; and in moving the
scarf aside, the embroidery in the corner caught my sight.
"I turned her gently
over, placed my hands upon her breast to calm her and keep her down, and looked
into her face. Her eyes were dilated and wild, and she constantly uttered
piercing shrieks, and repeated the words, 'My husband, my father, and my
brother!' and then counted up to twelve, and said, 'Hush!' For an instant, and
no more, she would pause to listen, and then the piercing shrieks would begin
again, and she would repeat the cry, 'My husband, my father, and my brother!'
and would count up to twelve, and say, 'Hush!' There was no variation in the
order, or the manner. There was no cessation, but the regular moment's pause,
in the utterance of these sounds.
"'How long,' I
asked, 'has this lasted?'
"To distinguish
the brothers, I will call them the elder and the younger; by the elder, I mean
him who exercised the most authority. It was the elder who replied, 'Since
about this hour last night.'
"'She has a
husband, a father, and a brother?'
"'A brother.'
"'I do not address
her brother?'
"He answered with
great contempt, 'No.'
"'She has some
recent association with the number twelve?'
"The younger
brother impatiently rejoined, 'With twelve o'clock?'
"'See, gentlemen,'
said I, still keeping my hands upon her breast, 'how useless I am, as you have
brought me! If I had known what I was coming to see, I could have come
provided. As it is, time must be lost. There are no medicines to be obtained in
this lonely place.'
"The elder brother
looked to the younger, who said haughtily, 'There is a case of medicines here;'
and brought it from a closet, and put it on the table. * * * *
"I opened some of
the bottles, smelt them, and put the stoppers to my lips. If I had wanted to
use anything save narcotic medicines that were poisons in themselves, I would
not have administered any of those.
"'Do you doubt
them?' asked the younger brother.
"'You see,
monsieur, I am going to use them,' I replied, and said no more.
"I made the
patient swallow, with great difficulty, and after many efforts, the dose that I
desired to give. As I intended to repeat it after a while, and as it was
necessary to watch its influence, I then sat down by the side of the bed. There
was a timid and suppressed woman in attendance (wife of the man down-stairs),
who had retreated into a corner. The house was damp and decayed, indifferently
furnished -- evidently, recently occupied and temporarily used. Some thick old
hangings had been nailed up before the windows, to deaden the sound of the
shrieks. They continued to be uttered in their regular succession, with the
cry, 'My husband, my father, and my brother!' the counting up to twelve, and
'Hush!' The frenzy was so violent, that I had not unfastened the bandages
restraining the arms; but, I had looked to them, to see that they were not
painful. The only spark of encouragement in the case, was, that my hand upon
the sufferer's breast had this much soothing influence, that for minutes at a
time it tranquillised the figure. It had no effect upon the cries; no pendulum
could be more regular.
"For the reason
that my hand had this effect (I assume), I had sat by the side of the bed for
half an hour, with the two brothers looking on, before the elder said:
"'There is another
patient.'
"I was startled,
and asked, 'Is it a pressing case?'
"'You had better
see,' he carelessly answered; and took up a light. * * * *
"The other patient
lay in a back room across a second staircase, which was a species of loft over
a stable. There was a low plastered ceiling to a part of it; the rest was open,
to the ridge of the tiled roof, and there were beams across. Hay and straw were
stored in that portion of the place, fagots for firing, and a heap of apples in
sand. I had to pass through that part, to get at the other. My memory is
circumstantial and unshaken. I try it with these details, and I see them all,
in this my cell in the Bastille, near the close of the tenth year of my
captivity, as I saw them all that night.
"On some hay on
the ground, with a cushion thrown under his head, lay a handsome peasant boy --
a boy of not more than seventeen at the most. He lay on his back, with his
teeth set, his right hand clenched on his breast, and his glaring eyes looking
straight upward. I could not see where his wound was, as I kneeled on one knee
over him; but, I could see that he was dying of a wound from a sharp point.
"'I am a doctor,
my poor fellow,' said I. 'Let me examine it.'
"'I do not want it
examined,' he answered; 'let it be.'
"It was under his
hand, and I soothed him to let me move his hand away. The wound was a
sword-thrust, received from twenty to twenty- four hours before, but no skill
could have saved him if it had been looked to without delay. He was then dying
fast. As I turned my eyes to the elder brother, I saw him looking down at this
handsome boy whose life was ebbing out, as if he were a wounded bird, or hare,
or rabbit; not at all as if he were a fellow-creature.
"'How has this
been done, monsieur?' said I.
"'A crazed young
common dog! A serf! Forced my brother to draw upon him, and has fallen by my
brother's sword -- like a gentleman.'
"There was no
touch of pity, sorrow, or kindred humanity, in this answer. The speaker seemed
to acknowledge that it was inconvenient to have that different order of
creature dying there, and that it would have been better if he had died in the
usual obscure routine of his vermin kind. He was quite incapable of any
compassionate feeling about the boy, or about his fate.
"The boy's eyes
had slowly moved to him as he had spoken, and they now slowly moved to me.
"'Doctor, they are
very proud, these Nobles; but we common dogs are proud too, sometimes. They
plunder us, outrage us, beat us, kill us; but we have a little pride left,
sometimes. She -- have you seen her, Doctor?'
"The shrieks and
the cries were audible there, though subdued by the distance. He referred to
them, as if she were lying in our presence.
"I said, 'I have
seen her.'
"'She is my sister,
Doctor. They have had their shameful rights, these Nobles, in the modesty and
virtue of our sisters, many years, but we have had good girls among us. I know
it, and have heard my father say so. She was a good girl. She was betrothed to
a good young man, too: a tenant of his. We were all tenants of his -- that
man's who stands there. The other is his brother, the worst of a bad race.'
"It was with the
greatest difficulty that the boy gathered bodily force to speak; but, his
spirit spoke with a dreadful emphasis.
"'We were so
robbed by that man who stands there, as an we common dogs are by those superior
Beings -- taxed by him without mercy, obliged to work for him without pay,
obliged to grind our com at his mill, obliged to feed scores of his tame birds
on our wretched crops, and forbidden for our lives to keep a single tame bird
of our own, pillaged and plundered to that degree that when we chanced to have
a bit of meat, we ate it in fear, with the door barred and the shutters closed,
that his people should not see it and take it from us -- I say, we were so
robbed, and hunted, and were made so poor, that our father told us it was a
dreadful thing to bring a child into the world, and that what we should most
pray for, was, that our women might be barren and our miserable race die out!'
"I had never
before seen the sense of being oppressed, bursting forth like a fire. I had
supposed that it must be latent in the people somewhere; but, I had never seen
it break out, until I saw it in the dying boy.
"'Nevertheless,
Doctor, my sister married. He was ailing at that time, poor fellow, and she
married her lover, that she might tend and comfort him in our cottage -- our
dog-hut, as that man would call it. She had not been married many weeks, when
that man's brother saw her and admired her, and asked that man to lend her to
him -- for what are husbands among us! He was willing enough, but my sister was
good and virtuous, and hated his brother with a hatred as strong as mine. What
did the two then, to persuade her husband to use his influence with her, to
make her willing?'
"The boy's eyes,
which had been fixed on mine, slowly turned to the looker-on, and I saw in the
two faces that all he said was true. The two opposing kinds of pride
confronting one another, I can see, even in this Bastille; the gentleman's, all
negligent indifference; the peasants, all trodden-down sentiment, and
passionate revenge.
"'You know,
Doctor, that it is among the Rights of these Nobles to harness us common dogs
to carts, and drive us. They so harnessed him and drove him. You know that it
is among their Rights to keep us in their grounds all night, quieting the
frogs, in order that their noble sleep may not be disturbed. They kept him out
in the unwholesome mists at night, and ordered him back into his harness in the
day. But he was not persuaded. No! Taken out of harness one day at noon, to
feed -- if he could find food -- he sobbed twelve times, once for every stroke
of the bell, and died on her bosom.'
"Nothing human
could have held life in the boy but his determination to tell all his wrong. He
forced back the gathering shadows of death, as he forced his clenched right
hand to remain clenched, and to cover his wound.
"'Then, with that
man's permission and even with his aid, his brother took her away; in spite of
what I know she must have told his brother -- and what that is, will not be
long unknown to you, Doctor, if it is now -- his brother took her away -- for
his pleasure and diversion, for a little while. I saw her pass me on the road.
When I took the tidings home, our father's heart burst; he never spoke one of
the words that fined it. I took my young sister (for I have another) to a place
beyond the reach of this man, and where, at least, she will never be his
vassal. Then, I tracked the brother here, and last night climbed in -- a common
dog, but sword in hand. -- Where is the loft window? It was somewhere here?'
"The room was
darkening to his sight; the world was narrowing around him. I glanced about me,
and saw that the hay and straw were trampled over the floor, as if there had
been a struggle.
"'She heard me,
and ran in. I told her not to come near us till he was dead. He came in and
first tossed me some pieces of money; then struck at me with a whip. But I,
though a common dog, so struck at him as to make him draw. Let him break into
as many pieces as he will, the sword that he stained with my common blood; he
drew to defend himself -- thrust at me with all his skill for his life.'
"My glance had
fallen, but a few moments before, on the fragments of a broken sword, lying
among the hay. That weapon was a gentleman's. In another place, lay an old
sword that seemed to have been a soldier's.
"'Now, lift me up,
Doctor; lift me up. Where is he?'
"'He is not here,'
I said, supporting the boy, and thinking that he referred to the brother.
"'He! Proud as
these nobles are, he is afraid to see me. Where is the man who was here? turn
my face to him.'
"I did so, raising
the boy's head against my knee. But, invested for the moment with extraordinary
power, he raised himself completely: obliging me to rise too, or I could not
have still supported him.
"'Marquis,' said
the boy, turned to him with his eyes opened wide, and his right hand raised,
'in the days when all these things are to be answered for, I summon you and
yours, to the last of your bad race, to answer for them. I mark this cross of
blood upon you, as a sign that I do it. In the days when all these things are
to be answered for, I summon your brother, the worst of the bad race, to answer
for them separately. I mark this cross of blood upon him, as a sign that I do
it.'
"Twice, he put his
hand to the wound in his breast, and with his forefinger drew a cross in the
air. He stood for an instant with the finger yet raised, and as it dropped, he
dropped with it, and I laid him down dead. * * * *
"When I returned
to the bedside of the young woman, I found her raving in precisely the same
order of continuity. I knew that this might last for many hours, and that it
would probably end in the silence of the grave.
"I repeated the medicines
I had given her, and I sat at the side of the bed until the night was far
advanced. She never abated the piercing quality of her shrieks, never stumbled
in the distinctness or the order of her words. They were always 'My husband, my
father, and my brother! One, two, three, four, five, six, seven, eight, nine,
ten, eleven, twelve. Hush!'
"This lasted
twenty-six hours from the time when I first saw her. I had come and gone twice,
and was again sitting by her, when she began to falter. I did what little could
be done to assist that opportunity, and by-and-bye she sank into a lethargy,
and lay lie the dead.
"It was as if the
wind and rain had lulled at last, after a long and fearful storm. I released
her arms, and called the woman to assist me to compose her figure and the dress
she had tom. It was then that I knew her condition to be that of one in whom
the first expectations of being a mother have arisen; and it was then that I
lost the little hope I had had of her.
"'Is she dead?'
asked the Marquis, whom I will still describe as the elder brother, coming
booted into the room from his horse.
"'Not dead,' said
I; 'but Re to die.'
"'What strength
there is in these common bodies!' he said, looking down at her with some
curiosity.
"'There is prodigious
strength,' I answered him, 'in sorrow and despair.'
"He first laughed
at my words, and then frowned at them. He moved a chair with his foot near to
mine, ordered the woman away, and said in a subdued voice,
"'Doctor, finding
my brother in this difficulty with these hinds, I recommended that your aid
should be invited. Your reputation is high, and, as a young man with your
fortune to make, you are probably mindful of your interest. The things that you
see here, are things to be seen, and not spoken of.'
"I listened to the
patient's breathing, and avoided answering.
"'Do you honour me
with your attention, Doctor?'
"'Monsieur,' said
I, 'in my profession, the communications of patients are always received in
confidence.' I was guarded in my answer, for I was troubled in my mind with
what I had heard and seen.
"Her breathing was
so difficult to trace, that I carefully tried the pulse and the heart. There
was life, and no more. Looking round as I resumed my seat, I found both the
brothers intent upon me. * * * *
"I write with so
much difficulty, the cold is so severe, I am so fearful of being detected and
consigned to an underground cell and total darkness, that I must abridge this
narrative. There is no confusion or failure in my memory; it can recall, and
could detail, every word that was ever spoken between me and those brothers.
"She lingered for
a week. Towards the last, I could understand some few syllables that she said
to me, by placing my ear close to her lips. She asked me where she was, and I
told her; who I was, and I told her. It was in vain that I asked her for her
family name. She faintly shook her head upon the pillow, and kept her secret,
as the boy had done.
"I had no
opportunity of asking her any question, until I had told the brothers she was
sinking fast, and could not live another day. Until then, though no one was
ever presented to her consciousness save the woman and myself, one or other of
them had always jealously sat behind the curtain at the head of the bed when I
was there. But when it came to that, they seemed careless what communication I
might hold with her; as if -- the thought passed through my mind -- I were
dying too.
"I always observed
that their pride bitterly resented the younger brother's (as I call him) having
crossed swords with a peasant, and that peasant a boy. The only consideration
that appeared to affect the mind of either of them was the consideration that
this was highly degrading to the family, and was ridiculous. As often as I
caught the younger brother's eyes, their expression reminded me that he
disliked me deeply, for knowing what I knew from the boy. He was smoother and
more polite to me than the elder; but I saw this. I also saw that I was an
incumbrance in the mind of the elder, too.
"My patient died,
two hours before midnight -- at a time, by my watch, answering almost to the
minute when I had first seen her. I was alone with her, when her forlorn young
head drooped gently on one side, and all her earthly wrongs and sorrows ended.
"The brothers were
waiting in a room down-stairs, impatient to ride away. I had heard them, alone
at the bedside, striking their boots with their riding-whips, and loitering up
and down.
"'At last she is
dead?' said the elder, when I went in.
"'She is dead,'
said I.
"'I congratulate
you, my brother,' were his words as he turned round.
"He had before
offered me money, which I had postponed taking. He now gave me a rouleau of
gold. I took it from his hand, but laid it on the table. I had considered the
question, and had resolved to accept nothing.
"'Pray excuse me,'
said I. 'Under the circumstances, no.'
"They exchanged
looks, but bent their heads to me as I bent mine to them, and we parted without
another word on either side. * * * *
"I am weary,
weary, weary-worn down by misery. I cannot read what I have written with this
gaunt hand.
"Early in the
morning, the rouleau of gold was left at my door in a little box, with my name
on the outside. From the first, I had anxiously considered what I ought to do.
I decided, that day, to write privately to the Minister, stating the nature of
the two cases to which I had been summoned, and the place to which I had gone:
in effect, stating all the circumstances. I knew what Court influence was, and
what the immunities of the Nobles were, and I expected that the matter would
never be heard of; but, I wished to relieve my own mind. I had kept the matter
a profound secret, even from my wife; and this, too, I resolved to state in my
letter. I had no apprehension whatever of my real danger; but I was conscious
that there might be danger for others, if others were compromised by possessing
the knowledge that I possessed.
"I was much
engaged that day, and could not complete my letter that night. I rose long
before my usual time next morning to finish it. It was the last day of the
year. The letter was lying before me just completed, when I was told that a
lady waited, who wished to see me. * * * *
"I am growing more
and more unequal to the task I have set myself. It is so cold, so dark, my
senses are so benumbed, and the gloom upon me is so dreadful.
"The lady was
young, engaging, and handsome, but not marked for long life. She was in great
agitation. She presented herself to me as the wife of the Marquis St. Evrémonde.
I connected the title by which the boy had addressed the elder brother, with
the initial letter embroidered on the scarf, and had no difficulty in arriving
at the conclusion that I had seen that nobleman very lately.
"My memory is
still accurate, but I cannot write the words of our conversation. I suspect
that I am watched more closely than I was, and I know not at what times I may
be watched. She had in part suspected, and in part discovered, the main facts
of the cruel story, of her husband's share in it, and my being resorted to. She
did not know that the girl was dead. Her hope had been, she said in great
distress, to show her, in secret, a woman's sympathy. Her hope had been to avert
the wrath of Heaven from a House that had long been hateful to the suffering
many.
"She had reasons
for believing that there was a young sister living, and her greatest desire
was, to help that sister. I could tell her nothing but that there was such a
sister; beyond that, I knew nothing. Her inducement to come to me, relying on
my confidence, had been the hope that I could tell her the name and place of
abode. Whereas, to this wretched hour I am ignorant of both. * * * *
"These scraps of
paper fail me. One was taken from me, with a warning, yesterday. I must finish
my record to-day.
"She was a good,
compassionate lady, and not happy in her marriage. How could she be! The
brother distrusted and disliked her, and his influence was all opposed to her;
she stood in dread of him, and in dread of her husband too. When I handed her
down to the door, there was a child, a pretty boy from two to three years old,
in her carriage.
"'For his sake,
Doctor,' she said, pointing to him in tears, 'I would do all I can to make what
poor amends I can. He will never prosper in his inheritance otherwise. I have a
presentiment that if no other innocent atonement is made for this, it will one
day be required of him. What I have left to call my own -- it is little beyond the
worth of a few jewels -- I will make it the first charge of his life to bestow,
with the compassion and lamenting of his dead mother, on this injured family,
if the sister can be discovered.'
"She kissed the
boy, and said, caressing him, 'It is for thine own dear sake. Thou wilt be
faithful, little Charles?' The child answered her bravely, 'Yes!' I kissed her
hand, and she took him in her arms, and went away caressing him. I never saw
her more.
"As she had
mentioned her husband's name in the faith that I knew it, I added no mention of
it to my letter. I sealed my letter, and, not trusting it out of my own hands,
delivered it myself that day.
"That night, the
last night of the year, towards nine o'clock, a man in a black dress rang at my
gate, demanded to see me, and softly followed my servant, Ernest Defarge, a
youth, up-stairs. When my servant came into the room where I sat with my wife
-- O my wife, beloved of my heart! My fair young English wife! -- we saw the
man, who was supposed to be at the gate, standing silent behind him.
"An urgent case in
the Rue St. Honore, he said. It would not detain me, he had a coach in waiting.
"It brought me
here, it brought me to my grave. When I was clear of the house, a black muffler
was drawn tightly over my mouth from behind, and my arms were pinioned. The two
brothers crossed the road from a dark corner, and identified me with a single
gesture. The Marquis took from his pocket the letter I had written, showed it
me, burnt it in the light of a lantern that was held, and extinguished the
ashes with his foot. Not a word was spoken. I was brought here, I was brought
to my living grave.
"If it had pleased
GOD to put it in the hard heart of either of the brothers, in all these
frightful years, to grant me any tidings of my dearest wife -- so much as to
let me know by a word whether alive or dead -- I might have thought that He had
not quite abandoned them. But, now I believe that the mark of the red cross is
fatal to them, and that they have no part in His mercies. And them and their
descendants, to the last of their race, I, Alexandre Manette, unhappy prisoner,
do this last night of the year 1767, in my unbearable agony, denounce to the
times when all these things shall be answered for. I denounce them to Heaven and
to earth."
A terrible sound arose
when the reading of this document was done. A sound of craving and eagerness
that had nothing articulate in it but blood. The narrative called up the most
revengeful passions of the time, and there was not a head in the nation but
must have dropped before it.
Little need, in
presence of that tribunal and that auditory, to show how the Defarges had not
made the paper public, with the other captured Bastille memorials borne in
procession, and had kept it, biding their time. Little need to show that this
detested family name had long been anathematised by Saint Antoine, and was
wrought into the fatal register. The man never trod ground whose virtues and
services would have sustained him in that place that day, against such
denunciation.
And all the worse for
the doomed man, that the denouncer was a well-known citizen, his own attached
friend, the father of his wife. One of the frenzied aspirations of the populace
was, for imitations of the questionable public virtues of antiquity, and for
sacrifices and self-immolations on the people's altar. Therefore when the
President said (else had his own head quivered on his shoulders), that the good
physician of the Republic would deserve better still of the Republic by rooting
out an obnoxious family of Aristocrats, and would doubtless feel a sacred glow
and joy in making his daughter a widow and her child an orphan, there was wild
excitement, patriotic fervour, not a touch of human sympathy.
"Much influence
around him, has that Doctor?" murmured Madame Defarge, smiling to The
Vengeance. "Save him now, my Doctor, save him I "
At every juryman's
vote, there was a roar. Another and another. Roar and roar.
Unanimously voted. At
heart and by descent an Aristocrat, an enemy of the Republic, a notorious
oppressor of the People. Back to the Conciergerie, and Death within
four-and-twenty hours!
THE WRETCHED WIFE of
the innocent man thus doomed to die, fell under the sentence, as if she had been
mortally stricken. But, she uttered no sound; and so strong was the voice
within her, representing that it was she of all the world who must uphold him
in his misery and not augment it, that it quickly raised her, even from that
shock.
The Judges having to
take part in a public demonstration out of doors, the Tribunal adjourned. The
quick noise and movement of the court's emptying itself by many passages had
not ceased, when Lucie stood stretching out her arms towards her husband, with
nothing in her face but love and consolation.
"If I might touch
him! If I might embrace him once! O, good citizens, if you would have so much
compassion for us!"
There was but a gaoler
left, along with two of the four men who had taken him last night, and Barsad.
The people had all poured out to the show in the streets. Barsad proposed to
the rest, "Let her embrace him then; it is but a moment." It was
silently acquiesced in, and they passed her over the seats in the hall to a
raised place, where he, by leaning over the dock, could fold her in his arms.
"Farewell, dear
darling of my soul. My parting blessing on my love. We shall meet again, where
the weary are at rest!"
They were her husband's
words, as he held her to his bosom.
"I can bear it,
dear Charles. I am supported from above: don't suffer for me. A parting
blessing for our chad."
"I send it to her
by you. I kiss her by you. I say farewell to her by you."
"My husband. No! A
moment!" He was tearing himself apart from her. "We shall not be
separated long. I feel that this will break my heart by-and-bye; but I will do
my duty while I can, and when I leave her, God will raise up friends for her,
as He did for me."
Her father had followed
her, and would have fallen on his knees to both of them, but that Darnay put
out a hand and seized him, crying:
"No, no! What have
you done, what have you done, that you should kneel to us! We know now, what a
struggle you made of old. We know, now what you underwent when you suspected my
descent, and when you knew it. We know now, the natural antipathy you strove
against, and conquered, for her dear sake. We thank you with all our hearts,
and all our love and duty. Heaven be with you!"
Her father's only
answer was to draw his hands through his white hair, and wring them with a
shriek of anguish.
"It could not be
otherwise," said the prisoner. "All things have worked together as
they have fallen out. it was the always-vain endeavour to discharge my poor
mother's trust that first brought my fatal presence near you. Good could never
come of such evil, a happier end was not in nature to so unhappy a beginning.
Be comforted, and forgive me. Heaven bless you!"
As he was drawn away,
his wife released him, and stood looking after him with her hands touching one
another in the attitude of prayer, and with a radiant look upon her face, in
which there was even a comforting smile. As he went out at the prisoners' door,
she turned, laid her head lovingly on her father's breast, tried to speak to
him, and fell at his feet.
Then, issuing from the
obscure corner from which he had never moved, Sydney Carton came and took her
up. Only her father and Mr. Lorry were with her. His arm trembled as it raised
her, and supported her head. Yet, there was an air about him that was not all
of pity -- that had a flush of pride in it.
"Shall I take her
to a coach? I shall never feel her weight."
He carried her lightly
to the door, and laid her tenderly down in a coach. Her father and their old
friend got into it, and he took his seat beside the driver.
When they arrived at
the gateway where he had paused in the dark not many hours before, to picture
to himself on which of the rough stones of the street her feet had trodden, he
lifted her again, and carried her up the staircase to their rooms. There, he
laid her down on a couch, where her child and Miss Pross wept over her.
"Don't recall her
to herself," he said, softly, to the latter, "she is better so. Don't
revive her to consciousness, while she only faints."
"Oh, Carton,
Carton, dear Carton!" cried little Lucie, springing up and throwing her
arms passionately round him, in a burst of grief. "Now that you have come,
I think you will do something to help mamma, something to save papa! O, look at
her, dear Carton! Can you, of all the people who love her, bear to see her
so?"
He bent over the child,
and laid her blooming cheek against his face. He put her gently from him, and
looked at her unconscious mother.
"Before I
go," he said, and paused --"I may kiss her?"
It was remembered afterwards
that when he bent down and touched her face with his lips, he murmured some
words. The child, who was nearest to him, told them afterwards, and told her
grandchildren when she was a handsome old lady, that she heard him say, "A
life you love."
When he had gone out
into the next room, he turned suddenly on Mr. Lorry and her father, who were
following, and said to the latter:
"You had great
influence but yesterday, Doctor Manette; let it at least be tried. These
judges, and all the men in power, are very friendly to you, and very
recognisant of your services; are they not?"
"Nothing connected
with Charles was concealed from me. I had the strongest assurances that I
should save him; and I did." He returned the answer in great trouble, and
very slowly.
"Try them again.
The hours between this and to-morrow afternoon are few and short, but
try."
"I intend to try.
I will not rest a moment."
"That's well. I
have known such energy as yours do great things before now -- though
never," he added, with a smile and a sigh together, "such great
things as this. But try! Of little worth as life is when we misuse it, it is
worth that effort. It would cost nothing to lay down if it were not."
"I will go,"
said Doctor Manette, "to the Prosecutor and the President straight, and I
will go to others whom it is better not to name. I will write too, and -- But
stay! There is a Celebration in the streets, and no one will be accessible
until dark."
"That's true.
Well! It is a forlorn hope at the best, and not much the forlorner for being
delayed till dark. I should like to know how you speed; though, mind! I expect
nothing! When are you likely to have seen these dread powers, Doctor
Manette?"
"Immediately after
dark, I should hope. Within an hour or two from this."
"It will be dark
soon after four. Let us stretch the hour or two. If I go to Mr. Lorry's at
nine, shall I hear what you have done, either from our friend or from
yourself?"
"Yes."
"May you
prosper!"
Mr. Lorry followed
Sydney to the outer door, and, touching him on the shoulder as he was going
away, caused him to turn.
"I have no
hope," said Mr. Lorry, in a low and sorrowful whisper.
"Nor have I."
"If any one of
these men, or all of these men, were disposed to spare him -- which is a large
supposition; for what is his life, or any man's to them! -- I doubt if they
durst spare him after the demonstration in the court."
"And so do I. I
heard the fall of the axe in that sound."
Mr. Lorry leaned his
arm upon the door-post, and bowed his face upon it.
"Don't
despond," said Carton, very gently; "don't grieve. I encouraged
Doctor Manette in this idea, because I felt that it might one day be
consolatory to her. Otherwise, she might think 'his life was wantonly thrown
away or wasted,' and that might trouble her."
"Yes, yes,
yes," returned Mr. Lorry, drying his eyes, "you are right. But he
will perish; there is no real hope."
"Yes. He will
perish: there is no real hope," echoed Carton. And walked with a settled
step, down-stairs.
SYDNEY CARTON paused in
the street, not quite decided where to go. "At Tellson's banking-house at
nine," he said, with a musing face. "Shall I do well, in the mean
time, to show myself? I think so. It is best that these people should know there
is such a man as I here; it is a sound precaution, and may be a necessary
preparation. But care, care, care! Let me think it out!"
Checking his steps
which had begun to tend towards an object, he took a turn or two in the already
darkening street, and traced the thought in his mind to its possible
consequences. His first impression was confirmed. "It is best," he
said, finally resolved, "that these people should know there is such a man
as I here." And he turned his face towards Saint Antoine.
Defarge had described
himself, that day, as the keeper of a wine-shop in the Saint Antoine suburb. It
was not difficult for one who knew the city well, to find his house without
asking any question. Having ascertained its situation, Carton came out of those
closer streets again, and dined at a place of refreshment and fell sound asleep
after dinner. For the first time in many years, he had no strong drink. Since
last night he had taken nothing but a little light thin wine, and last night he
had dropped the brandy slowly down on Mr. Lorry's hearth like a man who had
done with it.
It was as late as seven
o'clock when he awoke refreshed, and went out into the streets again. As he
passed along towards Saint Antoine, he stopped at a shop-window where there was
a mirror, and slightly altered the disordered arrangement of his loose cravat,
and his coat-collar, and his wild hair. This done, he went on direct to
Defarge's, and went in.
There happened to be no
customer in the shop but Jacques Three, of the restless fingers and the croaking
voice. This man, whom he had seen upon the Jury, stood drinking at the little
counter, in conversation with the Defarges, man and wife. The Vengeance
assisted in the conversation, like a regular member of the establishment.
As Carton walked in,
took his seat and asked (in very indifferent French) for a small measure of
wine, Madame Defarge cast a careless glance at him, and then a keener, and then
a keener, and then advanced to him herself, and asked him what it was he had
ordered.
He repeated what he had
already said.
"English?"
asked Madame Defarge, inquisitively raising her dark eyebrows.
After looking at her,
as if the sound of even a single French word were slow to express itself to
him, he answered, in his former strong foreign accent. "Yes, madame, yes.
I am English!"
Madame Defarge returned
to her counter to get the wine, and, as he took up a Jacobin journal and
feigned to pore over it puzzling out its meaning, he heard her say, "I
swear to you, like Evrémonde!"
Defarge brought him the
wine, and gave him Good Evening.
"How?"
"Good
evening."
"Oh! Good evening,
citizen," filling his glass. "Ah! and good wine. I drink to the
Republic."
Defarge went back to
the counter, and said, "Certainly, a little like." Madame sternly
retorted, "I tell you a good deal like." Jacques Three pacifically
remarked, "He is so much in your mind, see you, madame." The amiable
Vengeance added, with a laugh, "Yes, my faith! And you are looking forward
with so much pleasure to seeing him once more to-morrow!"
Carton followed the
lines and words of his paper, with a slow forefinger, and with a studious and
absorbed face. They were all leaning their arms on the counter close together,
speaking low. After a silence of a few moments, during which they all looked
towards him without disturbing his outward attention from the Jacobin editor,
they resumed their conversation.
"It is true what
madame says," observed Jacques Three. "Why stop? There is great force
in that. Why stop?"
"Well, well,"
reasoned Defarge, "but one must stop somewhere. After all, the question is
still where?"
"At
extermination," said madame.
"Magnificent!"
croaked Jacques Three. The Vengeance, also, highly approved.
"Extermination is
good doctrine, my wife," said Defarge, rather troubled; "in general,
I say nothing against it. But this Doctor has suffered much; you have seen him
to-day; you have observed his face when the paper was read."
"I have observed
his face!" repeated madame, contemptuously and angrily. "Yes. I have
observed his face. I have observed his face to be not the face of a true friend
of the Republic. Let him take care of his f ace! "
"And you have
observed, my wife," said Defarge, in a deprecatory manner, "the
anguish of his daughter, which must be a dreadful anguish to him!"
"I have observed
his daughter," repeated madame; "yes, I have observed his daughter,
more times than one. I have observed her to-day, and I have observed her other
days. I have observed her in the court, and I have observed her in the street
by the prison. Let me but lift my finger -- !" She seemed to raise it (the
listener's eyes were always on his paper), and to let it fall with a rattle on
the ledge before her, as if the axe had dropped.
"The citizeness is
superb!" croaked the Juryman.
"She is an
Angel!" said The Vengeance, and embraced her.
"As to thee,"
pursued madame, implacably, addressing her husband, "if it depended on
thee -- which, happily, it does not -- thou wouldst rescue this man even
now."
"No!" protested
Defarge. "Not if to lift this glass would do it! But I would leave the
matter there. I say, stop there."
"See you then,
Jacques," said Madame Defarge, wrathfully; "and see you, too, my
little Vengeance; see you both! Listen! For other crimes as tyrants and
oppressors, I have this race a long time on my register, doomed to destruction
and extermination. Ask my husband, is that so."
"It is so,"
assented Defarge, without being asked.
"In the beginning
of the great days, when the Bastille falls, he finds this paper of to-day, and
he brings it home, and in the middle of the night when this place is clear and
shut, we read it, here on this spot, by the light of this lamp. Ask him, is
that so."
"It is so,"
assented Defarge.
"That night, I
tell him, when the paper is read through, and the lamp is burnt out, and the
day is gleaming in above those shutters and between those iron bars, that I
have now a secret to communicate. Ask him, is that so."
"It is so,"
assented Defarge again.
"I communicate to
him that secret. I smite this bosom with these two hands as I smite it now, and
I tell him, 'Defarge, I was brought up among the fishermen of the sea-shore,
and that peasant family so injured by the two Evrémonde brothers, as that
Bastille paper describes, is my family. Defarge, that sister of the mortally
wounded boy upon the ground was my sister, that husband was my sister's
husband, that unborn child was their child, that brother was my brother, that
father was my father, those dead are my dead, and that summons to answer for
those things descends to me!' Ask him, is that so."
"It is so,"
assented Defarge once more.
"Then tell Wind
and Fire where to stop," returned madame; "but don't tell me."
Both her hearers
derived a horrible enjoyment from the deadly nature of her wrath -- the
listener could feel how white she was, without seeing her -- and both highly
commended it. Defarge, a weak minority, interposed a few words for the memory
of the compassionate wife of the Marquis; but only elicited from his own wife a
repetition of her last reply. "Tell the Wind and the Fire where to stop;
not me!"
Customers entered, and
the group was broken up. The English customer paid for what he had had,
perplexedly counted his change, and asked, as a stranger, to be directed
towards the National Palace. Madame Defarge took him to the door, and put her
arm on his, in pointing out the road. The English customer was not without his
reflections then, that it might be a good deed to seize that arm, lift it, and
strike under it sharp and deep.
But, he went his way,
and was soon swallowed up in the shadow of the prison wan. At the appointed
hour, he emerged from it to present himself in Mr. Lorry's room again, where he
found the old gentleman walking to and fro in restless anxiety. He said he had
been with Lucie until just now, and had only left her for a few minutes, to
come and keep his appointment. Her father had not been seen, since he quitted
the banking-house towards four o'clock. She had some faint hopes that his
mediation might save Charles, but they were very slight. He had been more than
five hours gone: where could he be?
Mr. Lorry waited until
ten; but, Doctor Manette not returning, and he being unwilling to leave Lucie
any longer, it was arranged that he should go back to her, and come to the
banking-house again at midnight. In the meanwhile, Carton would wait alone by
the fire for the Doctor.
He waited and waited,
and the clock struck twelve; but Doctor Manette did not come back. Mr. Lorry returned,
and found no tidings of him, and brought none. Where could he be?
They were discussing
this question, and were almost building up some weak structure of hope on his
prolonged absence, when they heard him on the stairs. The instant he entered
the room, it was plain that all was lost.
Whether he had really
been to any one, or whether be had been all that time traversing the streets,
was never known. As he stood staring at them, they asked him no question, for
his face told them everything.
"I cannot find
it," said he, "and I must have it. Where is it?"
His head and throat
were bare, and, as he spoke with a helpless look straying all around, he took
his coat off, and let it drop on the floor.
"Where is my
bench? I have been looking everywhere for my bench, and I can't find it. What
have they done with my work? Time presses: I must finish those shoes."
They looked at one
another, and their hearts died within them.
"Come, come!"
said he, in a whimpering miserable way; "let me get to work. Give me my
work."
Receiving no answer, he
tore his hair, and beat his feet upon the ground, like a distracted child.
"Don't torture a
poor forlorn wretch," he implored them, with a dreadful cry; "but
give me my work! What is to become of us, if those shoes are not done
to-night?"
Lost, utterly lost!
It was so clearly
beyond hope to reason with him, or try to restore him, -- that -- as if by
agreement -- they each put a hand upon his shoulder, and soothed him to sit
down before the fire, with a promise that he should have his work presently. He
sank into the chair, and brooded over the embers, and shed tears. As if all
that had happened since the garret time were a momentary fancy, or a dream, Mr.
Lorry saw him shrink into the exact figure that Defarge had had in keeping.
Affected, and impressed
with terror as they both were, by this spectacle of ruin, it was not a time to
yield to such emotions. His lonely daughter, bereft of her final hope and
reliance, appealed to them both too strongly. Again, as if by agreement, they
looked at one another with one meaning in their faces. Carton was the first to
speak:
"The last chance
is gone: it was not much. Yes; he had better be taken to her. But, before you
go, will you, for a moment, steadily attend to me? Don't ask me why I make the
stipulations I am going to make, and exact the promise I am going to exact; I
have a reason -- a good one."
"I do not doubt
it," answered Mr. Lorry. "Say on."
The figure in the chair
between them, was all the time monotonously rocking itself to and fro, and
moaning. They spoke in such a tone as they would have used if they had been
watching by a sick-bed in the night.
Carton stooped to pick
up the coat, which lay almost entangling his feet. As he did so, a small case
in which the Doctor was accustomed to carry the lists of his day's duties, fen
lightly on the floor. Carton took it up, and there was a folded paper in it.
"We should look at this!" he said. Mr. Lorry nodded his consent. He
opened it, and exclaimed, "Thank GOD!"
"What is it?"
asked Mr. Lorry, eagerly.
"A moment! Let me
speak of it in its place. First," he put his hand in his coat, and took
another paper from it, "that is the certificate which enables me to pass
out of this city. Look at it. You see -- Sydney Carton, an Englishman?"
Mr. Lorry held it open
in his hand, gazing in his earnest face.
"Keep it for me
until to-morrow. I shall see him to-morrow, you remember, and I had better not
take it into the prison."
"Why not?"
"I don't know; I
prefer not to do so. Now, take this paper that Doctor Manette has carried about
him. It is a similar certificate, enabling him and his daughter and her child,
at any time, to pass the barrier and the frontier! You see?"
"Yes!"
"Perhaps he
obtained it as his last and utmost precaution against evil, yesterday. When is
it dated? But no matter; don't stay to look; put it up carefully with mine and
your own. Now, observe! I never doubted until within this hour or two, that he
had, or could have such a paper. It is good, until recalled. But it may be soon
recalled, and, I have reason to think, will be."
"They are not in
danger?"
"They are in great
danger. They are in danger of denunciation by Madame Defarge. I know it from
her own lips. I have overheard words of that woman's, to-night, which have
presented their danger to me in strong colours. I have lost no time, and since
then, I have seen the spy. He confirms me. He knows that a wood-sawyer, living
by the prison wall, is under the control of the Defarges, and has been
rehearsed by Madame Defarge as to his having seen Her" -- he never
mentioned Lucie's name -- "making signs and signals to prisoners. It is
easy to foresee that the pretence will be the common one, a prison plot, and
that it will involve her life -- and perhaps her child's -- and perhaps her
father's -- for both have been seen with her at that place. Don't look so
horrified. You will save them all."
"Heaven grant I
may, Carton! But how?"
"I am going to
tell you how. It will depend on you, and it could depend on no better man. This
new denunciation will certainly not take place until after to-morrow; probably
not until two or three days afterwards; more probably a week afterwards. You
know it is a capital crime, to mourn for, or sympathise with, a victim of the
Guillotine. She and her father would unquestionably be guilty of this crime,
and this woman (the inveteracy of whose pursuit cannot be described) would wait
to add that strength to her case, and make herself doubly sure. You follow
me?"
"So attentively,
and with so much confidence in what you say, that for the moment I lose
sight," touching the back of the Doctor's chair, even of this
distress."
"You have money,
and can buy the means of travelling to the sea- coast as quickly as the journey
can be made. Your preparations have been completed for some days, to return to
England. Early to-morrow have your horses ready, so that they may be in
starting trim at two o'clock in the afternoon."
"It shall be
done!"
His manner was so
fervent and inspiring, that Mr. Lorry caught the flame, and was as quick as
youth.
"You are a noble
heart. Did I say we could depend upon no better man? Tell her, to-night, what
you know of her danger as involving her child and her father. Dwell upon that,
for she would lay her own fair head beside her husband's cheerfully." He
faltered for an instant; then went on as before. "For the sake of her
child and her father, press upon her the necessity of leaving Paris, with them
and you, at that hour. Tell her that it was her husband's last arrangement.
Tell her that more depends upon it than she dare believe, or hope. You think
that her father, even in this sad state, will submit himself to her; do you
not?"
"I am sure of
it."
"I thought so. Quietly
and steadily have all these arrangements made in the courtyard here, even to
the taking of your own seat in the carriage. The moment I come to you, take me
in, and drive away."
"I understand that
I wait for you under all circumstances?"
"You have my
certificate in your hand with the rest, you know, and will reserve my place.
Wait for nothing but to have my place occupied, and then for England!"
"Why, then,"
said Mr. Lorry, grasping his eager but so firm and steady hand, "it does
not all depend on one old man, but I shall have a young and ardent man at my
side."
"By the help of
Heaven you shall! Promise me solemnly that nothing will influence you to alter
the course on which we now stand pledged to one another."
"Nothing,
Carton."
"Remember these
words to-morrow: change the course, or delay in it -- for any reason -- and no
life can possibly be saved, and many lives must inevitably be sacrificed."
"I will remember
them. I hope to do my part faithfully."
"And I hope to do
mine. Now, good bye!"
Though he said it with
a grave smile of earnestness, and though he even put the old man's hand to his
lips, he did not part from him then. He helped him so far to arouse the rocking
figure before the dying embers, as to get a cloak and hat put upon it, and to
tempt it forth to find where the bench and work were hidden that it still
moaningly besought to have. He walked on the other side of it and protected it
to the courtyard of the house where the afflicted heart -- so happy in the
memorable time when he had revealed his own desolate heart to it -- out-
watched the awful night. He entered the courtyard and remained there for a few
moments alone, looking up at the light in the window of her room. Before he
went away, he breathed a blessing towards it, and a Farewell.
IN THE BLACK PRISON Of
the Conciergerie, the doomed of the day awaited their fate. They were in number
as the weeks of the year. Fifty- two were to roll that afternoon on the
life-tide of the city to the boundless everlasting sea. Before their cells were
quit of them, new occupants were appointed; before their blood ran into the
blood spilled yesterday, the blood that was to mingle with theirs to-morrow was
already set apart.
Two score and twelve
were told off. From the farmer-general of seventy, whose riches could not buy
his life, to the seamstress of twenty, whose poverty and obscurity could not
save her. Physical diseases, engendered in the vices and neglects of men, will
seize on victims of all degrees; and the frightful moral disorder, born of
unspeakable suffering, intolerable oppression, and heartless indifference,
smote equally without distinction.
Charles Darnay, alone
in a cell, had sustained himself with no flattering delusion since he came to
it from the Tribunal. In every line of the narrative he had heard, he had heard
his condemnation. He had fully comprehended that no personal influence could
possibly save him, that he was virtually sentenced by the millions, and that
units could avail him nothing.
Nevertheless, it was
not easy, with the face of his beloved wife fresh before him, to compose his
mind to what it must bear. His hold on life was strong, and it was very, very
hard, to loosen; by gradual efforts and degrees unclosed a little here, it clenched
the tighter there; and when he brought his strength to bear on that hand and it
yielded, this was closed again. There was a hurry, too, in all his thoughts, a
turbulent and heated working of his heart, that contended against resignation.
If, for a moment, he did feel resigned, then his wife and child who had to live
after him, seemed to protest and to make it a selfish thing.
But, all this was at
first. Before long, the consideration that there was no disgrace in the fate he
must meet, and that numbers went the same road wrongfully, and trod it firmly
every day, sprang up to stimulate him. Next followed the thought that much of
the future peace of mind enjoyable by the dear ones, depended on his quiet
fortitude. So, by degrees he calmed into the better state, when he could raise
his thoughts much higher, and draw comfort down.
Before it had set in
dark on the night of his condemnation, he had travelled thus far on his last
way. Being allowed to purchase the means of writing, and a light, he sat down to
write until such time as the prison lamps should be extinguished.
He wrote a long letter
to Lucie, showing her that he had known nothing of her father's imprisonment,
until he had heard of it from herself, and that he had been as ignorant as she
of his father's and uncle's responsibility for that misery, until the paper had
been read. He had already explained to her that his concealment from herself of
the name he had relinquished, was the one condition -- fully intelligible now
-- that her father had attached to their betrothal, and was the one promise he
had still exacted on the morning of their marriage. He entreated her, for her
father's sake, never to seek to know whether her father had become oblivious of
the existence of the paper, or had had it recalled to him (for the moment, or
for good), by the story of the Tower, on that old Sunday under the dear old
plane-tree in the garden. If he had preserved any definite remembrance of it,
there could be no doubt that he had supposed it destroyed with the Bastille,
when he had found no mention of it among the relics of prisoners which the
populace had discovered there, and which had been described to all the world.
He besought her -- though he added that he knew it was needless -- to console
her father, by impressing him through every tender means she could think of,
with the truth that he had done nothing for which he could justly reproach
himself, but had uniformly forgotten himself for their joint sakes. Next to her
preservation of his own last grateful love and blessing, and her overcoming of
her sorrow, to devote herself to their dear child, he adjured her, as they
would meet in Heaven, to comfort her father.
To her father himself,
he wrote in the same strain; but, he told her father that he expressly confided
his wife and child to his care. And he told him this, very strongly, with the
hope of rousing him from any despondency or dangerous retrospect towards which
he foresaw he might be tending.
To Mr. Lorry, he
commended them all, and explained his worldly affairs. That done, with many
added sentences of grateful friendship and warm attachment, all was done. He
never thought of Carton. His mind was so full of the others, that he never once
thought of him.
He had time to finish
these letters before the lights were put out. When he lay down on his straw
bed, he thought he had done with this world.
But, it beckoned him
back in his sleep, and showed itself in shining forms. Free and happy, back in
the old house in Soho (though it had nothing in it like the real house),
unaccountably released and light of heart, he was with Lucie again, and she
told him it was all a dream, and he had never gone away. A pause of
forgetfulness, and then he had even suffered, and had come back to her, dead
and at peace, and yet there was no difference in him. Another pause of
oblivion, and he awoke in the sombre morning, unconscious where he was or what
had happened, until it flashed upon his mind, "this is the day of my
death!"
Thus, had he come
through the hours, to the day when the fifty-two heads were to fall. And now,
while he was composed, and hoped that he could meet the end with quiet heroism,
a new action began in his waking thoughts, which was very difficult to master.
He had never seen the
instrument that was to terminate his life. How high it was from the ground, how
many steps it had, where he would be stood, bow he would be touched, whether
the touching hands would be dyed red, which way his face would be turned,
whether he would be the first, or might be the last: these and many similar
questions, in nowise directed by his will, obtruded themselves over and over
again, countless times. Neither were they connected with fear: he was conscious
of no fear. Rather, they originated in a strange besetting desire to know what
to do when the time came; a desire gigantically disproportionate to the few
swift moments to which it referred; a wondering that was more like the
wondering of some other spirit within his, than his own.
The hours went on as he
walked to and fro, and the clocks struck the numbers he would never hear again.
Nine gone for ever, ten gone for ever, eleven gone for ever, twelve coming on
to pass away. After a hard contest with that eccentric action of thought which
had last perplexed him, he had got the better of it. He walked up and down,
softly repeating their names to himself. The worst of the strife was over. He
could walk up and down, free from distracting fancies, praying for himself and
for them.
Twelve gone for ever.
He had been apprised that
the final hour was Three, and be knew he would be summoned some time earlier,
inasmuch as the tumbrils jolted heavily and slowly through the streets.
Therefore, he resolved to keep Two before his mind, as the hour, and so to
strengthen himself in the interval that he might be able, after that time, to
strengthen others.
Walking regularly to
and fro with his arms folded on his breast, a very different man from the
prisoner, who had walked to and fro at La Force, he heard One struck away from
him, without surprise. The hour had measured like most other hours. Devoutly
thankful to Heaven for his recovered self-possession, he thought, "There
is but another now," and turned to walk again.
Footsteps in the stone
passage outside the door. He stopped.
The key was put in the
lock, and turned. Before the door was opened, or as it opened, a man said in a
low voice, in English: "He has never seen me here; I have kept out of his
way. Go you in alone; I wait near. Lose no time!"
The door was quickly
opened and closed, and there stood before him face to face, quiet, intent upon
him, with the light of a smile on his features, and a cautionary finger on his
lip, Sydney Carton.
There was something so
bright and remarkable in his look, that, for the first moment, the prisoner
misdoubted him to be an apparition of his own imagining. But, he spoke, and it
was his voice; he took the prisoner's hand, and it was his real grasp.
"Of all the people
upon earth, you least expected to see me?" be said.
"I could not
believe it to be you. I can scarcely believe it now. You are not" -- the
apprehension came suddenly into his mind -- "a prisoner?"
"No. I am
accidentally possessed of a power over one of the keepers here, and in virtue
of it I stand before you. I come from her -- your wife, dear Darnay."
The prisoner wrung his
hand.
"I bring you a
request from her."
"What is it?"
"A most earnest,
pressing, and emphatic entreaty, addressed to you in the most pathetic tones of
the voice so dear to you, that you well remember."
The prisoner turned his
face partly aside.
"You have no time
to ask me why I bring it, or what it means; I have no time to tell you. You
must comply with it -- take off those boots you wear, and draw on these of
mine."
There was a chair
against the wall of the cell, behind the prisoner. Carton, pressing forward,
had already, with the speed of lightning, got him down into it, and stood over
him, barefoot.
"Draw on these
boots of mine. Put your hands to them; put your will to them. Quick!"
"Carton, there is
no escaping from this place; it never can be done. You will only die with me.
It is madness."
"It would be
madness if I asked you to escape; but do I? When I ask you to pass out at that
door, tell me it is madness and remain here. Change that cravat for this of
mine, that coat for this of mine. While you do it, let me take this ribbon from
your hair, and shake out your hair like this of mine!"
With wonderful
quickness, and with a strength both of will and action, that appeared quite supernatural,
he forced all these changes upon him. The prisoner was like a young child in
his hands.
"Carton! Dear
Carton! It is madness. It cannot be accomplished, it never can be done, it has
been attempted, and has always failed. I implore you not to add your death to
the bitterness of mine."
"Do I ask you, my
dear Darnay, to pass the door? When I ask that, refuse. There are pen and ink
and paper on this table. Is your hand steady enough to write?"
"It was when you
came in."
"Steady it again,
and write what I shall dictate. Quick, friend, quick!"
Pressing his hand to
his bewildered head, Darnay sat down at the table. Carton, with his right hand
in his breast, stood close beside him.
"Write exactly as
I speak."
"To whom do I
address it?"
"To no one."
Carton still had his hand in his breast.
"Do I date
it?"
"No."
The prisoner looked up,
at each question. Carton, standing over him with his hand in his breast, looked
down.
"'If you
remember,'" said Carton, dictating, "'the words that passed between
us, long ago, you will readily comprehend this when you see it. You do remember
them, I know. It is not in your nature to forget them."'
He was drawing his hand
from his breast; the prisoner chancing to look up in his hurried wonder as he
wrote, the hand stopped, closing upon something.
"Have you written
'forget them'?" Carton asked.
"I have. Is that a
weapon in your hand?"
"No; I am not
armed."
"What is it in
your hand?"
"You shall know
directly. Write on; there are but a few words more." He dictated again.
"'I am thankful that the time has come, when I can prove them. That I do
so is no subject for regret or grief."' As he said these words with his
eyes fixed on the writer, his hand slowly and softly moved down close to the
writer's face.
The pen dropped from
Darnay's fingers on the table, and he looked about him vacantly.
"What vapour is
that?" he asked.
"Vapour?"
"Something that
crossed me?"
"I am conscious of
nothing; there can be nothing here. Take up the pen and finish. Hurry,
hurry!"
As if his memory were
impaired, or his faculties disordered, the prisoner made an effort to rally his
attention. As he looked at Carton with clouded eyes and with an altered manner
of breathing, Carton -- his hand again in his breast -- looked steadily at him.
"Hurry,
hurry!"
The prisoner bent over
the paper, once more.
"'If it had been
otherwise;"' Carton's hand was again watchfully and softly stealing down;
"'I never should have used the longer opportunity. If it had been
otherwise;"' the hand was at the prisoner's face; " 'I should but
have had so much the more to answer for. ff it had been otherwise -- "'
Carton looked at the pen and saw it was trailing off into unintelligible signs.
Carton's hand moved
back to his breast no more. The prisoner sprang up with a reproachful look, but
Carton's hand was close and firm at his nostrils, and Carton's left arm caught
him round the waist. For a few seconds he faintly struggled with the man who
had come to lay down his life for him; but, within a minute or so, he was
stretched insensible on the ground.
Quickly, but with hands
as true to the purpose as his heart was, Carton dressed himself in the clothes
the prisoner bad laid aside, combed back his hair, and tied it with the ribbon
the prisoner had worn. Then, he softly called, "Enter there! Come
in!" and the Spy presented himself.
"You see?"
said Carton, looking up, as he kneeled on one knee beside the insensible
figure, putting the paper in the breast: "is your hazard very great?"
"Mr. Carton,"
the Spy answered, with a timid snap of his fingers, "my hazard is not
that, in the thick of business here, if you are true to the whole of your
bargain."
"Don't fear me. I
will be true to the death."
"You must be, Mr.
Carton, if the tale of fifty-two is to be right. Being made right by you in
that dress, I shall have no fear."
"Have no fear! I
shall soon be out of the way of harming you, and the rest will soon be far from
here, please God! Now, get assistance and take me to the coach."
"You?" said
the Spy nervously.
"Him, man, with
whom I have exchanged. You go out at the gate by which you brought me in?"
"Of course."
"I was weak and
faint when you brought me in, and I am fainter now you take me out. The parting
interview has overpowered me. Such a thing has happened here, often, and too
often. Your life is in your own hands. Quick! Call assistance!"
"You swear not to
betray me?" said the trembling Spy, as he paused for a last moment.
"Man, man!"
returned Carton, stamping his foot; "have I sworn by no solemn vow
already, to go through with this, that you waste the precious moments now? Take
him yourself to the courtyard you know of, place him yourself in the carriage,
show him yourself to Mr. Lorry, tell him yourself to give him no restorative
but air, and to remember my words of last night, and his promise of last night,
and drive away!"
The Spy withdrew, and
Carton seated himself at the table, resting his forehead on his hands. The Spy
returned immediately, with two men.
"How, then?"
said one of them, contemplating the fallen figure. "So afflicted to find
that his friend has drawn a prize in the lottery of Sainte Guillotine?"
"A good
patriot," said the other, "could hardly have been more afflicted if
the Aristocrat had drawn a blank."
They raised the
unconscious figure, placed it on a litter they had brought to the door, and
bent to carry it away.
"The time is
short, Evrémonde," said the Spy, in a warning voice.
"I know it
well," answered Carton. "Be careful of my friend, I entreat you, and
leave me."
"Come, then, my
children," said Barsad. "Lift him, and come away!"
The door closed, and
Carton was left alone. Straining his powers of listening to the utmost, he
listened for any sound that might denote suspicion or alarm. There was none.
Keys turned, doors clashed, footsteps passed along distant passages: no cry was
raised, or hurry made, that seemed unusual. Breathing more freely in a little
while, he sat down at the table, and listened again until the clock struck Two.
Sounds that he was not
afraid of, for he divined their meaning, then began to be audible. Several
doors were opened in succession, and finally his own. A gaoler, with a list in
his hand, looked in, merely saying, "Follow me, Evrémonde!" and he
followed into a large dark room, at a distance. It was a dark winter day, and
what with the shadows within, and what with the shadows without, he could but
dimly discern the others who were brought there to have their arms bound. Some
were standing; some seated. Some were lamenting, and in restless motion; but,
these were few. The great majority were silent and still, looking fixedly at
the ground.
As he stood by the wall
in a dim corner, while some of the fifty-two were brought in after him, one man
stopped in passing, to embrace him, as having a knowledge of him. It thrilled
him with a great dread of discovery; but the man went on. A very few moments
after that, a young woman, with a slight girlish form, a sweet spare face in
which there was no vestige of colour, and large widely opened patient eyes,
rose from the seat where he had observed her sitting, and came to speak to him.
"Citizen Evrémonde,"
she said, touching him with her cold hand. "I am a poor little seamstress,
who was with you in La Force."
He murmured for answer:
"True. I forget what you were accused of?"
"Plots. Though the
just Heaven knows that I am innocent of any. Is it likely? Who would think of
plotting with a poor little weak creature like me?"
The forlorn smile with
which she said it, so touched him, that tears started from his eyes.
"I am not afraid
to die, Citizen Evrémonde, but I have done nothing. I am not unwilling to die,
if the Republic which is to do so much good to us poor, will profit by my
death; but I do not know how that can be, Citizen Evrémonde. Such a poor weak
little creature!"
As the last thing on
earth that his heart was to warm and soften to, it warmed and softened to this
pitiable girl.
"I heard you were
released, Citizen Evrémonde. I hoped it was true?"
"It was. But, I
was again taken and condemned."
"If I may ride with
you, Citizen Evrémonde, will you let me hold your hand? I am not afraid, but I
am little and weak, and it will give me more courage."
As the patient eyes
were lifted to his face, he saw a sudden doubt in them, and then astonishment.
He pressed the work-worn, hunger-worn young fingers, and touched his lips.
"Are you dying for
him?" she whispered.
"And his wife and
child. Hush! Yes."
"O you will let me
hold your brave hand, stranger?"
"Hush! Yes, my
poor sister; to the last."
The same shadows that
are falling on the prison, are falling, in that same hour of the early
afternoon, on the Barrier with the crowd about it, when a coach going out of
Paris drives up to be examined.
"Who goes here?
Whom have we within? Papers!"
The papers are handed out,
and read.
"Alexandre
Manette. Physician. French. Which is he?"
This is he; this
helpless, inarticulately murmuring, wandering old man pointed out.
"Apparently the
Citizen-Doctor is not in his right mind? The Revolution- fever will have been
too much for him?"
Greatly too much for
him.
"Hah! Many suffer
with it. Lucie. His daughter. French. Which is she?"
This is she.
"Apparently it
must be. Lucie, the wife of Evrémonde; is it not?"
It is.
"Hah! Evrémonde
has an assignation elsewhere. Lucie, her child. English. This is she?"
She and no other.
"Kiss me, child of
Evrémonde. Now, thou hast kissed a good Republican; something new in thy
family; remember it! Sydney Carton. Advocate. English. Which is he?"
He lies here, in this
corner of the carriage. He, too, is pointed out.
"Apparently the
English advocate is in a swoon?"
It is hoped he will
recover in the fresher air. It is represented that he is not in strong health,
and has separated sadly from a friend who is under the displeasure of the
Republic.
"Is that all? It
is not a great deal, that! Many are under the displeasure of the Republic, and
must look out at the little window. Jarvis Lorry. Banker. English. Which is
he?"
"I am he.
Necessarily, being the last."
It is Jarvis Lorry who
has replied to all the previous questions. It is Jarvis Lorry who has alighted
and stands with his hand on the coach door, replying to a group of officials.
They leisurely walk round the carriage and leisurely mount the box, to look at
what little luggage it carries on the roof; the country-people hanging about,
press nearer to the coach doors and greedily stare in; a little child, carried
by its mother, has its short arm held out for it, that it may touch the wife of
an aristocrat who has gone to the Guillotine.
"Behold your
papers, Jarvis Lorry, countersigned."
"One can depart,
citizen?"
"One can depart.
Forward, my postilions! A good journey!"
"I salute you,
citizens. -- And the first danger passed!"
These are again the
words of Jarvis Lorry, as he clasps his hands, and looks upward. There is
terror in the carriage, there is weeping, there is the heavy breathing of the
insensible traveller.
"Are we not going
too slowly? Can they not be induced to go faster?" asks Lucie, clinging to
the old man.
"It would seem
like flight, my darling. I must not urge them too much; it would rouse
suspicion."
"Look back, look
back, and see if we are pursued!"
"The road is
clear, my dearest. So far, we are not pursued."
Houses in twos and
threes pass by us, solitary farms, ruinous buildings, dye-works, tanneries, and
the like, open country, avenues of leafless trees. The hard uneven pavement is
under us, the soft deep mud is on either side. Sometimes, we strike into the
skirting mud, to avoid the stones that clatter us and shake us; sometimes, we
stick in ruts and sloughs there. The agony of our impatience is then so great,
that in our wild alarm and hurry we are for getting out and running -- hiding
-- doing anything but stopping.
Out of the open
country, in again among ruinous buildings, solitary farms, dye-works,
tanneries, and the like, cottages in twos and threes, avenues of leafless
trees. Have these men deceived us, and taken us back by another road? Is not
this the same place twice over? Thank Heaven, no. A village. Look back, look
back, and see if we are pursued! Hush! the posting-house.
Leisurely, our four
horses are taken out; leisurely, the coach stands in the little street, bereft
of horses, and with no likelihood upon it of ever moving again; leisurely, the
new horses come into visible existence, one by one; leisurely, the new
postilions follow, sucking and plaiting the lashes of their whips; leisurely,
the old postilions count their money, make wrong additions, and arrive at
dissatisfied results. All the time, our overfraught hearts are beating at a
rate that would far outstrip the fastest gallop of the fastest horses ever
foaled.
At length the new
postilions are in their saddles, and the old are left behind. We are through
the village, up the hill, and down the hill, and on the low watery grounds.
Suddenly, the postilions exchange speech with animated gesticulation, and the
horses are pulled up, almost on their haunches. We are pursued?
"Ho! Within the
carriage there. Speak then!"
"What is it?"
asks Mr. Lorry, looking out at window.
"How many did they
say?"
"I do not
understand you."
"-- At the last
post. How many to the Guillotine to-day?"
"Fifty-two."
"I said so! A
brave number! My fellow-citizen here would have it forty-two; ten more heads
are worth having. The Guillotine goes handsomely. I love it. Hi forward.
Whoop!"
The night comes on
dark. He moves more; he is beginning to revive, and to speak intelligibly; he
thinks they are still together; he asks him, by his name, what he has in his
hand. O pity us, kind Heaven, and help us! Look out, look out, and see if we
are pursued.
The wind is rushing
after us, and the clouds are flying after us, and the moon is plunging after
us, and the whole wild night is in pursuit of us; but, so far, we are pursued
by nothing else.
IN THAT SAME JUNCTURE
of time when the Fifty-Two awaited their fate Madame Defarge held darkly
ominous council with The Vengeance and Jacques Three of the Revolutionary Jury.
Not in the wine-shop did Madame Defarge confer with these ministers, but in the
shed of the wood- sawyer, erst a mender of roads. The sawyer himself did not
participate in the conference, but abided at a little distance, like an outer
satellite who was not to speak until required, or to offer an opinion until
invited.
"But our
Defarge," said Jacques Three, "is undoubtedly a good Republican?
Eh?"
"There is no
better," the voluble Vengeance protested in her shrill notes, "in France."
"Peace, little
Vengeance," said Madame Defarge, laying her hand with a slight frown on
her lieutenant's lips, "hear me speak. My husband, fellow- citizen, is a
good Republican and a bold man; he has deserved well of the Republic, and possesses
its confidence. But my husband has his weaknesses, and he is so weak as to
relent towards this Doctor."
"It is a great
pity," croaked Jacques Three, dubiously shaking his head, with his cruel
fingers at his hungry mouth; "it is not quite like a good citizen; it is a
thing to regret."
"See you,"
said madame, "I care nothing for this Doctor, I. He may wear his head or
lose it, for any interest I have in him; it is all one to me. But, the Evrémonde
people are to be exterminated, and the wife and child must follow the husband
and father."
"She has a fine
head for it," croaked Jacques Three. "I have seen blue eyes and
golden hair there, and they looked charming when Samson held them up."
Ogre that he was, he spoke like an epicure.
Madame Defarge cast
down her eyes, and reflected a little.
"The child
also," observed Jacques Three, with a meditative enjoyment of his words,
"has golden hair and blue eyes. And we seldom have a child there. It is a
pretty sight!"
"In a word,"
said Madame Defarge, coming out of her short abstraction, "I cannot trust
my husband in this matter. Not only do I feel, since last night, that I dare
not confide to him the details of my projects; but also I feel that if I delay,
there is danger of his giving warning, and then they might escape."
"That must never
be," croaked Jacques Three; "no one must escape. We have not half
enough as it is. We ought to have six score a day."
"In a word,"
Madame Defarge went on, "my husband has not my reason for pursuing this
family to annihilation, and I have not his reason for regarding this Doctor
with any sensibility. I must act for myself, therefore. Come hither, little
citizen."
The wood-sawyer, who
held her in the respect, and himself in the submission, of mortal fear,
advanced with his hand to his red cap.
"Touching those
signals, little citizen," said Madame Defarge, sternly, "that she made
to the prisoners; you are ready to bear witness to them this very day?"
"Ay, ay, why
not!" cried the sawyer. "Every day, in all weathers, from two to
four, always signalling, sometimes with the little one, sometimes without. I
know what I know. I have seen with my eyes."
He made all manner of
gestures while he spoke, as if in incidental imitation of some few of the great
diversity of signals that he had never seen.
"Clearly
plots," said Jacques Three. "Transparently!"
"There is no doubt
of the Jury?" inquired Madame Defarge, letting her eyes turn to him with a
gloomy smile.
"Rely upon the
patriotic Jury, dear citizeness. I answer for my fellow- Jurymen."
"Now, let me
see," said Madame Defarge, pondering again. "Yet once more! Can I
spare this Doctor to my husband? I have no feeling either way. Can I spare
him?"
"He would count as
one head," observed Jacques Three, in a low voice. "We really have
not heads enough; it would be a pity, I think."
"He was signalling
with her when I saw her," argued Madame Defarge; "I cannot speak of
one without the other; and I must not be silent, and trust the case wholly to
him, this little citizen here. For, I am not a bad witness."
The Vengeance and
Jacques Three vied with each other in their fervent protestations that she was
the most admirable and marvellous of witnesses. The little citizen, not to be
outdone, declared her to be a celestial witness.
"He must take his
chance," said Madame Defarge. "No, I cannot spare him! You are
engaged at three o'clock; you are going to see the batch of to-day executed. --
You?"
The question was
addressed to the wood-sawyer, who hurriedly replied in the affirmative: seizing
the occasion to add that he was the most ardent of Republicans, and that he
would be in effect the most desolate of Republicans, if anything prevented him
from enjoying the pleasure of smoking his afternoon pipe in the contemplation
of the droll national barber. He was so very demonstrative herein, that he
might have been suspected (perhaps was, by the dark eyes that looked
contemptuously at him out of Madame Defarge's head) of having his small
individual fears for his own personal safety, every hour in the day.
"I," said
madame, "am equally engaged at the same place. After it is over -- say at
eight to-night -- come you to me, in Saint Antoine, and we will give
information against these people at my Section."
The wood-sawyer said he
would be proud and flattered to attend the citizeness. The citizeness looking
at him, he became embarrassed, evaded her glance as a small dog would have
done, retreated among his wood, and hid his confusion over the handle of his
saw.
Madame Defarge beckoned
the Juryman and The Vengeance a little nearer to the door, and there expounded
her further views to them thus:
"She will now be
at home, awaiting the moment of his death. She will be mourning and grieving.
She will be in a state of mind to impeach the justice of the Republic. She will
be full of sympathy with its enemies. I will go to her."
"What an admirable
woman; what an adorable woman!" exclaimed Jacques Three, rapturously.
"Ah, my cherished!" cried The Vengeance; and embraced her.
"Take you my
knitting," said Madame Defarge, placing it in her lieutenant's hands,
"and have it ready for me in my usual seat. Keep me my usual chair. Go you
there, straight, for there will probably be a greater concourse than usual,
to-day."
"I willingly obey
the orders of my Chief," said The Vengeance with alacrity, and kissing her
cheek. "You will not be late?"
"I shall be there
before the commencement."
"And before the
tumbrels arrive. Be sure you are there, my soul," said The Vengeance,
calling after her, for she had already turned into the street, "before the
tumbrils arrive!"
Madame Defarge slightly
waved her hand, to imply that she heard, and might be relied upon to arrive in
good time, and so went through the mud, and round the corner of the prison
wall. The Vengeance and the Juryman, looking after her as she walked away, were
highly appreciative of her fine figure, and her superb moral endowments.
There were many women
at that time, upon whom the time laid a dreadfully disfiguring hand; but, there
was not one among them more to be dreaded than this ruthless woman, now taking
her way along the streets. Of a strong and fearless character, of shrewd sense
and readiness, of great determination, of that kind of beauty which not only
seems to impart to its possessor firmness and animosity, but to strike into
others an instinctive recognition of those qualities; the troubled time would
have heaved her up, under any circumstances. But, imbued from her childhood
with a brooding sense of wrong, and an inveterate hatred of a class,
opportunity had developed her into a tigress. She was absolutely without pity.
If she had ever had the virtue in her, it had quite gone out of her.
It was nothing to her,
that an innocent man was to die for the sins of his forefathers; she saw, not
him, but them. It was nothing to her, that his wife was to be made a widow and
his daughter an orphan; that was insufficient punishment, because they were her
natural enemies and her prey, and as such had no right to live. To appeal to
her, was made hopeless by her having no sense of pity, even for herself. If she
had been laid low in the streets, in any of the many encounters in which she
had been engaged, she would not have pitied herself; nor, if she had been
ordered to the axe to-morrow, would she have gone to it with any softer feeling
than a fierce desire to change places with the man who sent here there.
Such a heart Madame
Defarge carried under her rough robe. Carelessly worn, it was a becoming robe
enough, in a certain weird way, and her dark hair looked rich under her coarse
red cap. Lying hidden in her bosom, was a loaded pistol. Lying hidden at her
waist, was a sharpened dagger. Thus accoutred, and walking with the confident
tread of such a character, and with the supple freedom of a woman who had
habitually walked in her girlhood, bare-foot and bare-legged, on the brown sea-
sand, Madame Defarge took her way along the streets.
Now, when the journey
of the travelling coach, at that very moment waiting for the completion of its
load, had been planned out last night, the difficulty of taking Miss Pross in
it had much engaged Mr. Lorry's attention. It was not merely desirable to avoid
overloading the coach, but it was of the highest importance that the time
occupied in examining it and its passengers, should be reduced to the utmost;
since their escape might depend on the saving of only a few seconds here and
there. Finally, he had proposed, after anxious consideration, that Miss Pross
and Jerry, who were at liberty to leave the city, should leave it at three
o'clock in the lightest-wheeled conveyance known to that period. Unencumbered
with luggage, they would soon overtake the coach, and, passing it and preceding
it on the road, would order its horses in advance, and greatly facilitate its
progress during the precious hours of the night, when delay was the most to be
dreaded.
Seeing in this
arrangement the hope of rendering real service in that pressing emergency, Miss
Pross hailed it with joy. She and Jerry had beheld the coach start, had known
who it was that Solomon brought, had passed some ten minutes in tortures of
suspense, and were now concluding their arrangements to follow the coach, even
as Madame Defarge, taking her way through the streets, now drew nearer and
nearer to the else-deserted lodging in which they held their consultation.
"Now what do you
think, Mr. Cruncher," said Miss Pross, whose agitation was so great that
she could hardly speak, or stand, or move, or live: "what do you think of
our not starting from this courtyard? Another carriage having already gone from
here to-day, it might awaken suspicion."
"My opinion, miss,"
returned Mr. Cruncher, "is as you're right. Likewise wot I'll stand by
you, right or wrong."
"I am so
distracted with fear and hope for our precious creatures," said Miss
Pross, wildly crying, "that I am incapable of forming any plan. Are you
capable of forming any plan, my dear good Mr. Cruncher?"
"Respectin' a
future spear o' life, miss," returned Mr. Cruncher, "I hope so.
Respectin' any present use o' this here blessed old head o' mind, I think not.
Would you do me the favour, miss, to take notice o' two promises and wows wot
it is my wishes fur to record in this here crisis?"
"Oh, for gracious
sake!" cried Miss Pross, still wildly crying, "record them at once,
and get them out of the way, like an excellent man."
"First," said
Mr. Cruncher, who was all in a tremble, and who spoke with an ashy and solemn
visage, "them poor things well out o' this, never no more will I do it,
never no more!"
"I am quite sure,
Mr. Cruncher," returned Miss Pross, "that you never will do it again,
whatever it is, and I beg you not to think it necessary to mention more
particularly what it is."
"No, miss,"
returned Jerry, "it shall not be named to you. Second: them poor things
well out o' this, and never no more will I interfere with Mrs. Cruncher's
flopping, never no more!"
"Whatever
housekeeping arrangement that may be," said Miss Pross, striving to dry
her eyes and compose herself, "I have no doubt it is best that Mrs.
Cruncher should have it entirely under her own superintendence. -- O my poor
darlings!"
"I go so far as to
say, miss, moreover," proceeded Mr. Cruncher, with a most alarming
tendency to hold forth as from a pulpit -- "and let my words be took down
and took to Mrs. Cruncher through yourself -- that wot my opinions respectin' flopping
has undergone a change, and that wot I only hope with all my heart as Mrs.
Cruncher may be a flopping at the present time."
"There, there,
there! I hope she is, my dear man," cried the distracted Miss Pross,
"and I hope she finds it answering her expectations."
"Forbid it,"
proceeded Mr. Cruncher, with additional solemnity, additional slowness, and
additional tendency to hold forth and hold out, "as anything wot I have
ever said or done should be wisited on my earnest wishes for them poor creeturs
now! Forbid it as we shouldn't all flop (if it was anyways conwenient) to get
'em out o' this here dismal risk! Forbid it, miss! Wot I say, for-BID it!"
This was Mr. Cruncher's conclusion after a protracted but vain endeavour to
find a better one.
And still Madame Defarge,
pursuing her way along the streets, came nearer and nearer.
"If we ever get
back to our native land," said Miss Pross, "you may rely upon my
telling Mrs. Cruncher as much as I may be able to remember and understand of
what you have so impressively said; and at all events you may be sure that I
shall bear witness to your being thoroughly in earnest at this dreadful time.
Now, pray let us think! My esteemed Mr. Cruncher, let us think!"
Still, Madame Defarge,
pursuing her way along the streets, came nearer and nearer.
"If you were to go
before," said Miss Pross, "and stop the vehicle and horses from
coming here, and were to wait somewhere for me; wouldn't that be best?"
Mr. Cruncher thought it
might be best.
"Where could you
wait for me?" asked Miss Pross.
Mr. Cruncher was so
bewildered that he could think of no locality but Temple Bar. Alas! Temple Bar
was hundreds of miles away, and Madame Defarge was drawing very near indeed.
"By the cathedral
door," said Miss Pross. "Would it be much out of the way, to take me
in, near the great cathedral door between the two towers?"
"No, miss,"
answered Mr. Cruncher.
"Then, like the
best of men," said Miss Pross, "go to the posting-house straight, and
make that change."
"I am
doubtful," said Mr. Cruncher, hesitating and shaking his head, "about
leaving of you, you see. We don't know what may happen."
"Heaven knows we
don't," returned Miss Pross, "but have no fear for me. Take me in at
the cathedral, at Three o'Clock, or as near it as you can, and I am sure it
will be better than our going from here. I feel certain of it. There! Bless
you, Mr. Cruncher! Think -- not of me, but of the lives that may depend on both
of us!"
This exordium, and Miss
Pross's two hands in quite agonised entreaty clasping his, decided Mr.
Cruncher. With an encouraging nod or two, he immediately went out to alter the
arrangements, and left her by herself to follow as she had proposed.
The having originated a
precaution which was already in course of execution, was a great relief to Miss
Pross. The necessity of composing her appearance so that it should attract no
special notice in the streets, was another relief. She looked at her watch, and
it was twenty minutes past two. She had no time to lose, but must get ready at
once.
Afraid, in her extreme
perturbation, of the loneliness of the deserted rooms, and of half-imagined
faces peeping from behind every open door in them, Miss Pross got a basin of
cold water and began laving her eyes, which were swollen and red. Haunted by
her feverish apprehensions, she could not bear to have her sight obscured for a
minute at a time by the dripping water, but constantly paused and looked round
to see that there was no one watching her. In one of those pauses she recoiled
and cried out, for she saw a figure standing in the room.
The basin fell to the
ground broken, and the water flowed to the feet of Madame Defarge. By strange
stem ways, and through much staining blood, those feet had come to meet that
water.
Madame Defarge looked
coldly at her, and said, "The wife of Evrémonde; where is she?"
It flashed upon Miss
Pross's mind that the doors were all standing open, and would suggest the
flight. Her first act was to shut them. There were four in the room, and she
shut them all. She then placed herself before the door of the chamber which
Lucie had occupied.
Madame Defarge's dark
eyes followed her through this rapid movement, and rested on her when it was
finished. Miss Pross had nothing beautiful about her; years had not tamed the
wildness, or softened the grimness, of her appearance; but, she too was a
determined woman in her different way, and she measured Madame Defarge with her
eyes, every inch.
"You might, from
your appearance, be the wife of Lucifer," said Miss Pross, in her
breathing. "Nevertheless, you shall not get the better of me. I am an
Englishwoman."
Madame Defarge looked
at her scornfully, but still with something of Miss Pross's own perception that
they two were at bay. She saw a tight, hard, wiry woman before her, as Mr.
Lorry had seen in the same figure a woman with a strong hand, in the years gone
by. She knew full well that Miss Pross was the family's devoted friend; Miss
Pross knew full well that Madame Defarge was the family's malevolent enemy.
"On my way
yonder," said Madame Defarge, with a slight movement of her hand towards
the fatal spot, "where they reserve my chair and my knitting for me, I am
come to make my compliments to her in passing. I wish to see her."
"I know that your
intentions are evil," said Miss Pross, "and you may depend upon it,
I'll hold my own against them."
Each spoke in her own
language; neither understood the other's words; both were very watchful, and
intent to deduce from look and manner, what the unintelligible words meant.
"It will do her no
good to keep herself concealed from me at this moment," said Madame
Defarge. "Good patriots will know what that means. Let me see her. Go tell
her that I wish to see her. Do you hear?"
"If those eyes of
yours were bed-winches," returned Miss Pross, "and I was an English
four-poster, they shouldn't loose a splinter of me. No, you wicked foreign
woman; I am your match."
Madame Defarge was not
likely to follow these idiomatic remarks in detail; but, she so far understood
them as to perceive that she was set at naught.
"Woman imbecile
and pig-like!" said Madame Defarge, frowning. "I take no answer from
you. I demand to see her. Either tell her that I demand to see her, or stand
out of the way of the door and let me go to her!" This, with an angry
explanatory wave of her right arm.
"I little
thought," said Miss Pross, "that I should ever want to understand
your nonsensical language; but I would give all I have, except the clothes I
wear, to know whether you suspect the truth, or any part of it."
Neither of them for a
single moment released the other's eyes. Madame Defarge had not moved from the
spot where she stood when Miss Pross first became aware of her; but, she now
advanced one step.
"I am a
Briton," said Miss Pross, "I am desperate. I don't care an English
Twopence for myself. I know that the longer I keep you here, the greater hope
there is for my Ladybird. I'll not leave a handful of that dark hair upon your
head, if you lay a finger on me!"
Thus Miss Pross, with a
shake of her head and a flash of her eyes between every rapid sentence, and
every rapid sentence a whole breath. Thus Miss Pross, who had never struck a
blow in her life.
But, her courage was of
that emotional nature that it brought the irrepressible tears into her eyes.
This was a courage that Madame Defarge so little comprehended as to mistake for
weakness. "Ha, ha!" she laughed, "you poor wretch! What are you
worth! I address myself to that Doctor." Then she raised her voice and
called out, "Citizen Doctor! Wife of Evrémonde! Child of Evrémonde! Any
person but this miserable fool, answer the Citizeness Defarge!"
Perhaps the following
silence, perhaps some latent disclosure in the expression of Miss Pross's face,
perhaps a sudden misgiving apart from either suggestion, whispered to Madame
Defarge that they were gone. Three of the doors she opened swiftly, and looked
in.
"Those rooms are
all in disorder, there has been hurried packing, there are odds and ends upon
the ground. There is no one in that room behind you! Let me look."
"Never!" said
Miss Pross, who understood the request as perfectly as Madame Defarge
understood the answer.
"If they are not
in that room, they are gone, and can be pursued and brought back," said
Madame Defarge to herself.
"As long as you
don't know whether they are in that room or not, you are uncertain what to
do," said Miss Pross to herself; "and you shall not know that, if I
can prevent your knowing it; and know that, or not know that, you shall not
leave here while I can hold you."
"I have been in
the streets from the first, nothing has stopped me, I will tear you to pieces,
but I will have you from that door," said Madame Defarge.
"We are alone at
the top of a high house in a solitary courtyard, we are not likely to be heard,
and I pray for bodily strength to keep you here, while every minute you are
here is worth a hundred thousand guineas to my darling," said Miss Pross.
Madame Defarge made at
the door. Miss Pross, on the instinct of the moment, seized her round the waist
in both her arms, and held her tight. It was in vain for Madame Defarge to
struggle and to strike; Miss Pross, with the vigorous tenacity of love, always
so much stronger than hate, clasped her tight, and even lifted her from the
floor in the struggle that they had. The two hands of Madame Defarge buffeted
and tore her face; but, Miss Pross, with her head down, held her round the
waist, and clung to her with more than the hold of a drowning woman.
Soon, Madame Defarge's
hands ceased to strike, and felt at her encircled waist. "It is under my
arm," said Miss Pross, in smothered tones, "you shall not draw it. I
am stronger than you, I bless Heaven for it. I hold you till one or other of us
faints or dies!"
Madame Defarge's hands
were at her bosom. Miss Pross looked up, saw what it was, struck at it, struck
out a flash and a crash, and stood alone -- blinded with smoke.
All this was in a
second. As the smoke cleared, leaving an awful stillness, it passed out on the
air, like the soul of the furious woman whose body lay lifeless on the ground.
In the first fright and
horror of her situation, Miss Pross passed the body as far from it as she
could, and ran down the stairs to call for fruitless help. Happily, she
bethought herself of the consequences of what she did, in time to check herself
and go back. It was dreadful to go in at the door again; but, she did go in,
and even went near it, to get the bonnet and other things that she must wear.
These she put on, out on the staircase, first shutting and locking the door and
taking away the key. She then sat down on the stairs a few moments to breathe
and to cry, and then got up and hurried away.
By good fortune she had
a veil on her bonnet, or she could hardly have gone along the streets without
being stopped. By good fortune, too, she was naturally so peculiar in
appearance as not to show disfigurement like any other woman. She needed both
advantages, for the marks of griping fingers were deep in her face, and her
hair was tom, and her dress (hastily composed with unsteady hands) was clutched
and dragged a hundred ways.
In crossing the bridge,
she dropped the door key in the river. Arriving at the cathedral some few
minutes before her escort, and waiting there, she thought, what if the key were
already taken in a net, what if it were identified, what if the door were
opened and the remains discovered, what if she were stopped at the gate, sent
to prison, and charged with murder! In the midst of these fluttering thoughts,
the escort appeared, took her in, and took her away.
"Is there any
noise in the streets?" she asked him.
"The usual
noises," Mr. Cruncher replied; and looked surprised by the question and by
her aspect.
"I don't hear
you," said Miss Pross. "What do you say?"
It was in vain for Mr.
Cruncher to repeat what he said; Miss Pross could not hear him. "So I'll
nod my head," thought Mr. Cruncher, amazed, "at all events she'll see
that." And she did.
"Is there any
noise in the streets now?" asked Miss Pross again, presently.
Again Mr. Cruncher
nodded his head.
"I don't hear
it."
"Gone deaf in an
hour?" said Mr. Cruncher, ruminating, with his mind much disturbed;
"wot's come to her?"
"I feel," said
Miss Pross, "as if there had been a flash and a crash, and that crash was
the last thing I should ever hear in this life."
"Blest if she
ain't in a queer condition!" said Mr. Cruncher, more and more disturbed.
"Wot can she have been a takin', to keep her courage up? Hark! There's the
roll of them dreadful carts! You can hear that, miss?"
"I can hear,"
said Miss Pross, seeing that he spoke to her, "nothing. O, my good man,
there was first a great crash, and then a great stillness, and that stillness seems
to be fixed and unchangeable, never to be broken any more as long as my life
lasts."
"If she don't hear
the roll of those dreadful carts, now very nigh their journey's end," said
Mr. Cruncher, glancing over his shoulder, "it's my opinion that indeed she
never will hear anything else in this world."
And indeed she never
did.
ALONG THE PARIS
STREETS, the death-carts rumble, hollow and harsh. Six tumbrils carry the day's
wine to La Guillotine. All the devouring and insatiate Monsters imagined since
imagination could record itself, are fused in the one realisation, Guillotine.
And yet there is not in France, with its rich variety of soil and climate, a
blade, a leaf, a root, a sprig, a peppercorn, which will grow to maturity under
conditions more certain than those that have produced this horror. Crush
humanity out of shape once more, under similar hammers, and it will twist
itself into the same tortured forms. Sow the same seed of rapacious license and
oppression over again, and it will surely yield the same fruit according to its
kind.
Six tumbrils roll along
the streets. Change these back again to what they were, thou powerful
enchanter, Time, and they shall be seen to be the carriages of absolute
monarchs, the equipages of feudal nobles, the toilettes of flaring Jezebels,
the churches that are not my father's house but dens of thieves, the huts of
millions of starving peasants! No; the great magician who majestically works
out the appointed order of the Creator, never reverses his transformations.
"If thou be changed into this shape by the will of God," say the
seers to the enchanted, in the wise Arabian stories, "then remain so! But,
if thou wear this form through mere passing conjuration, then resume thy former
aspect!" Changeless and hopeless, the tumbrels roll along.
As the sombre wheels of
the six carts go round, they seem to plough up a long crooked furrow among the
populace in the streets. Ridges of faces are thrown to this side and to that,
and the ploughs go steadily onward. So used are the regular inhabitants of the
houses to the spectacle, that in many windows there are no people, and in some
the occupation of the hands is not so much as suspended, while the eyes survey
the faces in the tumbrels. Here and there, the inmate has visitors to see the
sight; then he points his finger, with something of the complacency of a
curator or authorised exponent, to this cart and to this, and seems to tell who
sat here yesterday, and who there the day before.
Of the riders in the
tumbrels, some observe these things, and all things on their last roadside,
with an impassive stare; others, with a lingering interest in the ways of life
and men. Some, seated with drooping heads, are sunk in silent despair; again,
there are some so heedful of their looks that they cast upon the multitude such
glances as they have seen in theatres, and in pictures. Several close their
eyes, and think, or try to get their straying thoughts together. Only one, and
he a miserable creature, of a crazed aspect, is so shattered and made drunk by
horror, that he sings, and tries to dance. Not one of the whole number appeals
by look or gesture, to the pity of the people.
There is a guard of
sundry horsemen riding abreast of the tumbrels, and faces are often turned up
to some of them, and they are asked some question. It would seem to be always
the same question, for, it is always followed by a press of people towards the
third cart. The horsemen abreast of that cart, frequently point out one man in
it with their swords. The leading curiosity is, to know which is he; he stands
at the back of the tumbrel with his head bent down, to converse with a mere
girl who sits on the side of the cart, and holds his hand. He has no curiosity
or care for the scene about him, and always speaks to the girl. Here and there
in the long street of St. Honore, cries are raised against him. If they move
him at all, it is only to a quiet smile, as he shakes his hair a little more
loosely about his face. He cannot easily touch his face, his arms being bound.
On the steps of a
church, awaiting the coming-up of the tumbrels, stands the Spy and
prison-sheep. He looks into the first of them: not there. He looks into the
second: not there. He already asks himself, "Has he sacrificed me?"
when his face clears, as he looks into the third.
"Which is Evrémonde?"
says a man behind him.
"That. At the back
there."
"With his hand in
the girl's?"
"Yes."
The man cries,
"Down, Evrémonde! To the Guillotine all aristocrats! Down, Evrémonde!"
"Hush, hush!"
the Spy entreats him, timidly.
"And why not,
citizen?"
"He is going to
pay the forfeit: it will be paid in five minutes more. Let him be at
peace."
But the man continuing
to exclaim, "Down, Evrémonde!" the face of Evrémonde is for a moment
turned towards him. Evrémonde then sees the Spy, and looks attentively at him,
and goes his way.
The clocks are on the
stroke of three, and the furrow ploughed among the populace is turning round,
to come on into the place of execution, and end. The ridges thrown to this side
and to that, now crumble in and close behind the last plough as it passes on,
for all are following to the Guillotine. In front of it, seated in chairs, as
in a garden of public diversion, are a number of women, busily knitting. On one
of the foremost chairs, stands The Vengeance, looking about for her friend.
"Therese!"
she cries, in her shrill tones. "Who has seen her? Therese Defarge!"
"She never missed
before," says a knitting-woman of the sisterhood.
"No; nor will she
miss now," cries The Vengeance, petulantly. "Therese."
"Louder," the
woman recommends.
Ay! Louder, Vengeance,
much louder, and still she will scarcely hear thee. Louder yet, Vengeance, with
a little oath or so added, and yet it will hardly bring her. Send other women
up and down to seek her, lingering somewhere; and yet, although the messengers
have done dread deeds, it is questionable whether of their own wills they will
go far enough to find her!
"Bad
Fortune!" cries The Vengeance, stamping her foot in the chair, "and
here are the tumbrils! And Evrémonde will be despatched in a wink, and she not
here! See her knitting in my hand, and her empty chair ready for her. I cry
with vexation and disappointment!"
As The Vengeance
descends from her elevation to do it, the tumbrels begin to discharge their
loads. The ministers of Sainte Guillotine are robed and ready. Crash! -- A head
is held up, and the knitting-women who scarcely lifted their eyes to look at it
a moment ago when it could think and speak, count One.
The second tumbril
empties and moves on; the third comes up. Crash!
-- And the
knitting-women, never faltering or pausing in their Work, count Two.
The supposed Evrémonde
descends, and the seamstress is lifted out next after him. He has not
relinquished her patient hand in getting out, but still holds it as he
promised. He gently places her with her back to the crashing engine that
constantly whirrs up and falls, and she looks into his face and thanks him.
"But for you, dear
stranger, I should not be so composed, for I am naturally a poor little thing,
faint of heart; nor should I have been able to raise my thoughts to Him who was
put to death, that we might have hope and comfort here to-day. I think you were
sent to me by Heaven."
"Or you to
me," says Sydney Carton. "Keep your eyes upon me, dear child, and
mind no other object."
"I mind nothing
while I hold your hand. I shall mind nothing when I let it go, if they are
rapid."
"They will be
rapid. Fear not!"
The two stand in the
fast-thinning throng of victims, but they speak as if they were alone. Eye to
eye, voice to voice, hand to hand, heart to heart, these two children of the
Universal Mother, else so wide apart and differing, have come together on the
dark highway, to repair home together, and to rest in her bosom.
"Brave and
generous friend, will you let me ask you one last question? I am very ignorant,
and it troubles me -- just a little."
"Tell me what it
is."
"I have a cousin,
an only relative and an orphan, like myself, whom I love very dearly. She is
five years younger than I, and she lives in a farmer's house in the south
country. Poverty parted us, and she knows nothing of my fate -- for I cannot
write -- and if I could, how should I tell her! It is better as it is."
"Yes, yes: better
as it is."
"What I have been
thinking as we came along, and what I am still thinking now, as I look into
your kind strong face which gives me so much support, is this: -- If the
Republic really does good to the poor, and they come to be less hungry, and in
all ways to suffer less, she may live a long time: she may even live to be
old."
"What then, my
gentle sister?"
"Do you
think:" the uncomplaining eyes in which there is so much endurance, fill
with tears, and the lips part a little more and tremble: "that it will
seem long to me, while I wait for her in the better land where I trust both you
and I will be mercifully sheltered?"
"It cannot be, my
child; there is no Time there, and no trouble there."
"You comfort me so
much! I am so ignorant. Am I to kiss you now? Is the moment come?"
"Yes."
She kisses his lips; he
kisses hers; they solemnly bless each other. The spare hand does not tremble as
he releases it; nothing worse than a sweet, bright constancy is in the patient
face. She goes next before him -- is gone; the knitting-women count Twenty-Two.
"I am the
Resurrection and the Life, saith the Lord: he that believeth in me, though he
were dead, yet shall he live: and whosoever liveth and believeth in me shall
never die."
The murmuring of many
voices, the upturning of many faces, the pressing on of many footsteps in the
outskirts of the crowd, so that it swells forward in a mass, like one great
heave of water, all flashes away. Twenty-Three.
They said of him, about
the city that night, that it was the peacefullest man's face ever beheld there.
Many added that he looked sublime and prophetic.
One of the most
remarkable sufferers by the same axe -- a woman -- had asked at the foot of the
same scaffold, not long before, to be allowed to write down the thoughts that
were inspiring her. If he had given any utterance to his, and they were
prophetic, they would have been these:
"I see Barsad, and
Cly, Defarge, The Vengeance, the Juryman, the Judge, long ranks of the new
oppressors who have risen on the destruction of the old, perishing by this
retributive instrument, before it shall cease out of its present use. I see a
beautiful city and a brilliant people rising from this abyss, and, in their
struggles to be truly free, in their triumphs and defeats, through tong long
years to come, I see the evil of this time and of the previous time of which
this is the natural birth, gradually making expiation for itself and wearing
out.
"I see the lives
for which I lay down my life, peaceful, useful, prosperous and happy, in that
England which I shall see no more. I see Her with a child upon her bosom, who
bears my name. I see her father, aged and bent, but otherwise restored, and
faithful to all men in his healing office, and at peace. I see the good old
man, so long their friend, in ten years' time enriching them with all he has,
and passing tranquilly to his reward.
"I see that I hold
a sanctuary in their hearts, and in the hearts of their descendants,
generations hence. I see her, an old woman, weeping for me on the anniversary
of this day. I see her and her husband, their course done, lying side by side
in their last earthly bed, and I know that each was not more honoured and held
sacred in the other's soul, than I was in the souls of both.
"I see that child
who lay upon her bosom and who bore my name, a man winning his way up in that
path of life which once was mine. I see him winning it so well, that my name is
made illustrious there by the light of his. I see the blots I threw upon it,
faded away. I see him, foremost of just judges and honoured men, bringing a boy
of my name, with a forehead that I know and golden hair, to this place -- then
fair to look upon, with not a trace of this day's disfigurement -- and I hear
him tell the child my story, with a tender and a faltering voice.
"It is a far, far
better thing that I do, than I have ever done; it is a far, far better rest
that I go to than I have ever known."
THE END.